cftV;
rJ?
H-4-
LIBRARY
of Tin:
Theological Seminar
y,
PRINCETON, N. J.
Case, Division
^/
Shelf, Section
Book, Nft.
-^-0
nosr
> 3 .>-.>.' s
*+ .+
p,V . .-*•
PAPISM / ^ f
IN THE UNITED STATES.
BEING,
SELECT CONTRIBUTIONS TO THE PAPAL CONTROVERSY,
DURING 1835—40.
BY ROBERT J. BRECKINRIDGE.
We do not look upon the Popish sect as a religion, but rather as a hierarchical
tyrann}', under a cloak of religion, clothed with the spoils of the civil power, which
it has usurped to itself, contrary to our Saviour's own doctrine. .John Milton's
D t pro. Pop. A?ig. Prozf
— ,„,g^gn.m. —
BALTIMORE:
DAVID OWEN &*SON\ 2j, N, GAY STREET.
MDCCCXLI.
MATCHETT. PRINTER.
Entered according to the Act of Congress, in the year 1841, by the Au-
thor, in the Clerk's Office of the District Court of Maryland.
TO THE
Second Presbyterian Church and Congregation
OF BALTIMORE,
THIS VOLUME
IS MOST AFFECTIONATELY AND MOST GRATEFULLY
DEDICATED,
AS A TOKEN OF PROFOUND ADMIRATION
i
FOR
WHICH
They have so freqently, so signally, and so affectingly
MANIFESTED,
IN THEIR PERSONAL AND PUBLIC ACT5J
DURING
THE WHOLE SPIRITUAL OVERSIGHT
of their
faithful friend,
and unworthy pastor,
Baltimore, Feb, 12, 1841, THJ3 AUTHOR.
ADVERTISEMENT.
The author of the following pages, in submitting them
in this form to the public, deems it not improper to ex-
plain himself briefly to his readers.
There are several objects which he supposes may be
gained, or at least promoted by the publication of this
volume. One is, that in this way, the history of the rise
and early progress of the papal controversy in the region
where his lot is cast, and in some degree throughout
America, will be preserved in a permanent and con-
venient form; a history personally important as it regards
many individuals, and not without its use in illustrating the
principles, the spirit and the aims of papism in this
country. — Another is, that persons really desirous of
making themselves acquainted with papism in general,
and its character in this age and country in particular;
may have not only the means of doing this somewhat
increased, but may also see, in our personal experience,
the manner in which and the means by which God has
been pleased to lead an individual similarly situated with
themselves, in the same course, before them. A third,
and the prevailing reason, has been the hope of spread-
ing information on one of the most important and here-
tofore neglected topics of the age; and of stimulating
public curiosity and interest, on a subject in regard to
„.i.;^u .^^ ooo^r, to Inro haon Hpqd nr-f\rlv in proportion
TI
as the obligations laid on them to be all alive, were tran-
scendent.
The contributions to the papal controversy published
in this volume, cover a period of six years of the life and
ministry of their author. They have been years of great
care and toil, not only in his more important and direct
work as Bishop of a large church and congregation com-
mitted to his particular oversight, by the great Bishop of
souls; but also, as he has been connected with many of
the great movements of the age, and very especially with
the difficulties and deliverance of that branch of the
church of God in which he is a minister. He does not
therefore offer this volume to the public, as any thing
more, than what a person so situated may be supposed
to accomplish in hours stolen from nature, from sickness,
and from the ordinary enjoyments of life.
The scholar may repose unqualified credit, in all the
references and authorities of this volume. All of them,
where they are given as original, have been diligently
and laboriously verified; and where that was not possible
or was not considered necessary, the authority relied on
is stated. Indeed, we have found so little to our taste in
the elemental volumes, on the papal controversy; and so
many inaccuracies of reference perpetuated through suc-
cessive authors quoting from each other, and all pretend-
ing to be original; that we have prefered to push our
studies, in an independent manner, up to the original
sources, wherever it was possible.
The reader may also rely with implicit confidence on
the facts and statements of this book. They have all
been made public in the face of assassins seeking our life,
of informers watching our actions and words, and of im-
Vll
placable and unmerciful enemies conspiring our ruin.
The book is true, to the letter.
For any thing more, the author is deeply sensible that
if it should be made an instrument of good — it will be
because God shall own it. After what he has seen and
experienced, after those things of which he has been made
the instrument ; he is the last that should be found dis-
trusting God. Let the adorable God do therefore, what
seemethto him good; it shall by his grace, be good also
for his servant.
Baltimore, February, 1841.
[CONTENTS.
NUMBER I.
Page.
The Commencement of the Papal Controversy in Baltimore, in
1835 1
NUMBER II.
Carmelite Convent in Baltimore; an Outrage which was probably
Committed therein, 7
NUMBER III.
Questions to Determine the True Church 17
NUMBER IV.
Romanism — Political and Religious, 19
NUMBER V.
The Antiquity of the Protestant Faith, 31
NUMBER VI.
Worship in an Unknown Tongue; Gregory vii. and the Bohemian
Churches, 39
NUMBER VII.
The General Councils. — Which are they? What have they done?. ... 44
NUMBER VIII.
A Visit to the Baltimore Cathedral, , > 56
X CONTENTS.
NUMBER IX.
Page.
The last of the House of Valois, 66
NUMBER X.
Judge Gaston of N. C. — Religious Liberty — Mental Reservation,. ... 80
NUMBER XI.
An Address to the American People. Hon. Mr. Gaston of N. C.
Catholic Perfidy — Prostitution of the Public Press, 90
NUMBER XII.
Texian Revolution, before San Jacinto, 102
NUMBER XIII.
Jerome of Prague ; and the Council of Constance, 108
NUMBER XIV.
Papal Propagandism in the United States, 116
NUMBER XV.
Papal Provincial Council; Preaching of Bishop England, 126
NUMBER XVI.
Case of Eliza Burns the Abducted Orphan, 137
NUMBER XVII.
Bishops Full, versus Bishops Empty, 159
NUMBER XVIII.
First Kentucky Cousecration, of "My Lord Purcell," 175
CONTENTS. XI
N U M B K 11 X I X .
Page.
Lent — its Curious History and Present State, 181
NUMBER XX.
"The Big Beggar-Man." 180
NUMBER XXI.
Vocation and Preaching of Archbishop Eccleston, 198
NUMBER XXII.
Conjunction of St. Bacchus and St. Ignatius, 202
NUMBER XXIII.
Papal Unity — its Nature, Certainty, and Advantage, 207
NUMBER XXIV.
Creed of the Church of Rome; her Dilemma and Imposture, 214
NUMBER XXV.
Eliza Ann O'Neal, and her Rescued Child, 232
NUMBER XXVI.
Escape of a Nun from the Carmelite Prison in Aisquith street, 235
NUMBER XXVII.
The Case of Olevia Neal the Carmelite Nun, called Sister Isabella,.. 239
NUMBER XXVIII.
Review of the Correspondence between the Archbishop and the
Mayor of Baltimore, 25S
Xll CONTENTS.
NUMBER XXIX.
Page
The Tax Book of the Roman Chancery, 281
NUMBER XXX.
Secreta Monita Societatis Jesu, 297
NUMBER XXXI.
Papism before the Courts of Law: our Legal Persecution, 316
NUMBER XXXII.
Letter of Robert J. Breckinridge to the Second Presbyterian Church
of Baltimore, on the Occasion of his Presentment by the Grand
Jury: with the Action of the Session, and that of the Church
thereon, 322
NUMBER XXXIII.
The State of Maryland against Robert J. Breckinridge, 331
PAPISM IN THE XIX. CENTURY,
IN THE UNITED STATES.
-^©^~
NUMBER I.
THE COMMENCEMENT OF THE PAPAL CONTROVERSY IN
BALTIMORE, IN 1835,
The address to the public which follows, under the
signature of one of the conductors of this Magazine,*
should more appropriately have appeared in one of our
daily papers. It has been presented for publication to
two, and refused by both. Heart-sick at the mournful
condition of our city press, and destitute of as good
reasons to address to others, as were disregarded by those
applied to, its author fulfils the only duty left him, and
asks from the few that may see these pages, a perusal of it.
Mr. William Gwynn Jones, the putative editor of the
Gazette, is said to be a gentleman and a protestant.
Indeed, it is not long since we saw him presiding, in Dr.
Henshaw's church, as president of a Bible Society. Save
the mark ! We have reason to know, that when, in his
* The Baltimore Literary and Religious Magazine,
1
)l THE COMMENCEMENT OF THE PAPAL
own opinion lie fell called on to make voluntary boast-
ings of the freedom of his columns from all improper in-
fluence, and thought himself at liberty to use Mr. Breck-
inridge's name as a caption, and to make a free version
of his statements, the pretext of his discourse; he pro-
cured a mutual friend, to give previous intimations of hi?
intended course with assurances that it wag kindly ia-
tended. The absence of Mr. B. from this city during
the greater part of December and January 1835, left him
silent and ignorant of what was doing; while from time to
time Mr. Jones, in his editorial columns, besides the va-
rious help of his correspondents, kept amusing the priests
with a war upon a poor absent Presbyterian parson !
Courageous souls! The attack, as well as we can now re-
member, seems to have been renewed about eight times.
In the end, Mr. B. returned to Baltimore, and inclosed
under cover of a very civil note to the editor of the Ga-
zette, the public address which follows ; and sent both
by the hands of one of the worthiest gentlemen in town,
with the express request to publish or return the paper. —
At the end of three days, the same friend brought for an-
swer from Mr. J., that he must have a personal interview
with the author before he could publish the article. In
this contingency Mr. B. wrote another note, saying amongst
other things, that his health did not permit him to visit
Mr. J., and while he would be happy to see him at any
time, it was quite useless to hold discussions about so
plain a case, and one in regard to which a common act
of justice, and not advice wras asked from him. Before
replying to this note, the mutual friend who had first
written of Mr. J's intended course, called on his behalf
and no doubt at his suggestion, upon Mr. B., and had a
free conversation on the subject. Some hours after his
departure, the article was received in a blank indosure
from the hands of the friend who delivered it.
The article was then sent by another friend to the pub-
lishers of the American, who returned it with a civil note,
declining to publish ; although, in addition to the op-
pression under wThich the author was seen to labour, he
was a subscriber to that paper.
As to the probable influences which produced these
CONTROVERSY IN BALTIMORE, IN 1835. 3
results we have no question, nor has the public here,
who think at all. Let us state a lew facts.
1. The article now published, while it was in Mr. J's
office, (the Gazette,) was seen and read, among others,
by a young gentleman, whose father is the host of Bishop
England when he honors this good city with his presence.
2. The feelings of this gentleman, (the father,) on the
general controversy, may be gathered from two facts : 1.
He applied to a member of Mr. Breckinridge's congre-
gation not long ago, for a list of the trustees and elders
of the church. (What he wanted with them is yet to
appear!) 2. He rose and left the house, still more re-
cently, when Mr. McCalla in a lecture mentioned Bishop
England's name, in connection with the inquisition.
3. It was at first the intention of Mr. J. to publish this
rejected article in the Gazette ; it was the opinion of his
intelligent foreman, wTho is by repute a frequent contri-
butor to the columns of the very respectable journal he is
connected with, that " the article would do ;" it was the
avowed opinion of the former editor of that paper, that
Mr. B. should be allowed to explain and defend himself;
Mr. J. stated that he objected to " only two words;" and
unluckily, these two words, (which he has kept secret
still,) — were revealed after the young gentleman spoken
of above , had read the manuscript !
But it is vain to argue such a matter. Any man of a
candid spirit, who read the repeated attacks in the Ga-
zette, and saw the useless boastings about its freedom
from popish influence, would exclaim at once — surely,
surely, fair-dealing demands that the man should be al-
lowed to explain his conduct, when he offers to do it over
his own signature, and does it in terms respectful to all
men, and does it in a single article ! Yet such is neither
the logic, the morality, nor the independence, of a part
at least, of the public press in Baltimore !
In illustration of this subject, and that the matters may
not pass into oblivion, we record here two facts.
1. An individual now living in this city, whose name
is at the service of any one who considers himself as im-
plicated, tells us he is ready to make oath, that within a
few years, every daily paper in this city, (except the Pa-
4 THE COMMENCEMENT OF THE PAPAL
triot, which was not applied to) including both the Amer-
ican and (iazette, refused to publish, even for compensa-
tion as an advertisement, the prospectus of a Protestant
newspaper, published in New York.
2. Within a few months, (almost weeks,) three of the
papers in this city, in re-publishing the evidence taken
on the trial of the persons arrested for burning the Con-
vent near Boston, garbled it, so as to omit the acknow-
ledgment on oath of the lady superior, that she had
threatened a portion of the people of Boston, with Bishop
Fcnwick and 10,000 brave irish : (Poor Watson and
Mercer could expound the meaning of such threats, if
they wrere back from their bloody graves.) The Amer-
ican was one of the papers that garbled this testimony.
The present editor of that leading journal, (who is a re-
puted Catholic,) can explain how this extraordinary
omission occurred. In the meantime the publishers will
excuse us for seeing in such acts, a better solution than
their own reasons afford, of the rejection of Mr. B's
statement. And though the Gazette published it truly,
it admitted without comment, an abusive article virtually
denying that such testimony wTas ever given !
As to the undue influence exercised by the popish
part of the city, comprising as they do, less than a quar-
ter of the people, and embracing in that quarter not even
the rateable part of its wealth, enterprise and intelligence;
no man who is willing to see, doubts it. That this in-
fluence is ruinous to all who will not submit to it, and
are too wTeak to resist it, is so manifest, that it is this
very startling truth which makes it so hard to get men to
act in shaking it off. That the press in its turn should
feel this blighting influence, is not wronderful ; and that
being itself first won, it should afterwards be used to win
all else, — by terror or seduction, is clear enough.
Before we lay down our pen, we will ask in conclusion
of this matter :
1. What protection has any Protestant gentleman in
this community, in the present state of affairs, in any in-
terest which the newspapers can reach and choose to as-
sail— provided he thinks fit in the discharge of any duty,
or if you please, in mere caprice, to call in question the
CONTROVERSY IN BALTIMORE, IX 1 5
stupid dogmas, 'and wicked practices of the Romish
priesthood ?
2. How could a small portion of the redundant weahh
of our merchants and mechanics, and other enterprising
citizens, be more usefully, or more profitably employed,
than in establishing in this city, and in other cities and
towns, political presses, and mercantile presses, issuing
daily papers, that should be decidedly protestant? Or is
it ever to be, that the free and glorious principles of the
reformation are to be without an advocate, only in this
free and glorious land !
THE REJECTED STATEMENT.
TO THE PUBLIC.
The undersigned regrets the necessity which compels
him to make the following statement.
From the autumn of 1832 to the autumn of 1834, the
undersigned as pastor of the Presbyterian congregation
worshipping in East Baltimore street, preached in various
parts of this city, about five hundred times. During this
period, he never preached a single discourse intended to
be, or considered by him, controversial ; nor did he ever
in his public ministrations, attack any sect of persons ac-
knowledged by any other sect, to be Christians; and, es-
pecially did he make no movement towards a controver-
sy with the Roman Catholics.
In the autumn of 1834, the undersigned, impelled by
reasons which seemed to him imperative, but which he
supposes would not interest the public, commenced with-
out previous notice of any kind, and in his regular week-
day ministrations, a series of lectures in a small room
attached to his church, on the prophecies of the New
Testament, which he supposed had reference to the church
called by its members, Roman Catholic and apostolical.
These lectures were followed by others in the same room,
for the benefit of his own charge, on some of the author-
ised religious publications issued with the sanction of
persons high in office in that church, in this city.
In the midst of one of these lectures, a Catholic priest
named Gildea, said to be rector of one of their churches
1*
6 THE COMMENCEMENT OF THE PAPAL 8tC.
in this city, interrupted the exercises in a manner wl
nothing hut the forbearance of my friends, prevented from
receiving its merited reward. The excitement produced
by this incident brought together week after week, such
numbers of persons, anxious to hear what might be said,
as to compel us to open our church ; where lectures upon
the great points of doctrinal difference between Catholics
and Protestants were continued until the early part o!
December, when I left the city on a journey from whicl
I have just returned*
In the course of one of these lecturer, in which it was
attempted to prove that the Roman Catholic church
is essentially and universally aggressive, exclusive and
intolerant, I asserted incidentally their influence over the
whole political press of this city. In an editorial article
in the Gazette of December 10, 1834, it is said that I had
thought proper "publicly and frequently to declare the
subserviency of the whole press in this city fortius parti-
cular sect." I will be permitted to say, that neither res-
pect for myself, nor for the gentlemen who conduct <c the
whole i^ress in this city," would ever allow me to assert
its " subserviency" — in such unqualified terms to any
set of men. I have said, and I am ready to establish
the truth of the assertion, that the sect now spoken of,
has sought, and still seeks, a totally undue influence
over the public press of this city ; and wThile I charged
this rather as accusation against those who sought, than
those who from interest or feeling, yielded to this influ-
ence, in any degree ; I am bound to say, that I believe
the Catholic population of Baltimore, with less than one
quarter of the aggregate wealth, enterprise, and intelli-
gence of this good city, has for years exerted tenfold the
influence over the press, that all the remaining three-
quarters ever did. And, I for one, am ready to co-ope-
rate for the destruction of this hurtful and undue influ-
ence. Personally, I am a stranger to most of those who
conduct the public press amongst us ; and never intend-
ed to call in question their right to act as they thought fit
in relation to this subject; asserting at the same time,
the right and the duty of the Protestants in this city, to
provide against such a state of affairs.
CARMELITE CONVENT IN BALTIMORE. 7
I will be allpwed to sav, that it is against the fatal
doctrines of the Roman Catholic church, and not against
the city press, that I wage war. It is with priests, and
not with printers that 1 seek fairly to end a controversy,
forced upon me. It is before the assemblies of the
people, not in the daily papers, that I desire to be allow-
ed to explain the doctrines of the cross of Christ, and
free them from the pollutions of the darkest ages and
the worst hierarchy the world ever saw. Whenever,
therefore, the present respectable archbishop, or any of
his learned bishops, priests, or other associates think fit
to accept a standing offer made long ago, and now re-
peated, by William L. McCalla, John Breckinridge,
and myself, we, or either of us, will attempt to show that
their religion is not the religion of God, and that their
church is not the church of Jesus Christ. Un-
less this fair and plain offer is accepted, I trust I shall
be allowed to pursue my own course, in my own pulpit;
and that the public will pay no attention to the various
private misrepresentations set on foot to shield a cause
which admits of no public and manly defence.
As my na; .e and conduct \ave been repeatedly called
in question, in the Gazette, during my absence, in rela-
tion to this subject, I hope the editor of that paper will
feel no difficulty in publishing this statement.
Very respectfully,
Ro. J. Breckinridge.
February 9, 1835.
NUMBER II.
CARMELITE CONVENT IN BALTIMORE; AN OUTRAGE WHICH
WAS PROBABLY COMMITTED THEREIN.
Most of the citizens of Baltimore know that there is
a convent of the order of Carmelite nuns, situated in
Aisquith street, in this city. Any one who chooses to
B CARMELITE CONVENT IN BALTIMORE,
pass along that wide and cool promenade, some summer's
afternoon, will see the large roomy edifice, with its win-
dows carefully closed and curiously grated — and the
words "Carmelite's Female Academy," painted in
large letters over one of the main entrances.
By the way, it has surprised us that they who re-
nounce marriage, should be so surprisingly devoted to
children. The Jesuits make their ostensible business,
the education of boys; while all sorts of nuns seem to
have a peculiar propensity to deal with girls. Now this
is not the case with heretics. Protestant old bachelors,
which is the nighest approach we can make to a monk,
are generally averse to being tormented by urchins. And
our only class of single females, that most worthy, tra-
duced, and estimable class insultingly called old maids,
generally prefer kittens to children. For our part, we
care not wrho knows that we consider this, the most ad-
mirable class of human beings. We have always noticed
that if any thing is particularly neat, refined, and just,
in person or behaviour, the world cries out, old maid! If
a lady is especially estimable on account of the purity of
her conduct, and the strictness of her principles, the little
wits call her an old maid. So that this abused phrase
has got to sound pleasant to our hearts; and when we
hear it, we look out for a middle aged female, rather re-
markably a lady (and oh! what is not covered by that
word,) in all respects. Some may sneer at their single
state. We take it for granted they are single from choice.
And this is the only point in the whole compass of thought,
in which these are to be likened to nuns. They are single
through choice. But as we have said, they are not usu-
ally remarkable for devotion to other people's children.
Nuns, are very generally and rather impudently so devo-
ted; and we should be happy to have the remarkable fact,
honestly and modestly solved.
But these poor Caimelites, we verily believe, would
every one of them rejoice to be out of their cage. A pair
of girls once called on us for a donation to the establish-
ment. We thought it rather odd: but after a moment's
hesitation, said yes, and offered them a donation of twen-
ty-eight New Testaments, which we understood to be the
CARMELITE CONVENT IN BALTIMORE. 9
number of nuns. The girls seemed posed in turn, and
civilly declined that gift, but rather urgently solicited
something el- . W lied, that Word,
vould not take, our best gift for them was a
short counsel; our compliments, namely, to the ladies
Mount ( $ to the blessed vi, . . and the
urgent advice, to go home, get married, and train up
children in God's fear. Whether the message was ever
delivered or not, is not difficult to decide. That it could
have been at all available, we are now aware was im-
possible. If we had then supposed these poor victims
. unwilling -iiOuld have despised ovrsei
for harboring a thought that could wound them. But the
world is getting wiser, and we trust we have got a little
light within a couple of years, on several matters; and
amongst others, about a certain lady called by one whose
word we greatly revere, the "mother of
We take it for granted that every body who can read,
will read, and many who cannot will gel others to read
to them, something about convents. All who want
wires, : course: all who have children had better:
and they who have determined never to many, will do as
they please. Mrs. Sherwood has written a book, which
we thought rather flat; but we heard of one poor simple-
ton, it gave sense enough to, to keep out of a convent,
and we shall therefore respect the boot. Scipio de
Ricci, whose abridged memoirs of his trials and sor-
rows, and of the corruptions of his diocese, (he was a
Romish bishop in Tuscany, towards the close of the last
century) — have been published in this country under the
rather repulsive title of M The Secrd de Conv-
.ould be read by all, who have nerves enough
to stand a bird's-eye view of Tophet. — Miss Read's
Six Months in a Convent ought to be put into the hands
of even* child, that goes to every school of nuns. It is
an awful book to the nuns, and poor bishop Fenwick.
Poor fellow; we will serve him up some day, as he
cooked in that book, as a desert for the heretics. That
is, if he don't hang himself in consequence of its pub-
lication.— The lady superior we take it for granted
from the nature of the case, and from some symptoms
10 CARMELITE CONVENT IN BALTIMORE.
her keepers have allowed her to manifest, is hopelessly
demented.
But as we intimated, we have changed our opinion
about the poor Carmelites, in so far, that whereas we once
thought they were willing victims we are now convinced
they are not. Miss Read demonstrates that no one
would be allowed to leave any convent, even of the Ur-
suline order. All who have left them, have had to make
their escape ; Miss Read being one of four wTho escaped
from the convent on Mount Benedict, at different times.
The last of them led to the burning of the "cage of un-
clean birds" — last summer. And this has been the case
every wdiere. Will the Catholics show us one that has
been allowed to depart in peace? And yet as far as we
can gain an insight into these dens, all desire to be out.
Now the question arises how could these females at
this austere establishment, of the sisters of the blessed
virgin Mary of Mount Carmel, as the poor things call
themselves, get out if they desired it ever so ardently?
How could they get out0) None are allowed converse with
them, of the male sex, except his reverence their confes-
sor, who has we dare to say, the best room in the house;
and his holiness the bishop, who of course, is over all
and has free access to all. Now, as implicit, unquestion-
ing, unhesitating obedience, is the corner stone of all mo-
nastic duties and merits, for my part, if I were a female
determined to eschew the masculine gender, I would as
leave this priest and bishop had not quite such free ac-
cess to me and spiritual power over me. But we speak
of temporal restraints now. How is she to get out: when
the priest or bishop gets rude, or the heart sickens under
the horrible tedium of everlasting inanity, or the spirit
boils over under unutterable indignities, or the body itself
is at last worn down wTith cruel oppression? Reader en-
quire, and examine how could they get out? None but
females, of the world, are allowed to speak to them. They
are allowed so to do, only through a curiously contrived
grate. The nuns never come singly; but always in
pairs or by several, to watch each other. Then their
dress and appearance arc so peculiar and similar, that to
uninitiated eyes they all look alike; especially, through
CARMELITE CONVENT IN BALTIMORE. 11
a grate in a dark place. If one should srrow desperate
to the grate, and tell a Catholic woman
she wanted to get out, she would only be exp
self to ruin. We could tell some stories on this head
that would hardly edify the holy mother church to I
But suppose that by perfect accident, some prot»
female came to the grate, and a poor nun that \\
to be let out from the living death within, shou
speech of her — and in her phrenzy tell her name; how
easy would it be to substitute another for her, when she
was enquired for, and let the substituted one say she had
been out of her head? They got the young lady who
escaped last from the Charlestown convent, to acknow-
ledge this of herself. — Who would apply for civil pro-
vhen he expected to have his house burnt for doing
it: Who would seek justice from the tribunals, when
he knows he jeopardizes his own life by doing so: We
learn from the best' authority, that the archbishop has
been thoughtful enough to command his liege subjects,
not to use personal violence against us for fear of public
scandal. And the laws being insufficient for our protec-
tion, the papists in town praise the bishop for his mer-
ciful interposition! Who would wish to rouse the hatred
of people, who stop at nothing against their enemies or
for their adherents? Even the wretches who in cold
blood murdered poor Watson and Mercer, on the
Rail Road but the other day, for no other offence than
being Irish Protestants, are not wiftiout powerful friends
who are endeavouring to save them. And they will pro-
bably succeed. We have received repeated assurances that
secret petitions are circulating through the state, for their
pardon * Even the public press is sealed up. The other
day, the editor of the Gazette published a high eulogium
on the liberality of the Belgian Catholic Parliament, to
Protestants. We wrote him a short note offering: to fur-
nish him with the manifesto of the Catholic bishops of
this very Belgium, refusing submission to the free con-
stitution of that state, because said they, toleration of
any other sect, is contrary to our faith, our duty and our
* They were pardoned.
12 CARMELITE CONVENT IN BALTIMORE,
conscience. Now said we to the impartial protestant
editor, will you publish uthis manifesto?" If not will
you publish our note? Good Mr. Jones stood mute; and
so that affair ended.
We say again — these Carmelite nuns, are unable to get
out, let them desire it ever so much ! Why, will some
female say, I would jump out of the windows; I would
scream for help: — I would raise the whole town. We
suppose the unhappy female mentioned in the following
statement thought so too; and became desperate, and
made just such an attempt. How it ended, the day of
great account will reveal.
STATEMENT.
We whose names are subscribed hereto, declare and cer-
tify, that on or about the — day of — 183- — about nine
o f clock at night, as we were returning home from a meet-
ing in the Methodist Protestant church, at the corner of
Pitt and Aisquith streets; and when opposite to the Car-
melite Convent and school in Aisquith street, our at-
tention was suddenly arrested by a loud scream issuing
from the upper story of the convent* The sound
was that of a female voice, indicating great dis-
tress; we stopt and heard a second scream; and
then a third, in quick succession, accompanied with the
cry o/HELP! HELP! OH! LORD! HELP! with the
appearance of great effort. After this there ivas
nothing more heard by jus during the space often or fifteen
minutes; we remained about that time on the pavement
opposite the building from which the cries came.
When the cries were first heard, no light icas visible in
the fourth story, from which the cries seemed to issue.
After the cries, lights appeared in the second and third
stories, — seeming to pass rapidly from place to place, in-
dicating haste and confusion. Finally all lights disappear-
ed from the second and third stories, and the house be-
came quiet.
No one passed along the street where we stood, while we
stood there. But one of our party ivas a man, and he ad-
vanced in life; all the remainder of us were ivomen. The
watch was not set, as some of us heard 9 o' ) clock cried, be~
fore we got home.
CARMELITE CONVENT IN BALTIMORE. 13
Many of us have freely spoken of these things
their occurrence, And now at the request of Messrs. B.
fy 0. $* M. ire gmt this statement, whir1'
dare to be true; and sign it with our names.
John Bru&CUP,
La yi ma BROWN,
SOPIIONIA BllUSCUP,
Signed > TT t
Hannah Leach,
Sarah E. Baker,
J Elizabeth Polk.
Baltimore March 13th, 1835.
Cert if eat e of the .Minister.
This is in certify that John Bruscup, Hannah Leach,
Sophonia Bruscup, Lavinia Brown, and Sarah E. Baker,
are acceptable members of the Methodist Protestant
church, of Pitt street station.
Signed, William Collier, Sup't. Baltimore, March
12, 1835.
All the above named persons are known to us, and
hundreds in this community. Every one of them is wor-
thy of credit, separately. The Rev. Mr. Collier is a
Protestant Methodist, and has the charge of the church
at the corner of Pitt and Aisquith streets. The five first
certificants are members of the church he serves. The
sixth one is a Presbyterian. That the facts stated occurred
just as stated, no candid person can doubt. How those
facts are to be explained, we leave all to decide for them-
selves. For ourselves we take it, as perfectly clear, that
the unhappy sufferer from whom the screams proceeded,
needed, and would have thanked God for deliverance!
She would have come out from them if she could ; she
would have escaped as a bird out of the snare of the
fowler.
We take leave then to say,
1. This whole subject must be perfectly familiar to the
superior of this convent, and to the priest who resides
there as confessor to the establishment, and we demand
of them an explicit and' satisfactory account of this af-
fair; in default of receiving which, we shall put upon their
silence the only construction it can bear.
.2
14 CARMELITE CONVENT IX BALTIMORE.
•2. The archbishop of this diocese, ought to know that
Such transactions are perpetrated in this establishment
And if all his American feelings arc not swallowed up in
his vows and dutiesio the head offhe holj Roman state, we
expect and call upon him to ferrel out this transaction,
and relieve the public mind by a lull statement of the
affair.
3. To aid trim in his humane labours, (for ivhich we
trust he has leisure, as the terrapin frost of lent must
'now be over,) toe have to say, that we are ?'•"// assured that
two females have died within six months in tfic Carmelite
convent; and if he will furnish us with the date of their
deaths, then we ivill furnish him with the date of the ter-
rible affair, to which we now call his paternal notice.
4. We ask our lawT-makers and law executors, whether
their honest judgments do not tell them that such es-
tablishments ought either to be suppressed by law, or
subjected to the most rigid and constant scrutiny by the
civil authorities? If all the past, in all ages and countries,
does not prove that these nests of unmarried women,
under the despotic secret control of unmarried men, are
sure to be places for which they are fitly contrived — of
all cruelty, licentiousness, and wretchedness? Should such
terrible abodes of sin and folly be held sacred, in violating
human and divine laws, and oppressing and corrupting,
if not destroying free Americans, because their founders
and rulers do their misdeeds in the name of God?
5. We call upon the community at large to frown upon
such establishments. Let no man violate any law, even
bad ones. Let the persons, joroperty and rights of all be
held sacred. We are no Jesuits; ice know that no end can
justify any improper means. — But public sentiment can
be and ought to be enlightened, roused and turned with
irresistible power against these Nunneries. The laws
ought to be so made that the poor victims may get out:
they ought to be so executed that the civil authorities,
should statedly, constantly, promptly interfere, to see
what wrong is done, and redress it. — The rulers of these
convents ought to be brought to justice for crime, just
like all other criminals. — Children ought never to be sent
to their schools; — young ladies ought to be sedulously
QUESTIONS TO DETERMINE THE TRUE CHURCH. 15
kept from the influence of nuns and their confessors; and
the whole public mind be so informed, thai every poor girl
should know what a place and a fete she is seekifig,
when she sets her face towards these abodes of sorrow.
Oh! that God would deliver our land and our children
"From the strange woman, even from the stranger which
fiattcreth with words; which forsalcvth the guide of her
youth, and forgetteth the covenant of (lod. For her
house inclineth unto death, and her paths unto the deep;
NONE THAT GO UNTO HER RETURN AGAIN." PrOV. II.
1G— 19.
NUMBER III.
QUESTIONS TO DETERMINE THE TRUE CHURCH.*
Baltimore, March 11th, 1835.
Dear Madam,
Your note of to-day was handed to me an hour ago,
and as you seem urgent for some reply to it, I will say
what seems needful at once.
1. uWas there a visible church from the time of the
apostles up to the reformationV> is your first question.
How extensive the church of God may have been, in any
particular age ; or to how many, or to whom visible, it
may be impossible to say. But I answer, that for the
whole period you mention, there was undoubtedly visible
a church of God — and doubtless also apostate churches.
* If the following letter should meet the eye of the lady to whom it was
addressed in reply to a very urgent one from her, we rely on her goodness to
excuse its publication, for the following reasons: — The subject is one of
public and great interest; — the individual more particularly interested
cannot be identified except by some act of her own, past or future; the
points involved, all look to one great and most hacknied argument of the
papists, to prove the exclusive truth of their fatal system; — and the an-
swers to the questions seem to contain a perfectly conclusive, and in
some good degree, new overthrow of their absurd and wicked pretensions.
16 QUESTIONS TO DETERMINE THE TRUE CHURCH
2. "If so, name that ch/torch." The followers of Jesus
were first called Christians at Anlioch ; his true followers
are called so now, and have been called SO ever since.
Until the origin of the papacy, early in the sixth century,
the true church was called nothing else, generally^ but
Christian; and hereticks received their various names,
J\ricolaitans, &c. After the rise of the papacy till the
inning of the thirteenth century, about the origin of
the inquisition (embracing the mystic period of 666 years
spoken of in Scripture, and being the first part of the
1260 years that the true church was in the wilderness,)
the various sects gradually spread and gained ground,
and especially papists, or followers of the bishop of Rome,
who finally assumed the name of Roman, Catholic, and
Apostolical, leaving the true name of the true followers of
Jesus still Christian. But the papists becoming domi-
nant over all Europe, nicknamed the true followers of
Jesus, who constituted the true church, by various names
in various ages. Some they called Hussites, some Poor
men of Lyons, some Waldenses, &c. &c. Early in the
nineteenth century they gave us other names, as Luther-
ans, Protestants, &c. But the name of our church ever
preferred by us in all ages is Christian, in opposition to
Arianism, when it was triumphant, and to the Roman
Catholic Apostolic during its long rule. History, sacred,
ecclesiastical and profane, is full of proof cf the constant
existence of this true church of God.
3. "Where was it to be foundV In every country of
Europe, in great part of Asia, and in portions of Africa.
Considering that the Papists persecuted us for 1260
years, during 594 of wThich they brought the awful tribu-
nal of the inquisition to act upon our people every where;
considering that they burnt many of our books, that they
falsified many others by making us speak what we never
said, that they wrote absolute falsehoods upon us, and
that they prohibited all the world from reading what we
wrote, and all this lor so many hundreds of years; it is
little less than miraculous, that any trace of our existence
is to be found from the beginning of the sixth to the end
of the eighteenth century, a period equal to more than
a fifth part of the world's duration.
QUESTIONS TO DETERMINE THE TRUE CHURCH. 17
4. "At what period did the church of Rome apostatize*)"
If you will read the Bible and then the history of Euse-
bius, you will find that for 324 years after the birth of
Jesus, not a single distinguishing tenet of the Romish
church existed in the world. Transubstantiation, the
n sacrijicc, the adoration of Mary, the worship of
saints, the veneration of images and relics, the seven sa-
craments, articular confession, &c. &c. not one existed
in our true Christian church. The apostacy of Rome
commenced with the exercise \ of persecution, and was
complete when she became drunk uritk the blood of the
saints. In 532, or about that year, the emperor of Rome t
conferred on the bishop of Rome, power to produce con- ^
formity in doctrine by temporal punishment; here the \
apostacy began. About 1198, this power was more com-
pletely organized by the erection of the inquisition, at
the end of 666 years after the apostacy began, as the
scriptures had foretold. In 1545 the council of Trent
commenced its session, and at the end of eighteen years,
broke up in 1563. The cardinal Du Ferier, who was
ambassador of the king of France at that famous coun-
cil, entered his protest against every thing it had done !
When that council rose, the Papal apostacy was complete,
after a regular and downward career of folly and crime
for more than a thousand years ! From that time God;s
command is most express that his people should come
out of her, lest they be partakers of her sins ! Oh ! that
they would all obey the hallowed command, and flee
from a church, to which in all the Bible there is not one
promise, nor even one exhortation to repentance ; but
only wrath, and denunciation, and wo!
5. " What sect or society of Christians professed the
doctrines of the Protestant religion previous to the reform-
ation, name it or them?" What I have already said,
may be a complete answer to this question. But I will
add more. We can trace back our doctrines in our
blood, shed by Rome for holding them, up to the year
1100 and before; so that we have existed as the true
Christian church since then, Rome being judge. Dear
madam, they burned people, and incarcerated them seven
hundred and fifty years ago, for holding what I preach
2*
18 QUESTIONS TO DETERMINE THE TRUE CHURCH.
five or six times a week in this city. If they gave us
fifty nicknames, and told hundreds of lies on us, it is no
more than they do now. Let us now begin at the other
end of time, and we find that from the birth of Christ for
532 years, there was no lioruan Catholic and Ap&toHc
church established among men. But in that year we find
an emperor giving a bishop of Rome power to persecute
us. For what? For not agreeing with him. In what?
Why during the 568 years that intervened between 532
when he got the power, and 1100 when he began to use
it without the least remainder of compassion, even during
these dark 568 years, we find the evidence of our doc-
trines in the blood of our martyrs shed by Rome. And
oh ! shall any protestant Christian now ask what did that
butchery mean, what did that cruelty signify, who were
those martyrs — what names did they bear ? Alas ! Alas !
And now allow me to ask, why do you put such ques-
tions to me ? Do you doubt the reality of your hopes in
Christ, that your heart turns away to seek some other
trust ? If this be so, go to Jesus, and to his blessed word,
the real sources of light and support.
How can it effect the reality of religion, to have the
questions you have put perfectly solved or completely
darkened ? Or in what conceivable way would it benefit
the cause of the papacy, to show that it had reigned tri-
umphant in sin for a million of ages, li sitting in darkness
and drinking blood?"
She has corrupted and then hid the Scriptures ; she has
murdered and then slandered the saints ; She has degrad-
ed and then tyranized over the human race ; and now,
when by the most wonderful goodness of God, and the
rarest concurrence of blessed providences, we have dis-
covered her pollutions and shaken off her chains, and
seen the light of spiritual truth, and learned the power oi
the new birth in our own souls; she comes to claim a new
obedience by reason of the antiquity and exclttfciveness
of her enormities!
I wish you to bear with me, while I say two things :
which I try to do in meekness as well as in candour.
First, I do not believe that any sensible and educated
person who has been properly enlightened by previous
ROMANISM POLITICAL AND RELIGIOUS. 19
knowledge of the truth, ever did, can, or ever will beli<
the dogmas of the Roman faith, For my part, 1 candidly
confess, that I consider ii the most incredible of all ij
terns, not excepting atheism itself. It B are, in
short, incapable of belief. Secondly — 1 confidently be-
lieve that a faithful adherence to the comin the
Romish church as far as is possible, both in faith and in
practice, will necessarily prevent the salvation of the
soul. For that church is fatally and hopelessly aposta-
tized from God. R. J. B.
NUMBER IV.
ROMANISM POLITICAL AND RELIGIOUS.
This country has never witnessed any impression so
extensive and so profound, produced in so short a space
of time, as that which within a few years has been made
upon the public mind respecting the dangers of Roman-
ism to the nation. No men have ever had more reason
to rejoice in the manly and firm discharge of duty, than
those who so recently and so few in number, undertook to
sound an alarm to the American people on this subject.
The writings that denounced them are scarcely dry — be-
fore half the country is moved by the voice of their ap-
peal. The calumnies heaped upon them are yet trembling
on the lips of guilty men, and struggling from a dying-
press, — while the words of a whole awakened population,
and the voice of innumerable books, pamphlets, and
papers, and the echoes of hundreds of pulpits, declare
that there was need of effort, and that it has been made
with the utmost promise of complete success.
It would be the height of folly to pretend that this r«E -
suit has been produced entirely, by the direct efforts made
to awaken the country to the great and increasing evils
threatened by the papal superstition to this land. Very
20 ROMANISM POLITICAL AND RELIGIOU9.
much has been done, however, directly in that way — and
the result demonstrates, that there exists in our country
a real and deep seated religious public sentiment, which
is capable of being reached, roused, and concentrated,
for the safety of our faith, and the advancement of our
Master's cause. And Christians should learn to cherish
this noble sentiment, to understand its mighty power, and
to sustain and extend every instrument that is fit to foster
and wield it; and amongst the chiefest of them all, a
free, pure, able, extended religious periodical press. What
political newspapers are to the transient movements of
parties around us, so might the periodical religious press
be to the world, and the enduring interests of man. It
needs indeed, a better support and a wider diffusion; and
requires purgation — as to its own end, as well as its
common means. But, it is a mighty instrument, whose
power and value the world has yet to learn.
Exterior events and circumstances thrown together in
rapid succession; foreign agitations and movements, — ex-
traordinary domestic developements,--the operation of the
social elements of our great cities, — the progress of higher
education in schools and colleges, — the contact of re-
ligious sects, and many causes have developed this whole
papal subject, with amazing rapidity and effect. The
people understand in part — and the demand for more
light is urgent and insatiable. We suppose it may be
profitable therefore, to take a bird's-eye view of the real
state of the question, up to the present moment.
The Roman Catholic and Apostolical church, as she
vainly calls herself, from the beginning of her apostacy,
has been totally exclusive. Hence the foundation of her
claims to infallibility; hence her universal spirit of per-
secution; hence the inquisition, and the Jesuits; hence
the dreadful immorality of her code, and the unsparing
brutality of her long course of crime. The mother and
mistress of all churches, says the creed of Pius IV: hence
inferred the Rheims annotators, all heretics are at once
disobedient children and rebellious subjects — and their
punishment IS to be considered like thai of traitors and
thieves; afrd hence judged the Dominican, whose first duty
it was to be a spj on such impious rebles,that sincerity, and
ROMANISM POLITICAL AND RELIGIOUS. 21
honour, and faith, were idle words towards them; and
hence argued the holy tribunal of the inquisition, that
the double good of the reformation of heretics and the
spread of the church's pure influence might justii\ then
temporal death; and last and just as truly iVom the pre-
mises, hence concludes the reckless Jesuit, that the only
Service worth performing on earth is to reduce it back
again to that subjection to the vicar of Christ which he
who made it ordained that it should bear. The very
formularies of the Roman faith, make two parties of the
universe; the hierarchy with the Pope at its head, on one
side; — on the other, all mankind that will not be their
slaves. Their very creed draws a line, deep and broad
as the impassable gulf, between the world within, and
the world without the Romish faith. All must hold that
faith, be it what it may — or else says the substitute of
God, all the earth must die; this is the first, and is a re-
ligious proposition. They add the second to it, all the
world must be seduced or conquered into this faith, or be
cut off; this is a political proposition, commensurate with
the human race. Other religions, may assert the first —
in some qualified sense; but as they leave the election of
their faith or hell to the free choice of men, states may
safely listen to them all. This superstition alone, with
inextinguishable ardour, labours with a faith in its divine
truth, practically to enforce the second proposition; there-
fore It only remains for mankind to become papists — or
to extirpate papism from off the face of the earth, or to
exist in a state of ceaseless conflict. Such is the real
state of the case. As a religious question, every man is
as deeply interested in it, as he is in the question of being
saved or damned hereafter; for the papists assert their
faith to be indispensable to salvation; while all else be-
lieve their practices to be preclusive of it. As a political
question, every man has the same interest in it that he
has in being free, — being at peace — being the father of
his own children — the husband of his own wife — the
master of his own house — the owner of his own estate;
for all that exists of the history of this religio-political
heresy, proves it to be the most horrible of all tyrannies,
and the most corrupt of all social conditions compatible
with organized society.
22 ROMANISM POLITICAL AND RELIGIOUS.
The faith of Rome admits of no change that can make
an) mitigation of this question. An infallible bf
cannot admit that be bas erred. lb- \s the sj yer,
if lie be pure, Bfe what he may, whal he lias once done
lie must forever defend or cease to claim infallibility. If
he be evil, — and whal limn is riot? — 1<>M'; up such a pre-
tension is simply to make it sure, that he will defend most
tenaciously the vny- worst parte of his conduct If there
be any infallibility about Rome, it lies just here} the in-
fallible certainly thai being mi n her popes and councils
would egregiously err, in a long period of time; and that
having set up a contrary pretension, she would be certain
to cleave the closest to her worst practices, and defend
most intemperately her wildest absurdities. And so it
has been continually. Even when the reformation might
have been arrested by timely reform — wThen the Pope
himself, strange to say, admitted that reform to be indis-
pensible,andthe most steadfast friends of Rome urged it, —
the spirit of the hierarchy, and the deep seated power of the
principles here stated, defeated the good intentions of
Adrian VI. and precipitated the crisis so fatal to Rome.
That Pope, the preceptor of the emperor Charles V.
and a native of Germany, directed Cheregato, his le-
gate to the Diet of Nuremburg, in 1522, to admit that ex-
traordinary and manifold corruptions had crept into the
church. aMany abominable things" — says his instructions
to his legate, "have been committed in this holy chair for
"several years past. — Abuses in spiritual things, excesses
"in the mandates given, and in fine every thing changed for
"the worse. No wonder, therefore, that sickness should
"descend from the head to the members, from the elevated
"pontiffs to inferior prelates. In what relates to us, you
"will therefore promise, that we shall do our endeavours,
"that our court, from which perhaps all this evil has pro-
ceeded, undergo a speedy reform. If corruption has of
"late (lowed from it, sound doctrine and reformation shall
"now proceed from the same source. To this we shall ac-
count ourselves the more obliged to attend, as the whole
"world appears most ardently to desire the accomplish-
ment of such a reform. 1 hare accepted the Pontificate,
"that I might reform the spouse of Christ, assist the nc-
ROMANISM — POLITICAL AM) RELIGIOUS. 23
■fleeted and oppressed, and appropriate to //<■ and
rtuous, the money which has of late been squandi
i grooms and stage-players." About a year alter tl
instructions were written, a proposition was made to the
Diet from a quarter friendly to the church of Rome, and
seriously recommended, that priests should be prohibited
\eddHng in traffic, from frequenting taverns,
and from keeping CONCUBINES." Indeed this very
Diet of Nuremberg, whilst it declared in favour of the edict
of that of Worms, virtually silencing all discussion till the
call of a general council, and provisionally suspending even
the functions of the reformed preachers, at the same mo-
ment issued the famous Centum Gravamina, containing one
hundred ecclesiastical grievances under which they labored,
and exhibiting the most terrible corruptions, both of faith and
practice in the popish church. (See Seckendorf, p. 225.
Sleid. 1. iv. Jac. Frid. Gcorgii Gravamina Germanorum,
ke. 1. ii. p. 327. Boiver's Life of Luther, p. 210 — 17 and
342. ) Of course, all these admissions, promises and recom-
mendations came to nothing. The worst evils then complain-
ed of stillcontinue,incountries where the Catholic is the only
religion; the worst dogmas of the church still being those
most steadily enforced. There have been more people
burnt at the stake, for denying the doctrine of transubstan-
tiation, than for any other pretended heresy : a doctrine
which contradicts every sense a man has, all the reason he
can command — the principles of three or four sciences, and
those amongst the most exact — and is at the same moment,
against the word of God, and the honour of Jesus Christ.
A dogma in short, which is simply incapable of belief, as
a truth, and if true, would be so stupendously horrible and
brutal, that a man might almost be justified in refusing cre-
dence to his senses, his reason, and his very consciousness,
backed by the best proofs of science, rather than credit the
amazing impiety involved in the supposition, that he could
create and swallow a hundred millions of Gods! Matter is
infinitely devisible; and the Council of Trent has decided
that Christ exists whole and entire, soul, body, blood and
divinity, in every particle of both sacraments!!
In truth, the church of Rome, as she cannot, does not
pretend to be capable, any more than desirous of reform.
24 R0MAIS7SM — POLITICAL AND RELIGIOUS
She is unalterable. Therefore, we find at this moment,
school books printed and put in circulation in Catholic
countries, filled with instructions absolutely at war with all
sense of shame; and books of devotion printed in the United
States for common use, tint shock all decency, by the utter
beastliness of their allusions. Thus too, the most extrava-
gant fooleries of the darkest ages are enacted, amid the light
of the nineteenth century; and enlightened men pretend to
believe that the Holy Ghost inspired ignorant and barbarous
ecclesiastics, who pronounced the original tongues in which
God spoke to his prophets, recent inventions of the devil;
and free citizens of the United States, expect to merit
heaven, by regulating their diet after the prescriptions of an
unhappy and silly old man at Rome! Nay the highest
toned doctrines of the trans-alpine party, in popish politico,
are held and taught, and practised all over the world, where
Jesuits exist, with reference to the power and influence of
the Pope, — as fully as they were declared by Lainez, the
second general of their order, at the council of Trent three
centuries ago.
A concatination of circumstances has exposed, and will
continue to expose this nation to more than a common share
of the danger to which all are subject, from the intrigues of
this superstition. Every distinctive feature of our social
system encourages attempts against us; and every move-
ment in the elements of the decaying and renovating systems
of the old world has a tendency to throw off upon us the
worst portions of their population. The suppression of the
monasteries in Portugal and Spain, and the expulsion of
the Jesuits from the latter, all occurring under the new and
more liberal order of things in both states; the free tolera-
tion of the Protestant religion in France, since the revolu-
tion of 1 830, for the first time, in the same degree, since
the revocation of the edict of Nantz, — thus raising up a
practical exposure of papism, and restraining its absurdities
by an open contempt, all over France, and in the same de-
gree making the priests uneasy, and disposed to find new
abodes; — the very reform bill of England, which restrain-
ing suffrage to a point above the reach of most papists out
of Ireland, and the still more momentous act to papists,
namely, the one for Catholic emancipation, drawn by Sir
ROMANISM POLITICAL AND RELIGIOUS. 26
Robert Peel himself, in which there is an express < lause,
excepting the Jesuits from all participation in the benefits
of the act, and excluding them from Britain; a thousand
contingencies abroad arc driving them upon as. On the
other hand, every thing lino invites them. Our public
improvements give them immediate and constant employ-
ment, at very liiii.li wages; while the priests, i'roiu tin- re-
gular levies on such its live and the constant plunder oi
such as die, live in luxury and project extensive churches,
with inquisitions under them, and nunneries beside them
— for the joint exercise of their malevolence and
suality, the leading passfous— -which their rules cherish.
Our commercial treaties open a direct trade in German
and Irish Catholics, which lands nothing short of one
hundred thousand every year on our coasts. Into Balti-
more alone, about ten thousand Germans, most of them
papists, are brought annually from the free cities in the
north of Germany,— in vessels, returning laden with to-
bacco, at rates so low as to drive our own ships from ex-
porting our own products. Our naturalization laws al-
low all these people to become American citizens in five
years. And nearly every state in the Union allows every
such person, over twenty-one years of age, to vote at all
our elections as soon as he is naturalized: a right they
never had at home, and are unfit to have any where; dan-
gerous to us, and of no personal advantage to them. Be-
cause, the most of them are not only entirely ignorant
of our condition, our system, and our policy, but are the
most degraded and brutal w^hite population in the world,
and appear to be utterly insensible that public order is a
good, that obedience to law is a virtue as well as a benefit,
or that human blood is more precious than that of unclean
beasts. And whether wise or stupid, good or bad, their
priests control their votes, direct their combinations, en-
courage their violence, attempt to shield them from pun-
ishment,—extenuate their ill conduct, and are their ab-
solute directors. It is settled truth in all our great cities,
that the word of the priest, is more powerful than the cord
of the hangman; and hundreds of people have seen mobs
quelled by the voice of a foreign priest, w^hen the whole
power of our laws was defied. Indeed, father Mcllroy.
3
26 ROMANISM — POLITICAL AND RELIGIOUS.
of Frederick city, in Maryland, has received, if we are
rightly informed, a vole of thanks and a present perhaps
M plate, from the Baltimore and Ohio Rail Iload Compa-
ny, lor quelling a riot which the laws of .Maryland could
not arrest, among a gang of ruffians that the citizens of
two of our counties, in mere self defence, were forced to re-
solve in public meeting, to drive forever from their vicin-
age, with arms in their hands. In Michigan, in New-
York, in the west, in the south, every where, the priests
secretly control the foreign Catholic vote; -<)iu\ that vote
decides our elections! By the way, our old friend. Bishop
England will oblige us by letfing us know, what he
did with priest O'Neal, whom he removed from Colum-
bia, S. C., as was supposed, for disagreeing with and
thwarting his lordship in his political schemes?
Now if our priests were men of reasonable intelligence
and attainments, which commonly they are not; if they
really understood and loved our system, which ordinarily
they do not; if they were Americans, instead of being
generally foreigners; if they held a pure and moral system
of religion instead of a most depraved and monstrous
one; if they were the very best instead of amongst the
very worst men in the land; it must be perfectly clear to
every thinking man, that it would be eminently wrong in
a social state resembling ours, to permit them to hold
and exert the enormous and irresponsible powers which
reside in their hands. But the fact is, every priest is in
abject and sworn subjection and fidelity to a foreign au-
thority; a prince absolutely represented by diplomatic
agents in our owTn country, (the Pope has a consul now
residing in this city;) a sovereign whose states are as
really his, as those of any other prince are his, — and who
besides his local sovereignty, which is most despotic over
his own kingdom,— and his universal supremacy claimed
over all the citizens of all countries on earth, and his di-
rect power as the vicar of Christ, over every thing that
Christ could control, if he were personally present ; be-
sides all these, has ever claimed and exercised the
most insolent power over all the kingdoms of the world,
—dethroning princes,— releasing subjects from oaths of
allegiance,— taking crowrns from one head and placing
ROMANISM POLITICAL AND RELIGIOUS. 27
them on another, — extirpating whole states by cruel wars
— dashing nations against each other in furious conflict —
parcelling out whole continents as gifts to his \asM-!s, —
and emptying one quarter of the earth in exterminating
crusades upon another! These priests that exercise this
power over the destinies of this great nation, are as many of
them as are Jesuits, sworn to unquestioning obedience
to a foreign subject of a foreign prince; and still farther
sworn to unlimited devotion to the Pope of Rome, to
whom their general is devoted by oath; and every one of
them that is a bishop has taken a solemn oath at his con-
secration to the head of the Roman state, the terrible
power indicated above, more specific and more minute
than any oath of allegiance any other state ever ad-
ministered. They receive their offices from this foreign
sovereign, directly and universally; although the constitu-
tion of the United States expressly discountenances any
obligation from its citizens to any "king or foreign state"
— positively prohibiting that portion of the people in its
service from receiving in that way, either "present,
emolument, office or title, of any kind whatever," (sec. ix.
7.) How did Sir Charles Constantine Pise get over
the direct force of this article, wTho being in the enjoyment
of titles if not emoluments received from Rome, was at
the same moment in the service of Congress? And what
have the senators to say who elected him? And what
have all the bishops to say, against the spirit of this article?
And what have our courts and district attorneys to say,
that they do not require all priests, Jesuits and bishops of
this sect to renounce the Pope of Rome when they take
the oath of allegiance? And what has bishop England
to say, as to his being legate from the Pope to Hayti, and
still pretending to be a republican and an American
citizen?
This is the spirit of the papacy to day, as much as it was
when the popes caused the Albigenses to be butchered,
or the Bohemians to be pursued like beast of the chase
in the thirteenth and fifteenth centuries. Since we com-
menced writing this article, news has been received
in this country, that all the toils and sacrifices of twenty
years of revolution are to be thrown away through the
28 ROMANISM POLITICAL AND RELIGIOUS.
intrigues of the same priests, that have caused so many
calamities already to Mexico. The constitution of that
unfortunate people is to be set aside foi the sake of the
priests and their servile banditti, who call themselves
soldiers of the republic; and under the dictation of Santa
Anna, as tool 6f the ecclesiastics, all civilization, all free-
dom, and all religion must be crushed! The plan of To-
LUCA, settled already by the priests and the armed mob,
converts a representative republic like our own, into a
great central system; and the very second article of the
project declares, "that the constitution to be established,
must be based on the acknowledgment exclusive-
ly of the Catholic Apostolic Roman Religion!!"
This bears date May 29, 1835. Preparatory to this,
on the 25th of April preceding, the Mexican govern-
ment issued a decree annulling the laws of the states
of Coahuilla and Texas, relative to emigration, thus
throwing insuperable obstacles in the way of the settle-
ment of North Americans in those states. And now in
Guatimala, the same devotion of the priests the Jesuits
and the bishops to Rome, and the same submission of the
people to the ecclesiastics, which have desolated so many
lands, are breaking all the bands of society in sunder. For-
merly, thejpriests ruled with absolute power in Guatimala;
then the revolution succeeded, and nature and common
sense had the sway for a brief space. During this inter-
val oflight,the supreme power declared it lawful for priests
to marry. God and nature, and morality and the world
had said the same always. So, many priests married, —
and became moral and decent men. But by and by,
Rome ordered the law to be repealed; the state of Guati-
mala obeys: and the priests have the option of returning
to their former state of concubinery relationship, under
pretence of chastity, or of ceasing to be priests. The
state is Catholic like Mexico; in both cases, Rome and
Romish emissaries dictate the fundamental laws. Shall
they do the same here?
If it be possible they will effect it. Their religious
doctrines and practices are peculiar and constitute a
system which they assert to be different from every other
in so high a degree, that theirs is indispensable to salva-
ROMANISM POLITICAL AND RELIGIOUS. 29
tion; and which all else, whether Christian, Jew, Ma-
hometan, pagan or atheist, pronounce to be both false
and dangerous. To establish the universal and exclu-
sive sway of this system, is their avowed, sworn, concert-
ed, ceaseless object. In pursuing this object, every tie
of nature, every principle of virtue, every dictate of reason,
every command of God has been in succession, and still
is treated as altogether of secondary importance. As the
means of success — they have as they boast, two hun-
dred millions of the human race, — the most stupendous
csiastical organization, the absolute control over the
minds, bodies, and goods of their followers; the support
and aid of many kings and states; the certain promise of
God, and the abiding presence of his vicar amongst the
confiding hosts. As the reward of their success, they
look for universal indulgence, unlimited power, absolute
supremacy on earth, and endless glory in heaven! What
a mixture of power and enthusiasm, and passion, and
gigantic superstition! What a force — what a prize!
On the other hand their spirit is adverse to the spirit
of the age; their system is contrary to the common sense
of men; their tyranny is odious to every impulse of na-
ture ; every motive that stops on this side the grave im-
pels their own people, every one — every moment to for-
sake them; and every motive that looks into that dark fu-
ture beyond death, impels every being unsubdued to
their superstition, to release the world from their degra-
ding chains. With us, are freedom, light, the whole force
of movement, the power of knowledge, and the consola-
tions of eternal hope! God and the right are ours; — and
we already see the sure approach of that blessed day, when
this "synagogue of satan" will be razed, and the "mo-
ther of harlots" who has ruled in it will be "fallen;"
and all the "kings of the earth" whom she has made
"drunk with the wine of her fornication" will cast her
off forever; and all the saints of God, whose blood has
been so long "found in her," will unite in one solemn
thanksgiving to him who hath overcome her "by the
spirit of his mouth," and delivered them and the world
from her hands, like a bird escaped out of the fowler's
snare!
3'
30 ROMANISM POLITICAL AND RELIGIJl S.
All that is worth contending for upon earth, is direct-
ly staked on this contest. It must be vehement; it may
be protracted. It is joined already; it can end only in
the perfect triumph of one or the other interest. As a
religious question, the great bodypf the most active, en-
lightened, and devoted servants of God all over the world,
are already engaged in its investigation, or have before
this made themselves acquainted with it. As a political
question, every nation having or desiring freedom, con-
templates it with profound attention. Mexico ;md Guate-
mala in South America ; France, Spain, Portugal, Greece,
and England, in Europe; Canada, New England, N<
' York, Maryland, Pensylvania, in North America; are at
this moment agitated with this overwhelming discussion.
Lord John Russel, lost his election in one of the most
enlightened counties in England, where his family influ-
ence had long been supreme and his own popularity irre-
sistible, by being suspected of throwing the patronage of
the Irish government into the hands of O'Connell. At
this moment in the great state of Pennsylvania, this
controversy is about to decide in part, all her elections ;
and the indications are not obscure, that it must enter
largely into others still more important.
Away then writh all fear and all indifference! They
who dread to meet this question, are in effect subdued al-
ready. They who are indifferent to it, are either pro-
foundly ignorant, or criminally remiss concerning the
most stupendous and induring interests of man. Thev
who fancy themselves superior to it, — should remember
that Roman proconsul who pronounced the Christian
system, even wdien Paul was before him, to be unworthy
pf his august consideration, as being merely a question of
names and words; or that savage chief who, naked and
illiterate in his distant and unknown village, demanded of
a traveller who chanced to find his hut, — what Europe
thought of him? The cold skepticism of the learned,
no less than the ludicrous s< lf-complacericy of the unen-
lightened barbarian, sprung from a vanity, alike ignorant
and childish. But let us take courage. For the religion
of Jesus M.ept overthe beautiful regions of Achala, even
though the brother of Seneca dispised it; and the wave
THE ANTIQUITY OF THE PROTESTANT FAITH. 31
of civilization will yet'pass its fertilizing stream over the
grave oi* that nameless garage, who did not know what
civilization meant.
NUMBER V.
THE ANTIQUITY OF THE PROTESTANT FAITH.
question is more frequently nor more triumphantly
put to protestants, by ignorant papists than this : Where
nas your religion before Luther ? To which it was no
bad answer, where was your face before you washed it ?
But the truth is, that there are several methods of
showing that the principles now professed by protestants
as a body, are not only as old as the days of Christ, but
that they are the very same which he taught, and which
he came into the world to make known for the salvation
of men.
First, Catholics themselves being judges, the entire
word of God as contained in the scriptures of the Old
and New Testaments, were inspired by the Holy Ghost.
Therefore, he who holds and teaches the very same things
which the Bible holds and teaches, must hold and teach
doctrines as old as the days of our Saviour; and which
can be no younger than the day when the canon of Scrip-
ture was completed. Whenever therefore, a protestant
is asked how old his religion is, he has only to prove by
some portion of holy writ, the disputed doctrine; and then
he can confidently say, it is as old as the times of our
blessed Saviour.
Now, whether we really have the word of God or not.
— and whether we really understand that which we have
or not, are questions which we are always ready to dis-
cuss with infidels and papists; — and the affirmative of
which can be demonstrated past the possibility of a rea-
sonable doubt; and is certain beyond all dispute, by the
32 THE ANTIQUITY OF THE PROTESTANT FAITH.
indwelling influence's of the Word and Spirit, in every re-
generate heart. Therefore, let the heathen rage, and the
priests imagine vanity; our hope is sure.
But secondly, besides this accurate and venerable ev-
idence, we have other and most ample proofs, of an ex-
ternal kind, of" the long continued, uninterrupted, and
pure existence of our faith on earth. The fact is, if the
Roman Catholic church had never existed in the world, —
we would have had abundantly more proof of the pure
succession of the church of God on earth, than we now
have. Because the chief objects of her existence have
been to banish the scriptures, to corrupt the church, to
degrade the human race, to kill the saints of God, and
to cover the earth with palpable darkness. How vast
and how glorious, would have been the living monu-
ments to God, erected in whole nations which that church
has butchered — that would now stand forth to bless our
eyes, if she had never existed? Alas! our hearts sink
within us when we contemplate the evil she has done —
and dwTell on the probable condition of the human race,
at this moment, but for the dire influence of the Latin
church. Yet the very breadth of her errors and crimes
affords us evidence of the continued existence of the
truth, in the hearts and lives of those who resisted her
sway, or died beneath her strokes. The African churches
of the early ages, — the various Asiatic churches, espe-
cially the Nestorians, — the Greek church, — the Culdees
in Ireland — the Waldenses in the south of Europe — the
Moravians and Bohemians in the east of Europe, — the
writings of the early Greek and Latin fathers, — the
army of martyrs — have handed down to us evidence of
the constant existence of those who did not bow the knee
to Baal. Although we cannot vouch for all the dogmas
of all those who have been better taught than Rome, any
more than all the protestant sects of our own day, would
be willing to subscribe to every peculiarity of each; yet
as now we ail rejoice to acknowledge that each of the
evangelical denominations holds the head, — against the
apostate bishop of Rome who holds in unrighteousness
what little truth he knows; — so also it must fill our hearts
with unfeigned joy to receive new and dear evidences,
THE ANTIQUITY OF THE PROTESTANT FAITH. 33
that the true followers of our Master through the long
course of ages, have held essentially the very same vi< \\-
of divine truth which we now call Protestantism, and
that the same faith which they died for, is that which we
are comforted in of God, to-day.
We ask attention, at present, to a few facts in regard to
one of those early and persecuted sects, whose blood was
amongst the precious seed of the church of Christ.
The Vaudois were found at a very early day in Langue-
doc, from the city of Albi in which department they
were said by some to be called Albigenses; while others
derive their names from Peter Waldo, a merchant of Lyons
in the south of France. It is certain that they gave great
uneasiness to Rome, many centuries ago. For as early
as the year 1179, Alexander III. after eighteen years
of bloodshed in contests with half of Europe, about his
right to be pope, which was contested successively by
Victor IV., Paschal III., and Calixtus III.; — found
time to call a great council in the Lateran, and condemn
and excommunicate the Vaudois. How natural ! that
when the opposing tyrants agreed, they should celebrate
their orgies, by the sacrifice of the most excellent of
mankind ! How appropriate ! that the very council which
settled the details of the proper mode of investing writh
all the powers of earth and heaven, him who in God's
temple, exalts himself above God himself; should signal-
ize the event by an edict for the extirpation of all the
real followers of God, then known to them throughout
Europe ! The council of Lateran settled the papal dis-
putes, adjusted all the rules for future elections, and cursed
the fairest portion of the earth !
But who were these Vaudois^ We answer that ques-
tion by referring the reader to any church history in his
reach, but especially to two little volumes in common
use ; we allude to Joneses History of the Waldenses; and
the History of the Crusades against the Albigenses, taken
out of Sismondi's great History of France. At present,
we wish to show what these Vaudois wTere. In doing
this, we will cite only Roman Catholic authority.
And first, a Dominican named Reiner who by his
own confession had been one of the heresiarchs, as he
34 THE ANTIQUITY OF THE PROTESTANT FAITH.
terms it, that is a chief person among the Vaudois, whom
he, after his apostacy, denounced and wrote a book
against. Of all sects he pronounces this, which he also
calls Leonists, to be the most dangerous ; and that for
these reasons. First, because they arc the most ancient
of all, having existed as some suppose, from the time of
Silvester, or as others say, from the time of the apostles.
Secondly; they are the most widely diffused, there being
hardly any country into which they have not penetrated.
Thirdly, because while all other sects produce horror by
their execrable blasphemies against God, this on the
contrary, has a great appearance of piety ; for they live
justly towards men, and they believe nothing concerning
God which -is not good; but they blaspheme against the
Roman church, and against the clergy, by which means
they attract crowds of people. He then proceeds to reduce
their sentiments into three classes: 1. Blasphemies against
the Roman church, her statutes, and her clergy: 2. Errors
touching the sacraments and the saints: 3. Their horri-
ble detestation of all the excellent and approved customs
of the church. Whereupon he enters into along detail
unde* each class, not pretending to charge them with any
error except their total indifference or decided oppo-
position to all the peculiarities of Rome. (See Biblioth
Pat. torn. iv. part ii. page 749)
These were pretty good protestants,— -if their apostate
brother is worthy of credit. But we wrill cite another
witness who must be perfectly unexceptionable, to all
Catholics at least. This is no less a personage than
JEneas Sylvius, one of the most accomplished scholars
and elegant writers of his day; who was about the year
1458, elected pope, under the name of Pius II. We
have then the advantage of infallible authority, as to the
fact of the real opinions of the Vaudois. The dogmas
of this pestiferous faction, says he, which has been so
long condemned (viz: since the Lateran council in 1179)
are as follows:
1. The pope of Rome is no more than any other
bishop.
2. There is no difference amongst priests (clergy) ;
they ought to be distinguished only by excellence of life,
not by dignity of office.
THE ANTIQUITY OF THE PROTESTANT FAITH. 35
3. As soon as the soul leaves the body, it is immedi-
ately conveyed to eternal peace or pain.
4. There is no purgatory.
5. It is useless to pray for the dead, — a practice in-
vented by the priests through avarice.
6. Images of God or the saints ought not to be used.
7. It is mere mockery to use blessed water, and boughs
of trees. •
8. The orders of mendicant monks, are inventions of
the devil.
9. Priests should be content with poverty, and volun-
tary contributions for their support.
10. Every human being has a right to proclaim the
truths of the gospel.
11. It is not lawful to commit sin to avoid the great-
est evil.
1*2. All ecclesiastical persons who commit mortal sin,
lose their dignity and are not to be obeyed.
13. Neither confirmation given by bishops with chrism,
nor extreme unction, is to be considered a sacrament,
14. Auricular confession is contemptible, it is enough
to confess sins to God.
15. Baptism is to be administered with pure water,
without any mixture of oil.
16. The use of consecrated burial grounds was intro-
duced for the sake of gain, it being immaterial in wThat
ground the body is buried.
17. The earth is the temple of God.
18. Hence they who found churches, monasteries, and
oratories, err in supposing that God's majesty is limited,
or that he is more propitious in one place than another.
19. The sacerdotal vestments, the ornaments of altars,
the robes, the corporals, the chalices, the patines, and
other utensils of this kind are all useless.
20. It is immaterial at what time or place the sacra-
ment of the supper is administered ; it is only important
to repeat the words of institution and distribute the ele-
ments to those who desire it.*
*Sacerdotem, quocunque loco, quocunque tempore, sacrum Christi
corpus conficere posse, petentibusque, nrinistrare sufficere, si verba sacra-
znentalia tandum dicat.
36 THE ANTIQUITY OF THE PROTESTANT FAITH.
21. It is useless to implore the intercession of the
sainl ! who reign in heaven, since they are unable to do
us any good.
22. To chant canonical hours is time lost.
2:j. The sabbath is the only day on which it is neces-
sary to abstain from labour.
24. Saints days ought to be entirely rejected.
25. There is no merit in observing the fasts establish-
ed by the church. — (See JEneas Sylvius Hist. Bohem.
chap. xxxv. p. m. 68.)
There are very few of these twenty-five heresies de-
nounced as pestiferous, by " our soverign lord pope
Pius II." nearly four hundred years ago, which every
protestant in the world does not hold now. But a gen-
eral council met at Rome nearly three hundred years be-
fore that, had under the eye, and by the direction of " the
sovereign pontiff Alexander III." pronounced these opin-
ions to be damnable heresies, the people who held them
to be accursed of God, all their abettors to be excommu-
nicated, their lands forfeited, their children bastards, their
country a prey for the first that w^ould take and waste it
with fire and sword, and every prince and state accursed
that would not unite to execute this decree, and every
soldier made certain of heaven that would lend his aid in
enforcing it. Will the papists of our times say this is
not binding on them ? Then what becomes of the infal-
libility of the pope ; the authority of general councils ;
the promise of Christ to guide them all, as they say ? The
council of Lateran decided by the indwelling aid and au-
thority of the Holy Spirit; therefore, its decisions ought
to be as binding as the word of God ; and so papists be-
lieve, or ought to believe, according to their own princi-
ples. As to any pretence of the ignorance of those ages,
and of the men wTho did these things ; we humbly con-
ceive, that JEneas Sylvius, from whom wre quote, was as
The reader will perceive at once, that the Pope whose statements wc
are quoting, gives such a turn to the expression, as to put his own words
into the mouths of the Vaudois. This is not the only instance in this
catalogue. In such cases, we give the obvious meaning of the here-
tics.
THE ANTIQUITY OF THE PROTESTANT FAITH. 37
much superior in talents to bishop England, and in at-
tainments to archbishop Whitefield, (except their judg-
ment of liquors, by dealing in which the hitter made his
fortune,) as he was above them both in official rank.
This is not the spirit of any age, nor any condition of ig-
norance. It is the spirit of a false, turbulent, bloody
superstition, which is alike adapted to every rank and
condition of sin. It is the spirit of the Roman Catholic
apostolic church, which God in his holy word has again
and again cursed as the fountain of all evil to his owyat
pure and persecuted church; and whose total overthrew
is indispensable to the final triumph of peace on earth,
and the permanent existence of good will amongst men.
Through the testimony then of these popish witnesses,
we carry back the faith and worship of Protestants six
hundred and eighty years at one step. At that high era,
we find our strength so great as to demand a crusade
against our people ; our faith so pure as to be nearly as
we now hold it, even when detailed by our enemies ;
so ancient as to be admitted of apostolical origin ; so dif-
fused as to spread in every land ; so reasonable as to
commend itself to all men ; so humble as to be like piety !
Here then, is a small account of ourselves, extending fif-
teen centuries before Luther.
But where was the Catholic church before Luther ?
That is a question we should like to see answered.
Where is it since Luther ? That is another question we
want light on.
As to the Scriptures, very few had them before Luther.
He was a learned and rather distinguished man, before
he had ever seen the complete word of God. Most of
the monks, nearly all the secular clergy for centuries be-
fore Luther, had no Bibles ; they were too corrupt to love
them, if they had had them ; and they were too ignorant
to read them, if they had desired it ever so much. The
council of Trent made the Catholic Bible ; that church
had no standard Bible before. That council, after Lu-
ther, fixed up a Bible for papists, and fixed it wrong as
to its matter, wrong as to its form, and wrong as to its
use !
3S THE ANTIQUITY OF THE PROTESTANT FAITH
What was the creed of the Roman church before Lu-
ther? Their present creed was concocted by the council
of Trent, and Pius IV. Between them, they added four-
teen articles to the creed, neither of whieh was in any
creed before, and every one of whieh was false, and near-
ly every one absurd, and most of the fourteen embracing
fundamental heresy !
Here is a pretty pretence to antiquity, leaving the truth
of her tenets totally out of the question. The protestant
faith is the faitli taught in the Hebrew and Greek Scrip-
tures, (which are well translated in the common English
version of the Bible ,) which Scriptures are as old as the
times between John and Moses at least. The poor pap-
ists have no Bible, but only a corrupt and redundant
Latin translation of the Septuagint; to which the council
of Trent met the other day, as we may say, added sixteen
books never inspired by God, unnumbered traditions nevei
yet defined, several cart loads of the writings of the fa-
thers who contradict each other on a thousand subjects,
and the unknown future decisions of unborn popes and
uncalled councils. This they call their rule of faith ; and
by w^ay of making the matter as ridiculous as possible.,
say that Christ established it !
The protestant symbol of faith, commonly called the
apostle's creed, is surely of very early origin, perhaps the
result of the joint labors of the apostles themselves. And
so the church of Rome admits. But here, a little while
back, a few ignorant bishops, corrupt scholars and am-
bitious monks, met at a little place in one corner of Eu-
rope; and after deliberating eighteen years in the midst
of all sorts of intrigues, debaucheries and scandals, caused
fourteen articles to be added to our ancient protestant
apostolical creed, by a lewd fellow of the baser sort, called
John Angelo de Medici, who in 1560 changed his name te
Pius IV., and pretended himself to be a vice-Christ I And
still these poor people, who have neither pure Bible nor
true creed of any age ; and whose false creed and cor-
rupt rule of faith, are both created as to any potential va-
lidity since Luther, prate about the antiquity of thetf
church f
WORSHIP IN AN UNKNOWN TONGUE, &C 39
For our part, we consider a young virtue better than a
very old vice ; a truth but yesterday discovered, better
than a lie as old as creation. And therefcfre we stake
but a very small part of the real claims <>!' the protestant
faith upon its age. It is its truth, its excellence, its
heavenly origin and tendency that make us love it. That
Noah knew my Redeemer, was his blessedness ; but that
I know him is just as sure, and just as precious to my
soul, let Noah's fate be what it might. The truth how-
ever is, that the world has had but one true Lord, the
universal church in heaven and earth but one evangelical
faith, the soul of man but one baptism of fire and the
Holy Ghost. And it is alike good and grateful, to be-
hold in all the past, the clear evidences of this sacred and
consoling truth.
NUMBER VI.
WORSHIP IN AN UNKNOWN TONGUE: GREGORY VII. AND
THE BOHEMIAN CHURCHES,
The Bohemian church was originally Greek. Bohemia
and Moravia were converted to Christianity through the
instrumentality of Methodius, and Cyril Constantine
surnamed the philosopher, who were Greek monks of
the order of St. Basil, and who were sent out by the em-
press Theodora and her son Michel, — at the solicita-
tion of Suantopulc the elder king of Moravia; who see-
ing the labours of these monks amongst the Bulgarians,
Mysians and other neighboring states, desired the ad-
vantages of Christianity for his own people. This hap-
pened about the middle of the ninth century.
At a very early period, after these nations had nominal-
ly embraced Christianity, the bishops of Rome commen-
ced their attempts to seduce all who spoke the Sclavoni-
an language into the same condition, which early in the
40 WORSHIP IN AN UNKNOWN TONGUE!
thirteenth century they enforced by fire and sword upon
those states speaking the Romanesque languages in the
south of Europe. The kingdom of Aragon, the entire
southern quarter of France, Piedmont, &c. — standing
like a garden of the Lord in the midst of surrounding
darkness, were/utterly sacked and emptied, like an unclean
garment, by the brutal crusaders, at the call of the popes
of Rome, just about six centuries ago, for being in effect
Protestants. The records of the world scarcely exhibit
a more heart stirring detail, than that which Sismondi has
given in a few chapters of his great History of France,
of this catastrophe. A scene nearly similar was enact-
ed on the western frontier of Europe during the fifteenth
century, embracing the period commencing with the
council of Constance, including the intervening war in
Germany for the extirpation of the religion of God as
held and taught by the followers of Hus, and terminat-
ing perhaps with the council of Basle. We may justly
designate those periods so little known, and yet so preg-
nant with truth and interest, as the suppression of the first
and second reformation; the attempt of Luther, being in
fact, the third reformation.
The Bohemians and their neighbours were not at once
reduced to the Roman yoke. Or rather adhering most
pertinaciously to the doctrines and rites of the Greek
church, always a purer church than the Latin, and then
purer than now, — it was not until after six hundred years
of resistance on their part, often of the most heroic
kind, and the like duration of effort on the part of Rome,
marked always by falsehood and treachery, and often by
cruelty and blood; that these brave and simple people
were crushed into slavery, to the power and superstition
of Rome.
The nature of those dogmas and pretensions of Rome
which first excited the opposition of the Bohemians, Mo-
ravians, &c. may be conceived in some degree, from the
following expressions of Photius, patriarch of Constan-
tinople. "The joy which we had conceived, on the
"conversion of the Bulgarians, is changed into sorrow
uand confusion; for scarcely have two years elapsed since
"this nation embraced pure Christianity, before these im-
GREGORY VII. AND THE BOHEMIAN CHURCHES. -11
"pious and execrable men comi land of dark-
"ness, (for they are from the w< ilegiously ra\
"the vineyard of the Lord.?' Then foil
tionofthed^ :■_ I practices which the Latin bid]
wished to introduce into J] on Saturu
"stuffing themselves with milk and cheese during the
"first week of lent, forbidding the p m marrying^
"confirming anew those who had been already c
"by the Greek pri> r the pretext that the p.
iico incd exclusively to bishops^ finally
"denying that the Spirit proceeded from the Father al
iibut ascerting that it proceeded from t)
"So/i." As yet these people had not been denied
cup in the sacrament, nor the use of their own language
in public worship. According to the Jesuit Balbin,
pope John XIV. in the year 976 confirmed Dithrnar to
be bishop of Prague, upon the condition that the Latin
guage alone should be used in public worship. Here-
upon the Bohemians sent a deputation to Rome; and ob-
tained from Gregory V. in 977, a repeal of this condi-
tion, and the restoration of the Greek rites, and of course,
the use of the vernacular language. For half a century
more, the contest continued with various fluctuations, —
between the two parties. Gradually, the nobility attach-
ed themselves to the party of Rome, but still the common
people adhered to their ancient faith and system of wor-
ship: and the popes of Rome some times used guile
and connived at their departure from the Latin faith, some
times used severity and fierce dictation. Amongst the
most serious causes of quarrel, as enumerated by Adelbert
bishop of Prague, in 981, were that the Christians of
Bohemia, would not observe the holy days appointed by
the popes,— they would get married without the priests,
— they would not bun* their dead exclusively in the church-
:he ecclesiastics would get married, &,c. But amongst
all difficulties, perhaps the greatest was the tenacity with
which the Bohemians clung to the use of their own lan-
guage (the Sclavonian) in public worship.
Pope Alexander II. had prohibited its use; but in
vain. To bring the matter to a better understanding,
about the end of the eleventh century, Wratislaus, duke
4*
42 WORSHIP IN AN UNKNOWN TONGUE-!
of Bohemia, scut an embassy to Gregory VII. to de-
mandthe enniirmation of this privilege (the use of their
own language in the worship of God,) which some of
his predecessors) had granted them. Gregorv refused.
The reasons why he did so are found below, and it was
to lay them before our readers that we have entered into
this brief statement, the main parts of which are drawn
from Histoire dc la guerre de$ Bursites, it du Concilc de
Basle par Jacques Lenfaxt. From the 10th page
of vol. 1 of that work, we have translated the following
extraordinary brief of the pope. — Lenfanf cites ample
and unexceptionable authorities for the genuineness of
this brief, and for all the preceding statements; to him we
refer the reader.
"Gregory, bishop, servant of the servants of God,
"to Wratislas duke of Bohemia, health and the apos-
"tolic benediction. Amongst other demands which your
"highness has made of us in your letters, is the requisi-
tion that we will confirm to you the custom of using the
"Sclavonian language, in the sacred worship. Know
"then, our dearest son, that it is impossible for us to ac-
"quiesce in your demand. For in our frequent mcdita-
"tions upon the holy Scriptures, we have discovered that it
uhas been, and still is pleasing to Almighty God, that his sa-
acred worship should be performed inanunknown language,
"in order that the ichole world, and especially the most
u simple may not be able to wider stand it. In truth, if all
"chaunted publicly in a known language, the service
"wTould soon excite contempt and disgust. Or it would
"happen that the common people, by repeating so often
"that which they could not comprehend, would fall into
"many great errors, from wrhich it would be difficult to
"withdraw the heart of man. Nor is it proper to allege
"here — that this indulgence has been sometimes granted
"to the most ignorant, — especially, wThen they were re-
cently converted ; as was done also in the primitive
"church, regard being had to the simplicity and sound-
"ness in the faith of the people generally. For as it has
"been proven, that from them have arisen much evil and
"many heresies: it is no longer advisable, under the pre-
sent established, and stable Christian order, to connive
GREGORY VII. AND THE BOHEMIAN CHURCHES. 43
at it. We cannot, therefore, comply with what your
"people have unreasonably demanded: — and* we forbid
"it, by the authority of God and the blessed St. Peter,
"exhorting yon for the glory of Almighty Pod, to resist,
"by every method this fruitless temerity.
"Rome, the year 1079."
This Greory VII, who wrote the above brief, was
the famous Hildebr<md3 a Tuscan of mean birth, and once
a monk in the monastery of Clugny — who, by his abilties
and crimes raised himself to be cardinal and pope. Du-
ring the reign of his immediate predecessor, Alexander
II. and afterwards whilst pope himself, embracing in
both periods a space of twenty-four years, from 1061 to
1085, he kept the whole of Europe, and the whole church
in perpetual commotion. Insolent, imperious, unprinci-
pled, and yet bold, steady, and clear headed; he was sub-
ject to great reverses, both while he lived, and since his
death. At one time an obscure labourer, then master of the
world; now head of the faithful, then solemnly deposed
by councils, and declared an anti-pope. Once declared
an exile, and once shut up in the castle of St Angelo
by the emperor Henry IV. — and yet at another time, re-
ducing the same emperor to the most humiliating penan-
ces. Even after his death, in his own besotted s.eat, he
has hardly escaped the pains of hell, if his enemies are
to be credited, in their just denunciations; while Paul V.
more than six centuries after the death of Gregory, won
by his devotion to the interests of the papacy, decreed
to his memory, as to that of a saint, the honour of a fes-
tival, and commanded all the faithful to worship him.
Such is the man, and such the decree, and such the cir-
cumstances under which he wrote it. To us it is enpugh
that we have it settled in it, directly or incidentally, and
that on infallible authority:
1. That the bishop of Rome, has a right to command
foreign princes, and to dictate articles of religion to
foreign states:
2. That it is the will of God for men to worship him
in a language they themselves do not understand:
3. That this was not the opinion of the primitive church,
nor always that of the church of Rome:
44 THE GENERAL COUNCILS.
4. That the church of Rome has found by experience
thai what she considers to be both evils and heresies,
spring from letting people understand the Romish wor-
ship :
5. That the greatest of these evils, and the most to be
expected, is universal contempt and disgust for the Ro-
mish worship by all who understand it:
6. That for these reasons, Rome haa changed her
opinion, and now resolves that God does not Wlfch men
generally, and especially ignorant men, to understand his
worship:
7. That it is, therefore, now contrary to plain scripture
and the true faith, for any people to use their own lan-
guage, or any other that they understand in the worship
of God:
8. That no one can argue what is right, from what
popes have done; for they have done all things, and of
course opposite things:
9. That the real ground of deciding religious truth, and
determining personal rights, is to find out the real inter-
ests for the time being of the papacy:
10 That the pope is supreme and exclusive in deciding
this; that he decides by the authority of Almighty God
and St. Peter; and that God's glory requires all men, in
all stations in every country, to perform all that the pope
orders, and to resist all he forbids, and to use all sorts of
means to do this !
NUMBER VII.
THE GENERAL COUNCILS. WHrCH ARE THEY? WH-4T
HAVE THEY DONE ?
R. P. Virus Piciiler, a Jesuit, and a doctor both of
theology and the canon law, is the author of one of the
THE GENERAL corxriT.s. lg
standard works on theology in the Romish church. His
book is called Theologica Polemic \, &C., and the copy
we have was published at Vienna in 1749, in quarto,
with the imprimatur of Fra Paalo Towwnaso Ma&uelli,
inquisitor general of Venice, countersigned by four other
worthies, with unpronounceable Italian names, and hor-
rid abbreviations of still more ridiculous titles. Tl.
all certify of the book that u non v'esser cosa alcuna con-
tra la santa fede cattolica." He is therefore reliable au-
thority, to prove what is Catholicity. We translate from
pages 278 — 285 inclusive, what follows upon the subjects
of general councils which are lawful , general councils
which arc unlawful, and general councils v:hich are partly
lawful and partly unlawful.
I. General councils which were lawful.
1. Nice, which was held at the city of Nice. The
council of Sardicense, held some years after this, was an
appendix to it.
The era of this council was the year of Christ 327;
Sylvester being pope, and Constantine the Great em-
peror.
There were present at it 318 fathers, Hosius, Vitus
and Vincentius were the pope's legates, and presided at
it. Of these, only the first wras a bishop, the other two
being only presbyters.
This council condemned the heresy of Arius, who de-
nied the Divinity of Christ; and composed the Nicene
creed.
2. Constantinople; held partly at Constantinople in the
east, partly at Rome in the west.
About the year 381, Damasus being pope, and the
elder Theodosius emperor.
There were in it 150 Catholic fathers and 36 Macedon-
ians, or Simi-Arians The pope did not preside either
personally or by legates, yet he confirmed it as to faith.
The heresy of Macedonius, who denied the Divinity of
the Holy Ghost, was condemned, and the Nicene creed
confirmed by this council.
3. Ephesinum ; held at Ephesus, the metropolis of
Asia Minor.
46 THE GENERAL COUNCILS.
About the year 430, Celestine being pope, and Theo-
dosius the younger and Valentriiien J IF. emperors.
Present 200 fathers ; Cyril, archbishop of Alexandria,
and other legates of the pope presiding.
This council condemned the hi rius, who
admitting the existence of two persons in Christ, declared
the blessed virgin to be the mother of Christ only (Chris-
tiparam,) and not the mother of God, (I)eiparam,) be-
cause she only bore the human person of Christ ; against
which error, the words "mother of God pray for us, fr r."
were added to the angelic salutation.
4. Chalcedon; so called from the city of Chalcedon in
Bythinia, where it was celebrated.
About the year 451, Leo the Great being pope, and
Marcian emperor.
Present 630 fathers; the legates of pope Leo presided,
and he afterwards confirmed the council, but only as it
respects matters of faith.
It condemned the heresy of Eutychitis and Dioscoris,
who admitted the existence of but one nature in Christ.
5. Constantinople II. About the year 553 ; Yirgilius
being pope, Justinian emperor.
Some say that 165, others that 255 fathers were pre-
sent. The pope was neither present nor represented by
legates, but he approved it by an epistle.
This council condemned the heresy of Origen and the
three capitularies of the bishops Theodore, Theodoret,
and Iba, but not their persons.
6. Constantinople IIL To which the synod of Trull ana,
otherwise called Quini-Sexta, was an appendix.
About 680; Agatho being pope, and Constantine IV.
emperor.
Present about 289 fathers. Peter and George, pres-
byters, and John, a deacon, presided as legates from the
pope.
It condemned the heresy of the Monothelites, who as-
serted Ilr.it there was only one will in Christ.
7. Alec II. About 78J ; Adrian being pope, and
Constantine reigning in the empire with his mother
Irene.
Present 350 fathers. Peter an arch-presbyter, and
Peter the abbot, presiding as the pope's legates.
THE GENERAL COUNCILS. 47
Condemned the heresy of the Iconoclasts, the emperors
Leo the Isaurian, and Constantine Copronymus; who
despoiled the sacred images of Christ and the saints, of
all honour.
8. Constantinople IV. About the year SG9; Adrian
II. being pope, and Basil emperor.
There were 102 fathers; and the pontifical legates pre-
sided.
Photius, patriarch of Constantinople, who had intruded
by force, was rejected, and Ignatius restored. The
Iconomacians (or destroyers of images) were again con-
demned.
9. Lateran I: So called from the Lateran palace at
Rome.
About the year 1122; Calixtus II. being pope, and
Henry V. emperor.
More than 300 fathers attended; the pope presiding in
person.
Called to make peace between the church and the em-
pire, and to promote the war against the Saracens for the
recovery of the holy land.
10. Lateran II. About 1139; Innocent II. being pope;
under the emperor Lothair II. or Conrad king of the Ro-
mans.
About 1000 fathers; the pope presiding in person.
Condemned the anti-popes Anacletus and Victor. —
Passed acts concerning the right of clergy, and the reform-
ation of morals.
11. Lateran III. About 1179: Alexander III. being
pope, and Frederic I. emperor.
About 300 fathers; the pope presiding in person.
The Cathari, whom some call Waldenses,and Albigen-
ses, were condemned as heretics. Many things determin-
ed concerning the election of the pope, and the reform-
ation of morals.
12. Lateran IV. In the year 1245: Innocent IV. being
pope, and Frederic II. emperor.
There were present about 400 bishops; besides about
800 inferior prelates, the pope himself presided.
Condemned the heresies of the Albigenses and the
errors of the abbot Joachim. Passed acts for settling the
48 THE GENERAL COUNCILS.
peace of Christendom, and for recovering the holy land.
13. Lugdunense. 1 (Lyons.) So called from the city of
Lyons in France.
In the year 1245: Innocent IV. being pope, and Frede-
ric II. emperor.
There were 140 fathers present, and the pope presided
in person.
They excommunicated and deposed the Emperor Frede-
ric II. called Barbarossa, as a rebel against the pope: and
directed an expedition into Palestine.
14. Lugdunense II. (Lyons.] The year 1274: Gregory
X. being pope, and Rudolph emperor.
Almost 1000 fathers present,of whom 500 were bishops,
the pope again personally presiding.
Condemned the heresy of the Greeks, who say that the
Holy Spirit does not proceed from the Son, but from the
Father alone. A union was made with the Greeks, whose
emperor, Michael Paleologus was himself present. They
united in an act for the recovery of Palestine.
15. Vienense. (Vienne.) So called, from the city of
Vienne, in France.
Held in 1311: Clement V. being pope; and Henry VII.
emperor. This pope framed the constitutions which are
called in the canon law, Clementine.
About 300 bishops present, the pope again presiding.
The heresies of the Beghards, the Berguines and the
Fratricelli condemned. The order of Templars, (so
called, because they dwelt near the temple in Jerusalem)
was suppressed. And a new decree for an expedition
into the holy land.
16. Florence. Held at Florence, in Italy, not having
been completed at Ferara.
Held in 1438, not having been completed at Ferrara:
Eugene IV. being pope and Albert emperor.
Subscribed by 141 fathers. Many others, having de-
parted beforehand. The pope himself presided.
Against the errors of the Greeks, whose emperor, John
Paleologus was present. A union of the Greeks and Ar-
minians,with the Latins was effected, but after their return
to Greece, they relapsed into their former errors.
17. Lateran V. Inchoate in 151*2 under pope Julius IL
GENERAL COUNCILS. 49
Complete in 1517, under Leo X. Maximilian I., was
emperor.
Present 114 fathers; the pope himself presiding.
Called to heal the schism propagated by the council
of Pisa. The sedition of Luther prevented the expedi-
tion against the Turks which it ordered.
18. Trent. ( Tridtntinum) Commenced at Trent, in
Germany, continued at Bononia, and finished at Trent.
Inchoate in 1545, under pope Paul III. continued un-
der Julius III. Marcellus II. andPaul IV. finished under
Pius VI. in 1563. — Charles V. and Ferdinand I. were
emperors.
Subscribed by 255 fathers. Many could not remain till
the end of the council, which lasted 18 years, under the
presidency of various pontifical legates.
The Lutherans, Sacramentarians, and other sectaries
were condemned. Morals were reformed, especially
amongst the clergy, vj/io were exceedingly corrupt. In no
other council have so many articles of faith been so clear-
ly elucidated, or strictness of morals so sedulously re-
established as in that of Trent.
Such, according to the Jesuits themselves, are the
eighteen general councils, which, and which alone, have
in all things spoken by the inspiration of the Holy Ghost;
— decided with the irrevocable certainly of God's judg-
ment, all matters submitted to them; — and whose words
and actions are, and to the end of time will be as per-
fectly obligatory- on all the world, as if Jesus Christ
our divine Lord, had personally and visibly presided
at each of them, and publicly and unequivocally ap-
proved them all. Of these eighteen councils, we are
ready to prove, whenever archbishop Eccleston will hear
us, that at least twelve have either spoken lies or decreed
sin. The reader will observe that the third established
idolatry; the seventh and eighth, wickedly condemned
those who would not worship images; the ninth, twelfth,
thirteenth, fourteenth, fifteenth and seventeenth decreed
unjust wars; the eleventh and twelfth cursed all the saints
of God they knew; the thirteenth erected the power of
the church over all human governments and put the feet
of the pope on the neck of the human race; and the
5
50 GENERAL COUNCILS.
eighteenth^ ripe with the lull grows pollul ntuiies,
decreed all truth into endless night and chaos, and the
follies and crimes oi' all pasl agei into the place of God's
glorious truth!
We have taken the trouble to compare the foregoing
statements of Pichler, with the still more authoritative
declarations of cardinal Bcllannin , himself a Jesuit, and
perhaps the be8t single authority as a writer in the church
of Rome. Those who have opportunity to do so, will
find in the second volume, pages 3 — 10, of the Paris
edition of 1608, of his great work entitled, Disputd-
tiones de Cont rovers Us Christiana Fidei, in the book
De Conciliis, fyc. and chap. v. entitled, Concilia genera-
lia approbata, all the material statements of Pichler con-
firmed;— and much more to the same general purport.
And this is perhaps the general opinion among papists.
Yet even these are by no means uniform; and others differ
exceedingly from them, and from each other on the sub-
ject. Bishop Beveridge reckons but eight general councils
in all. Dr. Prideaux allows only seven: while Bullinger
will admit but six. It is papistical authority which we
are now gathering howrever; and to return to Pichler, we
find that besides these lawful general councils, he recounts
no less than fourteen others; half of which he pronounces
reprobate, although general, and the other half partly le-
gal and partly illegal. Of these two classes the first is
that which follows.
2. General councils which icere illegal.
1. Antioch. Held in the year 345: Julius I. being
pope, and Constantine Arianus, emperor.
Attended by about 90 fathers.
Unjustly condemned Athanasius; and opened the way
for an attempted overthrow of the first Nicene council.
2. Mtdiolanense . [Milan.] In the year 354: Liberius
being pope, and the before mentioned Constantine Ari-
anus, emperor.
About 300 fathers present.
They indirectly condemned the Catholic faith; (where-
in is not stilted either In Pichler or Bellarmin. The
latter (vol. '2. hook 1, chap. 6, let. d.) refers for authority
to Rttfinus lib. 10, C. 2Q, and to Socrates, lib. 2, c. 29.)
GENERAL COUNCILS. 51
3, Jlrimiyiense. [Rimijii.] Not the one held under
pope Liberius in 379.
This was held in 373: Danasus being pope, and
the same Coratantine Arianus, emperor.
Present about 600 fathers.
The word Homoousios, that is Consubstantial, was
stricken from the creed; partly through ignorance of its
meaning, partly by the fraud of the Arians.
| 4. Ephesus II. Which is justly called Latroeinium
(robbery,) for every thing was done by violence.
Held in 443: Leo being pope, and Theodosius the
younger, emperor.
Present about 128 fathers.
They absolved Euthycheus and confirmed his heresy;
drove away the legates of pope Leo; and put to death St.
Flavianus, bishop of Constantinople.
5. Constantinople. The one which was held under Leo
the Isauri
Held in "/30: Gregory II. being pope and Leo called
the Isaurian, emperor.
In this council the greater part were laymen.
They decreed against the images of Christ and of the
saints.
6. Constantinople. The one held under Constantine
Copronymus.
About the year 754, Stephen II. or III. being pope.
There were about 338 fathers present.
They decreed that images of Christ and the saints,
ought to be totally abolished.
7. Pisa; not that [of 1409] which is subsequently
reckoned amongst doubtful councils.
Held about 510; Julius II. being pope, and Maximi-
lian T. emperor. Called, says Bellarmin [vol. 2, lib. i.
chap. 6, let. B, page 11] by the emperor and the king of
France and certain cardinals, against Julius II., and re-
probated a little after in the 2d and 3d session of the
council of Lateran, under the same pope.
Bellarmin does not give the number of fathers present
at this council, and Pichler says he could not ascertain it.
Pichler adds the same account of its convocation as
that given above from Bellarmin ; merely in addition,
designating the council that reprobated this as the fifth
b'2 GENERAL COUNCILS.
of Lateran, and adding the name of Leo X. to that of
Julius II.
These councils, the reader will observe, are expressly
reprobated and pronounced illegal, and that on the au-
thority not only of papistical doctors of law and theology,
but even of popes and lawful general councils. JNbw
we are ready to prove, whenever archbishop Kccleston
will hear us, that a greater proportion of these six repro-
bated councils held and decreed the truth, than of the
eighteen councils pronounced by his church to be infalli-
ble. The three last of these illegal councils, appear in
the main to have judged righteous judgment on the
points here named ; that is, half of them were right. But
of the eighteen infallible ones, two-thirds were wrong and
scandalous, in material points of faith and practice. We
proceed to the last head of Pichler.
III. General councils partly legal and partly illegal.
1. Sardicense; the appendix to the first Nicene council.
Held in 351 ; Julius I. being pope, and Constantine
Arianus emperor.
Present 300 western fathers, and 73 eastern.
The western fathers affirmed the Catholic faith, the
eastern held to the Arian heresy. The acts of the latter
are rejected.
2. Sirmiense [Sirmium.']
Held in 356; Liberius being pope, and the above
mentioned Constantine, emperor.
The .number of fathers unknown.
They drew up two creeds totally different from each
other; one Catholic, the other blasphemous. They
condemned the heresy of Photinus [Unitarianism;]
which condemnation is approved by the church.
3. Quini — Sextum; held at Constantinople in the
Trulline palace, whence its canons are called Trullian.
About the year 602; Sergius being pope, and Justin-
ian II. or the younger, emperor. Hut Bellarmin (vol.
2, bib. 1, chap. vii. p. 11) says the time when it was
held is entirely uncertain.
Present 211 fathers: the pope did not preside person-
ally, nor did he ^end legates; but immediately repro-
bated it.
GENERAL COUNCILS. 53
They passed 102 canons, which wen annexed to the
proceedings of the fifth and sixth general synods, and on
that account called Quini-Sextum for the filth synod
published no canons at all. Of these, part only were
afterwards received. Bellarmin (in the seventh chapter
of the book several times referred to) gives the eighty-
second canon of this council, which tolerated painted
images, as a specimen of such as were approved: and
this was, he says, approved by pope Adrian, and by the
second and fourth acts of the seventh synod, and is there-
fore valid. For he lays it down expressly that the acts
of this synod were void, so far as they were passed in the
absence of the pope and his legates.
4. Frank/or d; which hardly deserves to be called
general, as no oriental bishops were present.
Celebrated in 794; Adrian I. being pope, and Charle-
magne king of the French, (he not having yet attained to
the empire).
There were three hundred fathers, and the pope's le-
gates presided.
Approved and confirmed as to that part which declares
Christ to be the natural as well as the adopted Son of
God. Reprobated so far as it erroneously condemned
the seventh synod.
5. Constance; celebrated at Constance on the lake
Bodamica.
Incomplete in 1414, John XXIII. being pope, and
Sigismund emperor: finished 1418, under pope Martin V.
Present about 300 bishops, and 700 minor prelates.
Suppressed a schism, deposed three anti-popes, elected
Martin V. pope; condemned Wickliff and Huss, and
burnt the latter alive. Approved by Martin V., except
the fourth and fifth sessions, which declare the subjec-
tion of the pope to a council. Bellarmin informs us that
this is reprobated by the last Lateran council, and by
the council of Florence.
6. Basle (Basil); incomplete at Basle on the Rhine
finished at Lausanne, on the lake of Geneva.
Inchoate in 1431; Eugenius IV. being pope: com-
pleted 1449, under pope Nicholas V.
5*
54 GENERAL COUNCILS.
The number of fathers present Tint ascertained; the le-
gate of the pope presided part of the time only.
They elected the Dseudo-pope Amedeus, ;' Sa-
roy, who was called Felix V. Nothing done by this
council is approved, except a few acts about ecclesiasti-
cal bent Sees. Bellarmin adds thai this council was re-
probated by the last Lateran council.
7. Pisa; held at Pisa in Italy; but it is doubtful
whether it was general at all or not.
Held in 1409: Gregory Mi. and Benedict XIII. pro-
fessing to be popes at the same time.
Present 180 bishops and 900 minor preh
This council deposed both Gregory and Benedict, and
chose Alexander V. pope. Instead of composing, it in-
creased the schism.
It should be stated that Bellarmin does not reckon
this last council under this head; admitting only six of
these councils. It should also be stated that he reckons
eight instead of seven councils, under the preceding head
of illegal general councils. The first seven mentioned
under that head by him, are the same taken here under
our second general division from Pichler. But lie adds
to them, as the eighth general illegal council, what he
calls the Council of Wittemberg; which he says the
Lutherans call general, and at which there were three
hundred pastors, Luther himself presiding, in the year
1536. The council of Pisa, considered as is seen above
by Pichler, the seventh general council partly legal
and partly illegal, is treated of by Bellarmin under a
separate head. In chap. viii. of lib. 1, vol. 2, he admits
that it may not be manifest whether a council be general
and approved, or disapproved; and that this is particularly
true of this of Pisa. On the one hand, he says this coun-
cil is pfonouiiced illegal by some; and with apparent
reason, as it totally failed of the great object of its cele-
bration, namely, the composing of the schism which then
raged. But on the other hand, he asserts that the pope
elected by it (Alexander V.), and his successor John,
were more generally considered true popes, than any of
the three pretenders mho at one and the same time set up
for the real Simon Pure. And, what is stronger still,
Alexander VI., an admitted Mr. Pure on all hands
GENERAL COUNCILS.
would number fi\
the other were in.
fully believe: it is
the observant reader will see, amid
of contradictions and
not that wherefcf they affirm. \
eral or not; it' general, whether it be legal or I . ': n
general or leg *her it be wholly of partly so; — the
admissions made by the Jesuits from whom we translate,
and the attentive corapari heir statements, even
about these last mentioned six or seven councils, conclu-
sively prove that their boasted infallible guides and
jud^ not even known to them — much less under-
stood by them.
We have followed the Jesuits in the general notation
ofthesr councils; though even the Jesuits themselves
disagree, for those of the United States have added the
council of Constance to the list of the general councils —
vrchbishop Eccleston and his Lciitifs Directory are
good authority. It is also questionable whether Rome
agrees with either view of the Jesuits, or indeed whether
successive popes agree entirely with each other. J/o-
reri} for example, states that the list of geneal councils
inscribed on the walls of the library of the Vatican
at Rome, consists of eighteen; being precisely those
enumerated in this article after Pichkr. But in the
life of Sixtus V., who had those inscriptions placed
in that library, his Italian biographer, Gregorio Leti, in
his ninth book, under the year 1588, gives a list of six-
teen general councils only; omitting those marked eleven
and twelve in the foregoing list. The various portions
of the papal church also differ widely on this important
subject; the church of France, for instance, adding Con-
stance, Pisa, and Basle, to the list of true general coun-
cils; and rejecting from that number the fifth Lateran
council, and that of Florence numbered by Rome in our
list, the latter sixteen and the former seventeen. S
that France has I rue general councils, of which
Rome rejects three; and Rome ha- •>, of which
France rejects two; that is, five, or more than one fourth
of the true general councils, are still in dispute in the
56 A VISIT TO THE BALTIMORE CATHEDRAL.
papal cliureh. In truth, the papa] system is such, that it
is an absolute impossibility for the most enlightened and'
devoted Romanist even to be certain, in any comfortable
degree, that he is really standing on the basis of his own
creed. And the result is, that the ecclesiastics who try
to fathom the chaos are, nearly to a man, skeptics; while
all the rest believe and understand nothing except
what is expressed in the phrase — we believe what the
church believes
And such is papism as it lives amongst men. Blanco
White and Antonio Gavin, at the distance of a centuiy
apartr being popish priests, left that heresy and wrote
each a book concerning it. They unite in pronouncing
the entire clergy of the church, as known to them, utter
unbelievers in any, even their own religion; utter stran-
gers to God, to virtue, and to truth. As to the private
members of that sect, how many do you know, reader,
who are humble, enlightened, consistent followers of the
Lord Jesus? Alas! that such things should be. But oh!
that they should be in the name of Him whose ways and
plans and words, touching our salvation, are all so plain,
so pure, so lovely; so full of the simple and yet sublime
majesty of unchanging truth, unerring certainty!
NUMBER VIII.
A VISIT TO THE BALTIMORE CATHEDRAL.
Most strangers who visit Baltimore, are conducted to
the Cathedral as one of our principal shows. It is a large
grey stone edifice in the shape of a cross — built in rather
an antique style, and situated on the highest elevation
perhaps in the city. It was built in great part by funds
raised by lottery; a mode of gambling so little disapproved
by the papal ecclesiastics of Maryland, that priest
A VISIT TO THE BALTIMORK CATHEDRAL 57
Mcllroy of Frederick had influence enough to get the le-
gislature of this state, to grant him a lottery to aid in the
erection of the Cathedral in that city, at the very moment
that the same body were wisely and diligently occupied
in labours to suppress lottery gambling entariy in this com-
monwealth. The foreign friends ot uour Catholic breth-
ren"— are supposed to have furnished the remaining funds
in chief part; as they have also, many of the decorations
of the building. Upon the whole, it is a very line edifice;
spacious and imposing; durable and noble. We rejoice
to look forward with confident hope to the day whtn it
will be purged of all its present fooleries, — and cleansed
of its present occupants, and when the pure word of life
will have free course there, in the labours and instructions
of the true followers of the Lamb.
Visiters usually enter the building at the west door;
that is, at the part of the building representing the lower
end of the cross. Here is a spacious outer entrance ;
then a narrow passage across the building; then doors
fronting the outer entrance, which open into the high
and capacious church itself. At the side of two of the
doors stand two marble vases on pedestals, containing
water mixed with salt and oil, called holy water, and
used by the faithful in their own way. It is a pity
some of them do not use it, or a more common water,
more freely and effectually than they do. Near these
vases and in other parts of the room are small boxes
to receive money; labelled "for the poor" — "for the
sanctuary-" — "for the free schools," &c. — There are also
two figures, about as large as life, representing angels,
apparently a male and a female — one pointing up the
main isle to the grand altar, with a few words writ-
ten on a scroll; the other holding a naked sword with
a label, threatening God's wrath on any who violate his
temple — meaning as we suppose, that one especially.
There are many similar things which we shall omit ; our
purpose being only to note a very few of those that struck
us, on this our fifth or sixth visit to this spectacle ; the
more by token, we remember that every time we entered
except during public worship, we had money to pay.
Rome does nothing, not even pardon sin — without getting
regular pay for it. The souls and bodies of men, as the
58 A VISIT TO THE BALTIMORE CATHEDRAL.
apostle John tells us, are equally and alike "merehandi-
to her.
Paintings.
These are probably the great attraction of the house.
On the right hand of the main entrance ifl a very large
painting, representing the scene immediately following
the crucifixion. It was a present from Louis XVIII. of
France, solicited as is recorded on the margin of the
frame, by Count De Mennu. The canvass contains eight
or nine figures besides that of the Saviour, all as large as
life. The work is from the pencil of Paul Guerin. In
some respects it is a very fine painting. Upon the whole,
we think inferior in expression to that of Annabal Car-
racci representing the same scene though with fewer
figures. In this, the shading of the human countenances
is too dark; the faces themselves are lacking in proper
expression; and the figure representing the mother of
Jesus is peculiarly defective, in beauty, majesty, and
grace. But the drapery, the inanimate part of the work, is
managed with very great skill and power. Upon the
whole it may be called a fine painting, and is the pe-
culiar attraction of the place. There is one dark looking
female figure embracing the cross and kissing it, though
Jesus himself lay near her. Apt emblem of the entire su-
perstition! In the very presence and name of Jesus, every
thing is worshipped but Christ himself.
Corresponding to this painting, on the opposite side of
this end of the room, is a painting representing a knight
in full and shining armour, attended by several monks —
burying the naked body of a man. It is a painting of St.
Louis, says the old lady who acts as guide on these occa-
sions. It is a scene of the times of the crusades. — It is a
present from Charles X. of France, &c. It is a most
contemptible painting, we add. And as we turned from
it, we asked ourselves, is it possible that these priests arc
so devoid both ofprtldence and shame as to hang up such
evidences as this of their real feelings? St. Louis and the
crusades, and Charles X.! Are they really so insane as to
present themselves before the public. as the friends, advo-
A VISIT TO THE BALTIMORE CATHEDRAL 59
cates, eleves of such men and such events? Very well;
people will open their eyes by and hy.
There is a number of othei paintings in the room, scim
of them small, others of tolerable size. The greater part
representing absurd legends of the church; some few
scripture pieces: — all, nearly without exception, wretch-
ed and contemptible as works of art. We will not ex-
cept even a painting of the Saviour hanging over the
main entrance, as large as life and apparently an imita-
tion of the figure of Christ in Dominichino's great picture
of the bearing of the cross.
Altars.
Ascending the room from west to east, there are three
aisles extending its entire length, and terminating at the
upper end of it, before the altars, of which there are three.
The great altar is in the centre, having under its upper
edge this inscription, Altar e privilegiatum concessione
Pii VII. 1822; we quote from memory, but the English is,
A privileged altar by permission of Pius VII. What is
a privileged altar? What right has Pius VII. to give or
withhold all or any of the privileges of the religion of
Jesus? What authority has any foreign despot to pre-
scribe rules temporal or spiritual, to the citizens of this re-
public? It is a privileged altar; whether those on the
right and left of it are equally so, does not appear. All
three of them are constructed of various coloured marble,
- — and they are about, perhaps, four feet high and eight or
ten long; the centre one the largest, and the others stand-
ing twenty or thirty feet from it, and facing obliquely in-
ward. Between the main altar and the one north of it is
the archbishop's seat; corresponding to it on the other
side is the pulpit. On the back of the archbishop's seat
and on the central altar, is the large cypher A. M. which
under the archipiscopal coat of arms is written in full,
Auspice Maria — that is, Be gracious Mary! Or it mav
be, they are the initials of the angelic salutation so much
used by them: Ave Maria, fyc. Hail Mary, fyc.
All these altars, this edifice— the ecclesiastics who of-
ficiate here, all in short, it thus appears are devoted to
the worship and care of a pious Jewish female; who
60 A VISIT TO THE BALTIMORE CATHEDRAL.
about eighteen centuries ago, after fulfilling lier singular
and glorious destiny in this world, returned again, as to
her mortal part, to the earth as it was — and as sbul,
to God who gatve it. Whether there are any relicks of
saints, in or under these altars, we are not informed. We
saw what we were told were the g i the former
archbishops, which seemed, as far as we could judge in
litter darkness and under ground, to be under the two
-side altars. Perhaps we are by and by to have American
saints, and provision is making by depositing their re-
licks under altars. The council of Trent in its last session,
(on the first day of it,) decreed anew that such things
should be, and that all should be damned who denied it.
And yet we venture to beseech of God, that no American
papist may even be corrupt, debased and infamous
enough during his life, to be esteemed by Rome worthy
of being a saint in her calender after his death. How-
ever this may be, we are authorized by our aforesaid Cice-
rone, to say that the consecrated wafer which the priest
by saying Hoc est Corpus, (from which is unquestionably
derived the name and art hocus pocus,) changed into the
body, blood, soul and divinity of the Lord Jesus ; is kept
constantly on all these altars to be visited and worship-
ped by all true papists. That is to say, if they speak
truth, there are three separate places in that house — in
which the one Jesus exists whole and entire — and above
all, in the appearance of a piece of cake. Alas! Alas!
Are these thy gods oht Israel?
The Confessional.
The present archbishop, for reasons best known to him-
self, has had twTo confessionals erected in the body of the
church about two thirds down; one on each side near the
north and south wall. There a space is railed ofT, per-
haps ten by twenty feet, in one side of which is erected
an affair not unlike three centry boxes in a row, with a
vacant space in front. In this space the faithful come
early in the morning, and knee] while the priest celebrates
mass; that is according to his own belief, while he cre-
ates and then crucifies Christ. This is done ever)
morning by the priest, fasting. When he is through, the
A VISIT TO THE BALTIMORE CATHEDRAL. 61
confessionals are so arranged that he can from the altar;
see if any are kneeling* in them. If there are, he enters
the middle box, and a penitent each of the end boxes.
He opens a grate, asks all sorts of indecent and shocking
questions, makes all manner of evil and sinful suggestions
to the penitent, possesses himself of all manner of inform-
ation about all possible things and persons likely to aid
all his future schemes good or bad, and declares with
the unerring assurance of the Spirit of God, the penance
and the pardon. The poor deluded women, (men very
seldom go,) depart worse than they came ; and the vicar
of the bishop, who is vicar of the pope, who is vicar for
God, turns round, opens another grate, and renews the
process to another prostrate victim. They all kneel to
the priest when they confess. Now we have two words
to say. The first is, to inform the papists that their
priests require of them what they themselves never do.
The priests never make any other than mere general con-
fessions. Catch them indeed confessing their secret
doings. The second is this ; with all reverence, we be-
seech any really modest female to tell us, how she can
look into the confiding face of an affectionate husband or
lover, after having told a foulmouthed and impertinent
catechist every evil thought that hadpassed through herown
heart ? Reader, look over the questions put in confession;
you will find them in all Catholic books of devotion, — and
then look at your wife, your mother, your sister, your af-
fianced bride answering them on their knees ; and then
open the curtain of the confessional and behold the self
complacent bon vivant who asks them ! Do this, and our
object is gained.
The Vaults.
The Vaults ! what of them ? Ah ! we have been ac-
tually and bona fide down one flight of the subterraneous
apartments under the cathedral. And that too, in the
guidance of the said very respectable and voluble old
lady, who is so polite and communicative to all visiters.
We had often and over heard, that she had threatened if
she ever got us there, to turn bolt and ward upon us.
6
62 A VISIT TO THE BALTIMORE CATHEDRAL.
Let us try her thought we. Many an anonymous frie«d
had hinted to us of these cells; let us sec them, said we.
But we have not seen them. The old lady vows there
are none. She declared she had shown us all. There
was nothing more to be seen. We will tell what we did
see, orrather feel; — and will express our conjectures as
to the rest.
We had no light. We suggested a hint about the
vaults. The Cicerone insisted on our descending into
all that existed. We descended, accompanied by one
friend. The entrance lay through a trap door, near the
main door of the building, at the west end. We descend-
ed a flight of steps, turned to the right, and rapidly
passed along the entire extent of the immense edifice, in
almost total darkness. Here said our guide, diverging
to the left, and guided by a ray of light entering through
a loop hole in the wall, are the graves of the two first
archbishops, Carroll and Mareschall. And there, she
added, passing rapidly by a circuitous route to the oppo-
site corner of that end of the building, is the grave of the
late archbishop Whitfield. The two former seemed to be
under the altar at the north east angle, the latter under
that at the south east angle of the room above. This is
conjecture only, made upon the spot, and by the localities.
For it was nearly total darkness — all the time; in short,
the guide herself got lost for a moment on our return,
amid the maze of arches and the accumulation of what
she called rubbish. And is this all? She solemnly affirm-
ed it. Is this the foundation of the house? She une-
quivocally declared it was? Now with due deference to
a lady's word we think otherwise; and we tell why.
1. The rubbish is nothing more than fine sand; such
as exists at very considerable depths in this region. It
is in all likelihood, the sand dug out of the second and
third stories under ground and not yet removed: left per-
haps expressly as a blind.
2. The floor of the apartment we were in, is but little
depressed below the surface of the earth. We saw the
loop holes on the sides of the house through which light
entered; the) were nearly on a level with our face. Be-
sides we descended just about as many steps as we as-
A VISIT TO THE BALTIMORE CATHEDRAL. 63
eend on the outside to enter the house. The m«i-
sand in this apartment, we should suppose a hundred
times as gieat as it should be, if the account given be
true. Indeed there would in that ease be almost none.
3. The depth of the arches as shown by our being
obliged to stoop as we passed under them, compared with
their span, demonstrates that their foundations are far
below. A fact corroborated by the mass sustained by
them, especially those under the stupendous dome, which
occupies all the centre of the edifice. What puts this
past doubt, is the fact that the plan of the building, drawn
by the late Mr. Latrobe, is expressly declared by those
who have seen it, to exhibit two rotes of arches; one on
the top of the other. There is therefore, contrary to what
is declared, arches and apartments below those shown
as the only ones. And as the sand must have been all
removed, before the bottom one of those two courses of
arches could be erected; the probability is that the sand
now in the upper subterraneous room, came from the
third or even the fourth story under the ground.
Let any man compare what is now doing to lay a good
foundation for the new custom house in Gay street, wTith
the single row of arches exhibited as all, at the cathe-
dral, and he will have sensible demonstration of the false-
hood.
4. That part of the first story under the church which
lies immediately under the portions constituting the wings,
or transverse of the cross, was in total darkness ; the loop
holes hid and no access to it apparent, amid the mass of
sand. These portions are perhaps, each from thirty to
fifty feet square. Under them, we judge the steps and
landing places to be. In them lies the access to the re-
gions below, in all probability connecting with others at
the east end of the building; and by subterraneous passa-
ges with the archipiscopal residence, which is situated
just next to the cathedral.
5. Upon striking violently on the floor with a small
stiff walking stick, it appeared to us that where the sand
seemed most shallow, the stick met with most resistance;
which is the reverse of what would be true, if there were
nothing but sand. We are sure that under portions of
64 A VISIT TO THE BALTIMORE CATHEDRAL.
the sand, the cane came in contact with solid substances;
Ave believe a pavement.
6. It is a fact perfectly notorious in this city, that when
the foundation of this edifice was constructing, the whole of
it was boarded up with high planks,with the w ordsuNu ad-
mittance," placarded on them. It is equally notorious
that hundreds of persons are now alive, who were boys
here at that time, and who with the curiosity and ingenuity
universal at their age, saw more that was behind those
boards than was intended for eyes profane; and that they
unanimously testify to the immensity of the excavations
then made there. How then came the place filled up
now? And with such peculiar materials? And the plain
facts, which are hard to be hoaestly accounted for, denied?
7. Hundreds of people in this state, and especially in
this city and in Harford county, well knew a man
by the name of Foley, now dead — who repeatedly-
declared (when drunk) that he had been confined him-
self in the dungeons of the cathedral: and all the cor-
responding circumstances, such as the man's sudden
disappearance and return, length of absence, disposi-
tion to abandon his religion, &c.<, confirmed his story.
This fact has been heretofore published, and remains
undenied.
8. Formerly it was admitted by the Catholics here,
that there were cells of some kind under the cathedral ;
and the fact explained sometimes by saying they were
intended for vaults to bury dead priests in; at others,
by calling it a wine cellar. Now it is denied that there
are cells at all ! Which are we expected to believe?
9. It is the universal custom of papists in all countries,
to have subterraneous apartments under their principal
edifices. There is a subterraneous chapel up at St.
Mary's seminary in this city, in common use. The pre-
sumption is therefore in favour of such apartments being
constructed under the cathedral, in the absence of all
proof; but with concurring proof it becomes violent.
10. In all places where the civil laws permit, this su-
perstition punishes men and women with stripes, impnson-
ment, and death, for religious ei ror. They need therefore,
places of discipline, confinement and death. They have
A VISIT TO THE BALTIMORE CATHEDRAL. 65
them in other countries. They have here every other
part of their system. Their popes and councils pro-
nounce this part indispensable. Why then should this
part not exist? It is most probable it does, even if all
direct proof were wanting. When direct proof, condu-
cing to this end is offered, the presumption is infini
strengthened. When facts capable of no possible ex-
planation, except on this supposition, crowd upon us, it
is the work of folly to discredit their teachings.
On the whole, we have no hesitation in expressing our
belief that most of the principal edifices of the papists
in this country, are provided with subterranean and other
places of secret confinement and punishment. So de-
cided is our belief of this fact, that we will risk two pro*
posals on it.
The first is to our enemies. If permission is granted
us by the archbishop and the trustees of the cathedral
to make a thorough search, we will undertake it; and at
the end of it, we will frankly and fairly publish the pro-
gress and result of it; let it end as it may.
The second is to our friends. If we suddenly disap-
pear— as our lives have been over and over again threat-
ened, we request that the foundations of all the principal
Catholic establishments in this country may be thorough-
ly examined and searched for us. We do not regard the
threats of death; it would, we sometimes hope, be the
greatest of favors to us. But the long midnight of a
living death, with all the fierce array of torture, starvation*,
parching thirst, incessant mockings and scourgings;
such as men of the same religion and same spirit, govern-
ed by the same feelings and the same morality with those
who denounce us, have inflicted on better men than we
are, for the very things that we are daily doing; these
things we would avoid, if suck were the will of God.
66 THE LAST OF THE HOUSE OF VALOIS.
NUMBER IX.
THE LAST OF THE HOUSE OF VALOIS.
The President Henault, in his Chronological His-
tory of France, has pronounced the famous uLeagut
formed amongst the Catholic nobles of that realm to-
wards the close of the sixteenth century; the most extra-
ordinary event recorded in history. Conceived, as he
asserts, and the original plan formed at the council of
Trent, where all the evils of Christendom came together,
by the cardinal of Lorrain; the death of his brother
Francis, Due de Guise, only interrupted its develop-
ment. When his nephew, Henry, Due de Guise, came
of age, the cardinal resumed this enterprise, which his
own subsequent death did not defeat or retard. (See He-
nault, vol. 1, p. 438, and p. 455.)
About the year 1576 the league was first regularly or-
ganized in Picardy, and spread rapidly over France. Its
ostensible objects were, the protection of the monarchy,
and the maintenance of the purity of the Catholic faith.
But in the end it overturned the throne, and during
twenty years, involved the kingdom in all the horrors
following in the train of civil and religious wars. "If
ever I take part" such was the oath of the leaguers,
" hold friendship, enter into league, or join in matrimony
with heretics; if ever I give aid or 'plight my faith to
them, or so much as observe the common forms of saluta-
tion towards them; then let God confound me." (See
WraxalVs Hist, of France, p. 47. Steele's Rom. Eccle.
Hist. p. 158.)
Henry III., king of France, and the last of the un-
happy line of Valois, was weak enough to put himself
at the head of this monstrous association; and so became
for a period entirely dependent on it, and almost subject
to its leaders.
About the year 1585 Felix Perretti, a Dominican
monk, raised himself to the chair of St. Peter, and as-
sumed the name of Sixtus the Fifth; a name but too
well known in history. At this period France was di-
THE LAST OF THE HOUSE OF VALOIS. G7
vided into three parties; and the triple war eomineneed,
called the war of the three Henries, firoiri Henry III.,
king of France, at the head of the royalist party; Henry,
king of Navarre, afterwards Henry IV. of Franee, at the
head of the Protestants; and Henry, Due. de Guise, at
the head of the leaguers. The pope perceiving that the
tendency of affairs was to drive the king of France to
the necessity of uniting with the king of Navarre, pub-
lished a bull, in which he excommunicated the latter and
tht prince of Conde, and declared them unworthy of
succeeding to the crown of France, to which they were
both Luirs presumptive, but both Hugonots. Sixtus V.
expected by this bull to conciliate the league, to ruin the
Protestant princes, and to prevent the possibility of the
future union of the two kings. He therefore accompa-
nied his malediction of the excommunicated princes
with the most opprobrious epithets, denouncing them as
apostates, heretics, and enemies of God and man.
Their subjects were released from all obedience, and the
king of France exhorted to extirpate the whole race of
Bourbon, and execute at once the papal sentence. (See
De Thou , vol. ix. p. 368, 371; the 2d vol. of WraxalPs
France, and the 1st vol. of HenauWs do. in loc.)
In this, however, as in some other cases, this pope
overleaped the mark. Henry III. saw that this outrage,
though levelled at heresy, attacked the majesty of his
throne. And, thanks to Martin Luther, light had now
been shining for fifty years on the walls of the Vatican.
The king did not forget that twenty-three years before,
when Pius IV. excommunicated the mother of the very
princes now cursed; the constable Montmorenci and the
chancellor l'Hopital, who ruled in the cabinet of Charles
IX., and whose names will live forever in the military
and legal annals of mankind; forced the see of Rome to
revoke and even to suppress the bull. He remembered
these things; and, though he dared not openly resist the
pope, he prohibited the publication of the offensive bull.
(De Thou, vol. ix. p. 374—6.)
But the young king of Navarre, boldly replied to the
popes's bull; denounced his holiness as a calumniator;
C8 THE LAST OF THE HOUSE OF VALOIS.
appealed from his sentence to a general council; de-
clared mortal enmity against him as Anti-Christ; re-
minded him that his own ancestors had before chastised
the insolence of the see of Rome, and threatened him
with exacting exemplary \ ciigcanee; and caused this
fearless response to be posted up at the very gates of the
pope's palace, and in the most public places in Rome.
in the midst of troubles which seemed to become
more dreadful to France, the great Duke of Guise be-
came at last so powerful as to aspire almost openly to
the throne ; while Henry seemed sinking under causes
not unlike those by which the first race of the French
kings had been set aside by Pepin, so many centuries
before. Indeed, wThile the Due de Guise, stood at the
head of the league, the Cardinal de Bourbon openly set
up his pretensions to the throne ; and Catherine de Me-
dici, the queen mother, intrigued for the succession of
her grandson, the duke of Lorrain. Publicly superceded
in his lawful authority, and privately contemned and in-
sulted ; the king at length roused himself up, and adopt-
ing in his extremity the maxims of his age and his reli-
gion, determined to cut off his most audacious nobles. —
D'Aubigny as quoted by Henault, (vol. 1, p. 453,) ex-
pressly declares that when the execution of the duke and
the cardinal de Guise, was proposed in council by the
king, and opposed by others on account of the danger he
would expose himself to at Rome by this open attack on
the leaders of the league, the pope's friends, and one of
them a cardinal ; "Henry took a letter out of his pocket,
in which Sixtus Quintus advised him to become absolute
master by any violence." The duke and cardinal were
therefore massacred on the two following days, with the
full concurrence of the pope. (See PEtoile, p. 257,
259. De Thou, vol. x. p. 460, 470. Davila, p. 747.)
Here then we see two of these parties disposed of by
his holiness. His enemy Henry of Navarre, excommu-
nicated ; and sate only so long as he could defend him-
self by arms. His friends Henry of Guise, and the car-
dinal ins uncle, butchered by his advice. So much for
the Protestants, and the Leaders of the league. Now let
us see what fate awaited the remaining party.
THE LAST OF THE HOUSE OF VALOI>. G9
Pressed on all sides, the king at last found, himself
compelled to seek anew, reconciliation with the king
N varre. The death of Catherine of \ had cut
off all hopes of the house of Lorrain attaining to the s<
reignty. The murder of the Guises while it freed Henry
from the fear oi immediate ruin, inflamed in tl.
terrible manner the adherents of the league, still the
most powerful oi three parties in France ; and, as one of
them had been a cardinal, the pope laid hold on this fact
and used it in such way as he supposed would conciliate
the league by his pretended anger at the death of their
leaders; while by advising their destruction, he had al-
ready as he hoped, laid the king under the greatest obli-
gations. At the same time, the death of the duke of
Anjou (15S4,) the only remaining brother of the king,
who had no issue, opened the succession to the throne to
the house oi Bourbon. And as the disgrace and con-
finement of the cardinal of Bourbon, had put an end to
his pretensions as the head of that house ; the young king
of Navarre stood as the next heir of the monarchy in de-
fault of issue to the reigning king. Besides this, the two
kings were nearly related by blood, still more nearly al-
lied by marriage ; both at war with the league ; both
hated by the pope ; both jealous of his insolent preten-
sions; and both repeatedly threatened with assassination
by the joint creatures of Rome and the league.
In such circumstances, Henry III, found himself sur-
rounded by the greatest difficulties. He was refused ab-
solution by the pope, for the murder of the Guises,
though they were taken oft by his own advice ; and
threatened with speedy excommunication, if he did not
comply with his extravagant demands. The college of
the Sorbonne, whose decrees in theology, were consider-
ed sacred by the faithful throughout France; solemnly
decreed that the nation was freed from its allegiance to
the king, and that the safety of the Catholic faith re-
quired his destruction. The Parliament of Paris was
imprisoned ; the monks had excited the capital, and after
it most of the cities of the kingdom to rerolt ; the king
was accused of every crime, and not only his deposition
agreed on, but the convent of the Hieronimities, in the
70 THE LAST OF THE HOUSE OF VALOTS.
wood of Vincennes was fixed on as the place of his future
confinement during life. (De Thou, vol. x. p. 525, 29.
Davilla, p. 772, 5.) The league was in possession of
nearly all his dominions ; the victorious Hugonots were
advancing rapidly upon him; his treasury was empty, his
army neither numerous nor well appointed ; and of the
surrounding states, Spain, Savoy and the Pope, decided-
ly the frie&ds of the league and the sagacious and pow-
erful Elizabeth of England, the open protectress of the
Protestants.
At this crisis, the noble conduct of the young king of
Navarre opened a door of hope to Henry III ; and after
a short preliminary discussion, a truce for two years was
concluded between them on the 3d of April, 1589. Yet
to so abject a condition was Henry reduced, that he offer-
ed the most humiliating terms of peace to the duke of
Mayenne, who had succeeded his murdered brother, the
Due de Guise, as head of the league, and lieutenant-
general of the forces ; and who now elated by the pros-
pect of complete success, and confident of the protec-
tion of Sixtus V., rejected with contempt all the over-
tures of the king. (Besides De Thou, Davilla, and
Wraxall, quoted above, see Mezerai, vol. iii, p. 580.)
The publication of the treaty between the Hugonots
and French Catholics, (as we may call them in contra-
distinction from the leaguers or pope's party;) excited
the city of Paris, which was in the hands of the adher-
ents of the league and the pope, to the highest pitch of
fury. Sixtus V. faithfully informed of the state of af-
fairs, incensed at the refusal of the king to liberate cer-
tain creatures of his, whom his own safety had forced
Henry to confine, and convinced that the condition of the
crown was desperate; issued on the 24th of May, 1589,
a monitory commanding the French monarch icithin ten
days to liberate the cardinal of Bourbon and the .irch-
bishop of Lyons ; (who were then state prisoners for trea-
son.) In case of Henry'' s refusal to obey this imperious
mandate, the pope declared him and all his adherents, ex-
communi'CATed ; and commanded him to appear icithin
sixty days before his tribunal at Rome ! This wily Pon-
tiff in the midst of his rage had sense enough left to
THE LAST OF THE HOUSE OF VALOIS. 71
comprehend, that after all, Henry might brat the league
at last; and therefore while he gratified his own revel . .
and conciliated the foreign and domestic enemies <>f ta-
king of France by his anathema; yet he refused to ad-
vance a farthing from the treasury of St. Peter, to aid the
duke of Mayenne in executing his papal excommunica-
tion ; thus saving at once his treasure, and keeping
door open for all future contingencies. (De Thou, vol.
x. p. 594. Davilla, p. 810. WroxoH, vol. iii. ch. 8.)
As was natural, these events united the two kings
more closely. They met in person at the castle of Pies-
sis, near Tours ; and apparently cordially reconciled to
each other, prepared to prosecute the war with redoubled
vigour. After various adventures, the king in person sat
down before Paris and closely invested it, towards the
end of July 1589. With a powerful army, flushed by re-
peated victories, and led by the ablest commanders of
that age ; opposed by dispirited and defeated troops now
shut up in the capitol, and about to suffer the horrors in-
cident to the siege of so large a city ; the affairs of the
king seemed to be in the most prosperous condition,
while his enemies were hastening to ruin. No situation
indeed could be more desperate than that of the league,
nor any triumph more certain than that of the king ; when
one of those events which we so often meet with in pa-
pal story, and which throw so terrible a shade over the
principles and practices of that church, which claims to
be the only one in whose profession the soul can rest in
safety ; turned the whole aspect of the scene, and robbed
the king at once of his triumph and his life.
A monk scarcely twenty-three years of age, by name,
James Clement, and by profession a Dominican, (to which
order the reigning pontiff himself belonged;) was the
author of so momentous a revolution. Ferocious, gloomy
and daring; dissolute, ignorant and superstitious; (alas!
how like the multitude of his brethren!) he undertook at
the suggestion of Bourgoing, the prior of his convent,
to assassinate the king. Every earthly reward, if he
should come off with life ; and all divine recompences
if he fell, were profusely promised to sustain him in his
atrocious enterprise. The nature and the reality of these
72 THE LAST OF THE HOUSE OF VALOIS.
attempts on his credulity and fanaticism, may be conceived
from the'horrible defence of the crimejhe committed, in
the public discourse by Pope Sixtus V. which is annex-
ed to this narrative. Nay, the brutal priest is said to
have received, from some of the most distinguished fe-
males of the pope's faction in Paris, and amongst the
chief of them from the duchess of Montpenser, sister
to the murdered duke of Guise; such sacrifices and
compliances as are usually considered most acceptable to
a depraved and sensual monk. It is certain that no in-
ducements were spared by the adherents of the pope and
the league, to encourage him; nor any acts considered too
vile, by which success might be wTon. The president of
the Parliament of Paris, Harlai^then in the prison of the
Bastile, and the count Brienne detained in the Louvre,
were deceived by the accomplices of the monk; and al-
though themselves in confinement for their devotion to
the king, wTere trepaned by false pretences; and furnished
letters to the assasin which facilitated his diabolical un-
dertaking. They who will consider these statements,
and those which follow, and which are drawn from
sources perfectly authentic; will perceive that the pope in
his discourse pronounced in the consistory at Rome,
thirty-twro days after the assassination of the French
monarch, not only suppresses .material facts in order to
make the crime of his brother Dominican, appear to be
favoured of God; but also falsifies in the most glaring
manner, the simplest details he pretends to recount.
Henry had been so often warned of the meditiated at-
tempts on his life, that it would perhaps have been im-
possible for any one but an ecclesiastic, to have had ac-
cess to him, under circumstances that would render such
an attempt possible. But his devotion to the monastic
orders was so childish as to exceed belief, and on one
occasion drew down on him the contemptuous and bitter
reproach of this very pope Sixtus V.; the king of France,
said he, is trying all his days to become a monk, and I
who was one all mine, to cease being one! Indeed, it
was not unusual with him to join with the basest of the
people in the stupid and indecent processions ot the
Penitents; walking hours together, barefooted and nearly
THE LAST OF THE HOUSE OF VALOIS. 73
naked, with a sack over his head and person, through the
streets of his own capital.
On the 31st of July. L58 ». the monk quitted Paris, and
being stopped by the advanced guards of the royal arm
was carried to La Guesse the solicitor-general, who de-
tained him during the night, and in the morning of Au-
gust 1st, conducted him to the king; for whom he pro-
fessed to have a most important message. And so indeed
he had! Clement was admitted into the royal presence,
while the king was yet undressed; and presented to him
the letter which had been obtained from the count Brienne.
While the king attentively perused the letter, the monk
took a knife from his sleeve, and with incredible celerity
plunged it into his body. Henry drew his sword and
fell on the monk; and several gentlemen of the household
who were at hand, slew him before he could escape from
the apartment; and threw his body from the window.
(De Thou, vol. x. p. 668. Davilla, p. S15. Renault,
vol. i. p. 455.)
The king lingered until the next day, when he died in
his thirty-eighth year, having reigned fifteen years. He
left no children, nor any male relatives of the blood royal
nearer than Henry of Navarre; who in his own right was
heir apparent, and was declared by the king in his last
moments to be his successor. He mounted the throne of
France by the name of Henry IV.; and after a most event-
ful life, fell himself, by the hands of a popish assasin.
With Henry III. ended the line of Yalois, which be-
gan to reign in 1328. Some say he was murdered in the
hotel de Goudi, at St. Cloud, in the identical room in
which the horrible butchery of the Protestants, usuallv
called the massacre of St. Bartholomew, was resolved on
by his ferocious brother Charles IX. and his still more fe-
rocious mother Catherine de Medici, seventeen vears be-
fore. Henry was a man in all respects remarkable; and
perhaps no prince ever excited higher expectations, or
more fatally disappointed them. He possessed a charac-
ter, says M. de Thou, who was his cotemporarv, and knew
him well, perfectly incomprehensible; in some things su-
perior to his dignity, in others weaker than a child. In
his unhappy race which reigned over France 261 years,
7
74 THE LAST OF THE HOUSE OF VALOIS.
and furnished thirteen of her kings; all in some respects
remarkable for princely qualities, and nearly all still more
so for vices and misfortunes; there was notone perhaps
so fair an epitome of the whole, as he who was the last of
the renouned house of Valois. Yet strange as it maybe,
under this race Prance made prodigious advances. Her
territory was enlarged by the acquisition of some of the
finest provinces; Dauphine, Burgundy, Provence and
Brittany. Her laws were consolidated and perfected.
Learning was encouraged, and the arts were patronised
by nearly every one of this long line of kings. The ac-
cession of the hquse of Bourbon to the throne in the per-
son of the king of Navarre, forms one of the most striking
eras in the history of France; and to the protestant reader
it ought to be a subject of peculiar gratitude that such an
account as that furnished us by the great Sully has come
down to us. To such readers, we offer no apology for
adding his testimony as to some of the causes operating
on the events, of which a brief sketch is here made.
Henry of Guise, Henry of France, Henry of Navarre,
and Sixtus V. pope of Rome: these are the chief actors
in this bloody drama. Behold the issue! Henry of
Guise intriguing for his sovereign's throne, with the con-
nivance of the pope; then murdered by the king for these
intrigues, by the advice of the pope! Henry of Navarre,
excommunicated by the pope, and persecuted with fire
and sword! Henry of France by turns caressed and
threatened ; at last advised to the murder of his re-
bellious nobles, and then cursed by the pope, and murder-
ed at the instigation of his rebellious subjects, by a priest
nnd' brother of the same order with the pope; who Ipd
formally excommunicated him, and who thirty days after
hie death, pronounced a panegyric on the assasin who
slew him! And yet this pope, beyond all question the
worst man of the four — the vicar of the meek and lowly
Jesus — the infallible head of the only church of God — the
living depository of the stupendous powers of pardoning
or condemning the souls of men — opening or shutting
the gates of heaven and hell!
This is that Sixtus, who not by the power of great
learning and profound research; nor by any of the ordi-
ORATION OF POPE SIXTUS V., &C. 75
nary modes in which such a question of history and
philology would naturally be settled; but by the Infallible,
spiritual guidance of God the Spirit, SETTLED ;is be said,
irrevocably, and as we know falsely, the canon of
ipture as used by his sect; and as to be exclusively
used by the whole world, when that sect should be par-
amount. The Clementine edition of the Vulgate, false it-
self, if it had conformed to their own standard, in con-
taining, first, hundreds of perversions of the Scriptures;
and secondly in adding to it, whole books never inspired
by God, (the Apocrapha;) was afterwards issued when
that of Sixtus had been found after being infallibly pro-
nounced the only true copy, to contain two thousand
errors of so gross a kind, as to require the whole to be
suppressed! So that the seal of the Holy Ghost set for-
ever to a false and corrupt volume, which was called the
Bible, by a man stained with the most atrocious crimes,
whom the papists call Christ's vicar; was in a few years
erased by another act of the unchangeable God, done in-
fallibly by another unerring head of the only infallible
church! And so stand the bulls of the popes, mutually
asserting their own glory, and mutually cursing the work
of each other; all infallibly, by the immediate presence
and power of God!
A TRANSLATION QF THE ORATION OF SIXTUS V., POPE
OF ROME, AS IT WAS UTTERED IN THE CONSISTORY
AT ROME, SEPTEMBER 2, 1589, DEFENDING THE EX-
ECRABLE FACT OF JAQUES CLEMENT, A DOMINICAN
FRIAR, UPON THE PERSON OF HENRY III. XING OF
FRANCE, TO BE BOTH COMMENDABLE, ADMIRABLE AND
meritorious. ( See Steele'* s Romish Ecclesiastical His-
tory. De Thou, book 96, being vol. vii. p. 495 — 6.
Mezerai, vol. iii. pp. 649 — 59. Histoire Des Papes,
vol. vi. p. 78. )
Considering in my mind both often and earnestly, and bending my
thoughts to muse upon those things, which by the providence of God,
are lately come to pass; methinks I may rightly usurp that saying of the
prophet Habakkuk, a work is done in your days, which no man will
believe when it shall he\reported. The King of France is done to
death, by the hands of a monk: For unto this it may fitly be applied,
albeit the prophet spake properly of another thing; namely, of the in-
/O ORATION OF POPE SIXTUS V.
carnation of our Lord, which exceedeth all wonders and marvels what-
soever; even as the Apostle Paul doth most trulv refer the very same
words to the resurrection of Christ. When the prophet speaks cf a
work, he will not be understood of any vulgar or ordinary matter; but
of some rare, some famous and memorable exploit. As where it is
said of the creation of the world, the heavens are the icorks of thy
hands: and again, the seventh day he rcstfd frojn all the works which
he had made. Hut where he baith, it is done; it is usual in Scripture,
to understand such a thing as falleth not out by blind chance, by hap-
hazard, by fortune, or at all adventures; but by the express will, provi-
dence, disposition, and government of God. As when our Saviour says,
Ye shall do the works ichich I do; and greater than these shall ye
do; and many such like places in Holy Scripture.
But where he says it was already done, he speaks after the manner of
the prophets; who, for the certainly of the event are wont to foretell of
things to come, as if they were already past. For the philosophers sav,
that things past are in nature of necessity, things present in a state of
now being, and things to come to be merely contingent; that is their
judgment. In regard of which necessity, the prophet Isaiah, foretelling
a long time before the death of Christ, said even as after it was said
again; He ivas led as a sheep to the slaughter; and as a lamb be-
fore the shearers, he opened not his mouth And such a thing is this
whereof we now treat. This which hath happened in these our days:
a work famous, memorable, and almost incredible! A work not wrought
without the special providence and government of the Almighty. A
monk had slain a king. Not a painted king, one figured out upon a piece
of paper, or upon a wall; but the King of France, in the middle of his
army, being hedged in with his camp, and guarded on every side.
Which indeed is such a work, and so brought about, as no man will be-
lieve it, when it shall be reported, and posterity perhaps will repute it for
a fable. That a king should die, or should be slain, men are easily in-
duced to think it. But that he could thus be cut off, the world will hard-
ly believe it. As that Christ should be born of a woman, we do easily
acknowledge it: but if we add further, that he was born of a virgin,
my human wit cannot subscribe unto it. Likewise that Christ should die,
is as easily believed; but being dead to rise again, (because that to a
natural habit once wholly lost there is no retiring back again) in the
reach of man's capacity, is impossible, and by consequence incredible. —
That a man out of sleep, out of his sickness, out of a swoon, or of an
extacy should recover himself again, (for that in the usual course of na-
ture such things are usual) in human reason we accord unto it ; but a
dead man to rise again, in the judgement of the flesh, it seemed so in-
credible that when Paul made mention thereof amongst the Athenian
philosophers, they upbraided him as a setter forth of strange gods,
and others, as Luke roporteth, laughed at him, and said, IVe will hear
thee about this matter again. Therefore in such things as are not wont
to fall out .according to the custom of nature, and common course of the
world, the prophet Baith, that no man will believe when report shell be
made ; but vet when we remember God's omnipotent power and capti-
vate our understandings to the obedience, which is through faith and to
the will of Christ, we are brought to believe ; for by this means, that
which naturally, was incredible is become credible. Therefore I, who,
according to man, do not believe that Christ was born of a virgin : yet,
ON THE ASSASINATION OF HENRY III. /7
when it is further added that it w;»s done by the working of the Holy
. above the compass of nature, I do verily assent and give credit
to it. And when it is s-aid that Christ rose again from the dead, accord-
ing to man's wit, I cannot yield unto it ; hut when it is said again that it
was done by a divine nature which was in him, then do I most assured-
ly believe it. In like manner, although according to the wisdom of the
llesh and man's understanding, it be incredible, or at least very impro-
bable, that so mighty a prince in the midst of his camp, so guarded with
such an armed troop should he *laughtered by the hands of one poor
sillv friar ; vet when I call to mind on the other side the most heinous
misdemeanor of the king, the particular providence of the Almighty rul-
ing in this action ; and how strangely and wonderfully God executed his
most just decree against h:m, then do I verily and steadfastly believe it.
For why ? We may not refer so notable and strange a work to any
other cause, than to the special providence of God (as we understand
that some there be who ascribe it to other ordinary causes, to fortune
and chance, or some other such like accidental events) but they who
narrowly look into the course of the whole preceedings, may clearly see
how manv :hings were brought about, which without the special supply
of Divine assistance could never be achieved of any man. And cer-
tainly we may not think that God doth loosely govern the state of kings
and kingdoms, and other so excellent and weighty affairs. There are in
the holv stories of the Bible,, examples of this kind to none whereof we
can assign any other author than God ; but there is none wherein more
clearly shineth the superior working of God, than this which now we
have in hand. We read that Eleazar, to the end he might destroy the
persecuting king and enemy of God's people, did put himself in danger
of inevitable death. When as beholding in the conflict one elephant
more conspicuous than the rest, upon which the king was like to be,
he rushed violently amidst thermit of the enemies, and making xcay
on both sides, came to the beast, got under him, and slew him with
his sword ; ivhich in the fall fell down upon him and crushed him
to death. And here for zeal, for- valor of mind, and for the issue of
the thing attempted we find some resemblance and equality ; but for the
rest no one thing comparable. Eleazar was a professed soldier trained
up in arms, and in the field, one purposely picked out for the battle ; as
it oft falls out enraged with boldness and fury of mind ; whereas our
monk was never brought up in such broils and martial encounters, but by
his trade of life so abhorring from blood that happily he could scarce
endure to see himself let blood. He knew before both his manner of
death and place of burial ; as that more like one swallowed up into the
bowels then pressed down by the fall of the beast, he should be en-
tombed in his own spoils. But this man was to look for both death and
tortures more bitter than death, such as he could not dream of, and lit-
tle doubted he to lie unburied ; besides many other points of difference
that are between them. And well known likewise is the famous story of
the holy woman Judith, who to set free her own besieged city and peo-
ple of God, took in hand an enterprize (God doubtless directing her there-
unto,) about the killing of Holofernes, then general of the enemies' for-
ces, and in the end she did effect it. In which attempt, although there
be many and manifest tokens of a superior direction ; yet in the death
of this king and deliverance of the city of Paris, we may see far greater
arguments of God's providence, inasmuch as in the judgment of man it
7*
78 ORATION OF POPE S1XTUS V.
was more difficult and impossible than that : for that holy woman open-
ed her purpose to souk,- of the governors and in their presence, and by
their rafferance passed through both their gates and guard of the1 city ; so
that she could he in no d Anger of any search or inquisition, which dur-
ing the time of assault is wont to he so straight, that scarce a fly may pass
by unexamined: bat being amongst the enemies, through whose tents,
and several wards', she must needs pass after some trial and examination,
for that she was a woman, and had about her neither letters nor weapons,
from whence might grow anv suspicion, and rendering very probable
reasons Cpt her coming to the camp, of her llight and departure from her
countrymen, she was licenced to pass without any let; so that as well for
those causes, as for her sex and excellent beauty, she might l»o Admitted
into the presence of so unchaste a governor, upon whom being inl
ted with wine, she might easily effect her purpose. This she did. But
ours, a man of holy orders, did both essay and bring about a work of
more weight, full of more incumbrances, and wrapt in with so great diffi-
culties and dangers on every side, as it could be accomplished by no
wisdom, nor human policy, neither by any other means, but the manifest
appointment and assistance of God. It was requisite that letters of com-
mendation should be procured from them of the contrary faction; it was
necessary he should pass out by the gate of the city which led unto the
enemy'3 camp, which doubtless was so warded in that troublesome time
of fcthe siege, that nothing was unsuspected; neither was any man suffer-
ed to pass to and fro, but after a most stict enquiry what letters he con-
veyed, what news he carried, what business, what weapons he had.
But he, (a wondrous thing) passed through the watches without examina-
tion, and that with letters of credence to the enemy, which if the citizens
had intercepted, without reprieve or further judgement, he had surely
died. This was an evident argument of God's providence. But a great-
er wonder was, that the same man soon after, without any examination
at all, should pass through the enemy's camp; likewise through the cen-
tinels, and several watches of the soldiers, and through the guard which
was next the body of the king; and, in a word, through the whole army,
which for the most part was made up of heretics, he himself being a man
of holy orders, and clad in a friar's weed, which in the eyes of such men
was so odious, that in the places adjoining to Paris, which a little before
they had surprised, whatsoever monks they took they either slaughtered
or else most cruelly treated.
Judith was a woman, therefore no whit hated, and yet often examined,
neither carried she ought about her which might endanger her; but this
man was a monk, and therefore detested and came very suspiciously with
a knife provided for the feat, and that not closed up in a sheath, (which
had been more excusable,) but altogether naked and hid in Ids sleeve,
which had they bolted out, there had been no way but present execution.
These are all such manifest tokens of God's special providence, as no ex-
ception can be taken against them, nor could it otherwise be, but that
God even blinded the eyes of the enemies lest they should descry him;
for as we said before, although some there are who unjustly ascribe those
things to chance and fortune, we cannot notwithstanding, be persuaded to
refer them to any cause hut to the will of God; nor truly should 1 other-
wise think, but that 1 have subdued my understanding to obedience in
Christ, who after SO Wonderful a manner provided both to set at liberty
the city of Paris, which then we understood to be many ways in great
ON' THE ASSISINATION OF HENRY III.
perplexity and d heinous misdeeds of
the king, and to take him out of the world by so unhappy am!
ful a death. And truly w»_> did therefor f foretell, thai it
would in time fall out that I - ike
to come to some strange and shameful end. which not only the cardinals
of Joyeuse, of Lenencort and Paris, but the ambassador likewise, who
then was lieger with us. can well vouch I spake. For why, we call not
the dead, but men alive to witness of our words, which all of them full
-emember. Notwithstanding howsoever we are now forced to plead
against this hapless kin^.we do in no wise touch the kingdom and royal «tate
of France, which as we have heretofore, so still hereafter will we prosecute
with ffection and honorable regard : But this we have spoken
of the king's person onlv. whose unfortunate end hath deprived him of
all th ich this holy seat, the mother of all the faithful, and es-
pecially of Christian princes, is wont to perform to emperors and kings
-e, which for him likewise we had solemnized, but that
the Scripture in such a case doth flatly forbid us. There is (saith St.
John) a sin unto death. I say not for that any m< ay:
which may be understood either of the sin itself, as if he should say for
that sin, or else for the remission of that sin, I will not that any man
should pray, because it is unpardonable; or that which sorteth to the
same end, for that man who committeth a sin unto death. 1 will not that
any man should pray: of which kind likewise our Saviour Christ in St.
Matthew makes mention, that to him which sinneth against the Holy
Ghost, there is no n ither in this world or in the world to
come; where he maketh three sorts of sin. against the Father, against
the Son, and against the Holy Ghost: the two former are not so grievous
but pardonable, but the third is not to be forgiven. All which difference
(as the schoolmen out of the scriptures deliver it,) ariseth out of the di-
versity of the properties which are severally ascribed to the several per-
sons of the Trinity. For although as there is the same essence, so there
is the same power, wisdom and goodness of all the persons, (as we learn
out of the creed of Athanasius. when he saith. the Father is omnipotent,
the Son omnipotent, and the Holy Ghost omnipotent:) yet by the way
of attribution, to the Father is ascribed power, to the Son wisdom, and
to the Holv Ghost love; each whereof as they are called properties, are
so proper 10 everv person as they cannot be put upon another: and by
the contraries of these properties we come to know the difference and
weight of sin. The contrary c{ power (which is the attribute of the
Father) is weakness: so that whatsoever we commit through infirmity
and weakness of our nature, may be said to be committed against the
. r. The contrary of wisdom is ignorance, through which if a man
offends, he is said to offend against the Son; so that those sins which are
committed either through man's frailty or ignorance, may easily obtain a
pardon. But the third, which is love, the property of the Holy Ghost,
hath for his contrary ingratitude a most hateful sin, whereby it comes
to pass that man doth not acknowledge God's love and benefits towards
. but forgetteth, despiseth, and groweth in hatred of them, and so at
length becometh obstinate and impenitent: and this way men offend more
grievously and dangerously towards God, than by ignorance and infirmity;
therefore these are called sins against the Holy Ghost: which because
they are not so often and so easily forgiven, and not without a greater
measure ef grace, they are reckoned in a sort unpardonable: when as
SO JUDGE GASTON OF N. CAROLINA.
notwithstanding only by mason of man's impenitencv, they are absolutely
and simply unpardonable, for whatsoever is committed in this life, though
it be against the Holy Ghoflt, yet by a timely repentance it may be blot-
ted out; but he that pcrsevereth to the end, leaveth no place for grace
and mercy; and for such an otlence, or for a man so offending, that apos-
tle would not that after his death we should pray. And now for that
unto our great grief, we are given to understand that the aforesaid king
died thus impenitent) as namely, amidst a knot of heretics, (for of such
people he had mustered out an army,) and likewise for that upon his
death bed he bequeathed the succession of his kingdom to Navarre, a
pronounced and excommunicated heretic, and even at the last point and
gasp, he conjured both him and such like as were about him, to take
vengeance of those whom he suspected to be the authors of his death;
for these and such like manifest tokens of impenitency, our pleasure is
that there shall no dead manV rites be solemnized for him. not for that
we do in any sort prejudice the secret judgment and mercy of God to-
ward him, who was able according to his good pleasure, even at the very
breathing out of his soul, to turn his heart and to have mercy upon him;
bat this we speak according to that which came into the outward appear-
ance. Our most bountiful Saviour grant that others being admonished
by this fearful example of God's justice, may return into the way of life,
and that which he hath thus in mercy begun, let him in great kindness
continue and accomplish, as we hope he will, that we may yield unto
him immortal thanks for delivering his church from so great mischiefs
aud dangers.
NUMBER X.
JUDGE GASTON OF N. C, RELIGIOUS LIBERTY — MEN-
TAL RESERVATION.
William Gaston, now one of the Judges of the
Court of Appeals of North Carolina, has been the first
within our knowledge to bring before the American peo-
ple by his conduct,— the momentous questions involved
in the nature, the sanctity, and the simple integrity of
public oaths, — when administered by Protestants to Cath-
olics. It is to be considered fortunate that this whole
subject has come up in connexion with the name and
conduct of a public functionary, whose public acts are
open to comment, — and that too, a man of acknowledge
*JUDGE GASTON OF N. CAROLINA, 8l
€(1 ability and great private worth. We escape all char-
ges of private malevolence ; the gentleman implicated is
precluded by any pretext of ignorance or incapacity ; and
his private virtues, acknowledged by his countrymen,
compel us to charge to his dreadful religious principles,
rather than to his better nature, the conduct, which it is
now our purpose freely to examine. It is now (July 1835)
over six months since the material facts of this case, were
stated publicly before a thousand persons in Baltimore ;
and the wish was then expressed which is now repeated,
that Judge Gaston might feel the necessity of publicly
explaining his conduct. We shall use our best efforts
to lay this publication before his eyes.
They who have taken any interest in the past, know
that Mr. Gaston has been for many years one of the most
distinguished citizens of North Carolina. Excluded, as
was all along supposed by the facts now' to be exhibited,
from holding any civil office in that commonwealth; he has
however often been one of kcr representatives in con-
gress, and long one of her most abl-e lawyers.
In one of the numbers of a periodical work now in
progress, devoted to biographical sketches of distinguish-
ed Americans, there is to be found a brief notice of Mr.
Gaston. From this we learn by authority, it is to be pre-
sumed, that one of his ancestors was a French Hugonot,
expelled his country along with all that was most lovely
and excellent in beautiful France, at the revocation of the
edict of Nantz, by Louis the XIV.; that another was
an Irish Presbyterian ; that his mother wras a Roman
Catholic, and above all cares deeply instilled into
his young heart, the dogmas of her faith. In short,
that the degenerate offspring of that noble pair of iaces,
has been perverted into the poor gull of a system, which
all his ancestors abhorred, and the humble follower of
those who shed like water, the best blood he inherits-
Be it so. Judge Gaston, — chooses to be a papist ; he is
free to be so; and all wise men will pity him.
But now comes the difficulty. By the constitution of
North Carolina, he is expressly disqualified to hold the
office he occupies, precisely because he chooses to be a
Catholic. In the XXXII. article it is thus written: '-That
82 JUDGE GASTON OF N. CAROLINA.-
no person who shall deny the being of God, or the
truth of the Protestant RELiGinx, or the divine au-
thority either of the Old or New Testaments, or ivho
shall hold religious principles incompatible with the free-
dom and safety of the state, shall be capable of holding
any office, or place of trust or profit, in the civil govern-
ment within this state." — Now, Mr. Gaston is at this
moment, a judge of the Court of Appeals of North Car-
olina. Before he took his seat on the bench, he took an
oath in some usual form, to support the constitution of
that state. Part of that constitution asserts and assumes
the truth of the Protestant religion. But Mr. Gaston is
an avowed and most decided papist ! — Now, will he do
himself the justice, mankind the favour, and his religion
the service of explaining this conduct ? Here he is liv-
ing in the practical daily duty, voluntarily undertaken on
oath, to maintain that which involves the truth of the
Protestant religion ; wdiile he daily professes to hold and
believe every word and tittle that is protested against — as
also true and binding.
We omit any extended notice of that part of the arti-
cle quoted above, wThich disqualifies all persons, "who
shull hold religions principles incompatible ivith the free-
dom and safeiy of the stated The public are fully aware
that for three hundred years, all real Protestants have be-
lieved and taught that the essential doctrines of the papal
church wrere incompatible wTith civil and religious liberty.
The altar and the throne have been welded together for a
thousand years : and the oppression of the bodies and
the death of the souls of men, have been compassed by
the united hands of kings and priests. This discussion
is nowr rife in our own land ; and we simply invite our
readers to make themselves acquainted with its progress.
It cannot be denied that this clause in the constitution
of North Carolina, was meant and supposed to exclude
the peculiar principles of the Roman faith ; though the
nature of the subject renders it less proper for this occa-
sion, than the clearer preceding enactment in the same ar-
ticle. It may be will to note that this constitution is one
of our very earliest American plans oi free government;
that it was formed in the very inception of our national
JUDGE GASTON OF N. CAROLINA. 83
revolution (being adopted in December, 1776); and that
it was the work in part of the same bold, wise and noble
people, a part, of whom met at a distant point had even
before others were ready to act for freedom, as eaih
the spring of 1775, publicly declared themselves a free
people. Neither will it be out of place to note the pre-
vailing temper of that period, and of the great men who
illustrated it all over America. The following extract is
taken from "An Address of the Continental Congress to
the people of Great Britain, dated October 31, 1774." —
(See Journal of Continental Congress, in 4 vols. 1774 to
1778, vol. 1. p. 30.)— "And by another act, the do-
minion of Canada is to be so extended, modelled and
governed, as that by being disunited from us, detached
from our interests by civil as well as religious prejudices,
BY THEIR NUMBERS DAILY SWELLING WITH CATHOLIC
emigrants from Europe, and by their devotion to an
administration so friendly to their religion, that they mrght
become formidable to us, and on occasion be fit instru-
ments in the hands of power, to reduce these ancient,
free, Protestant colonies to the same state of slavery
with themselves." * * * "Nor can we suppress our
astonishment that a British Parliament should ever con-
sent to establish in that country a religion that has
deluged your island in blood, and dispersed IM-
PIETY, BIGOTRY, PERSECUTION, MURDER AND REBEL-
LION through every part of the icorld." — Commend-
ing this part of the subject to those who are so dili-
gent in perverting the opinions of our fathers in relation
to it ; we pass to the other clause of the article.
Mr. Gaston has sworn to maintain "the truth of
the Protestant religion !" He has sworn to main-
tain a constitution which disqualifies him, the moment he
shall udenythe truth of the Protestant religion" ; and yet
he is confessedly a papist, — a believer in all the neces-
sary dogmas, and a member in full exercise of all the pri-
vileges of that faith which the creed of pope Pius IV. ,
pronounces to be exclusive not only, but indispensable to
salvation : that church which declares itself to be, and
which all who repeat i^> creed, promise and swear to
maintain — as the "mother and mistress" of all churches
Si JUDGE GASTON OF N. CAROLINA,
— and to use all diligence by all means in their power to
spread all around them. In the name of common hon-
esty, how could Judge Gaston assent to pope Pius IV.
creed, which is the authorised creed of his church; and
at the same time assent to the provision quoted above from
the constitution of North Carolina? Can a man swear
with a good conscience, to opposite facts, statements and
opinions?
This is a matter now widely discussed in private cir-
cles throughout a large part of North Carolina. Many
members elected to the convention now in session at
Rai*eigh, to amend the constitution of that state, are
pledged to the people not to vote for any change in regard
to this subject ; that is to retain the XXXII. section quot-
ed above. We are ourselves the friends of the most
ample religious freedom ; and although some of the most
enlightened men and states in past ages, have declared
that the toleration of the Roman faith is utterly incom-
patible with the freedom of states, — we would prefer to
retain this noble feature of American liberty, and indulge
to all, even the right to think wrong. If however, the
people of North Carolina retain this feature of their pre-
sent system ; the papists and Judge Gaston in particular,
have to thank themselves, and him especially, for the gen-
eral indignation roused against their pernicious princi-
ples.
We have been curious to know how it was possible for
a man who regarded the good opinion of mankind — to
defend such conduct. It is one thing to satisfy a per-
verted moral sense, and act accordingly ; and it is quite
another thing to lay open before the world the secret rules
of such conduct. In such cases, a good pretext is an in-
valuable jewel. But in this case, after much enquiry
and consideration, we are unable to contrive even a toler-
ably decent excuse for the conduct of Judge Gaston ;
and there lore repeat the expression of our desire to hear
him speak for himself. In the mean time, the double
duty of justice to him, and to the great interests involved
in his conduct, may require of us the suggestion of the
several explanations — which have been mentioned to us,
as urged by himself. •
JUDGE GASTON OF N. CAROLINA. 85
It has been repeatedly stated by persons extenuating
Judge Gaston's conduct, that although the constitution of
his state was doubtless meant to exclude him ; yet in
fact, the clause that was supposed to do so was a dead
letter, and so considered. Now, this is hardly true; for
his acting as he has done, is producing immense excite-
ment ; and as far as is known, — the clause in question
almost perfectly accomplished its object for more than
fifty years ; he being amongst the very few, if not the only
papist who ever evaded it. But if true, the defence
would only prove that Mr. Gaston considered a man at
liberty to swear to what he neither believed nor meant to
do, merely because many had done so before, and many
others connived at it. This will never do.
Again, it has been often stated that% Mr. Gaston de-
fends himself by saying, that although the constitution
of North Carolina might be considered as very clearly
intending to exclude papists — yet in point of fact, as no
tribunal had been erected to decide what the c< Protestant
religion" was, nor any authorised definition of it given;
the constitution is necessarily inoperative from its vague-
ness,— or at least no man is bound to take heed to what
it may have intended. This is simply, if true, making
the usual technical distinction between perjury and false
swearing ; and while it might exonerate a man from the
former, it is hard to see how a conscientious man could
take an oath, which is sworri in a sense different from
that which he knows wTas meant and will be understood.
The doctrine of mental reservation is one ingrained into
the heart of popery. But surely there are some things
which, as no man knows better than Mr. Gaston, — may
be taken and considered as universally known ; some
things which all tribunals are presumed to knowr, and
presume all others to know ; and all society proceeds on
:his admitted truth. Then we pass by the child-like
simplicity, which left this gentleman in total ignorance of
what could possibly be meant by the Protestant religion,
in a land almost exclusively Protestant, as his state was;
supposing that all who can wT ill believe it out of polite-
ness. We ask, is it a just rule of Christian morals, for
Tien to swear at peradventure, — avouching they know
8
86 JUDGE GASTON OF N. CAROLINA.
not what ? Mr. Gaston was not obliged to take this oath;
he loner refused to be placed in circumstances that would
compel him to it ; he was under no obligation to be a
judge, a thousandth part as strong as the obligation all
are under to be certain as to what they swear. It* a
Christian, nay, it" a man of honour take an oath volun-
tarily, it is a most futile thing lor him afterwards to say
the oath was so vague it meant nothing, or so inartificial
it did not force him to mean what he was understood to
mean. The fact however is all the other way. For as
lately as June 1, 1833, a pamphlet was addressed " To
the Freemen of North Carolina" by Win. II. Hayicard,
jun., Richard M. Pearson, Romulus M. Saunders, and
Thomas Dews, jun., the object of which was to enforce
the necessity of a call of a convention to amend the con-
stitution of North* Carolina. These gentlemen say, (on
page 11,) that they represent "a respectable body of the
people and their representatives ;" and one of their dis-
tinct grounds of appeal against the then existing consti-
tution is as they say on page 5, the existence of "an odi-
ous restriction on conscience ," in the XXXII. Section. —
And so, out of IX. heads of amendment proposed by
them to the people— one (the VII. one) is the abolition of
that XXXII. Section. It would then appear to be worse
than folly to pretend, that in that community this section,
be it good or bad, was not well understood, and fully and
commonly admitted to contain a real, distinct, intelligible
proposition ; one which excluded papists from civil office ;
and which Mr. Gaston nevertheless bein^ and continuing
a papist, took and ought to explain.
There is a third defence more extraordinary than both
the others, which is the most commonly set up in conver-
sation in defence of this gentleman. "I believe," says
he, as his defenders report, UI believe in the truth of the
Protestant religion, — but I believe much more. I be-
lieve all that constitutes that religion, but I also believe
many things besides — which constitute the peculiarities
of my own, that is, the Roman Catholic religion. The
one is to the other as seven is to twenty." These words
have more than once been repeated to us by citizens of
North Carolina, as having dropped in their hearing from
JUDGE GASTON OF N. CAROLINA. 87
Mr. Gaston's lips. We do not of course vouch for this;
indeed we rather presume there must be a great mistake;
for the thing is grossly absurd, as well as totally impossi-
ble. The most superficial reader knows that the very es-
sence of the difference between the reformed religion
and that of Rome, is involved in the term — protestant.
In the origin of the reformation, the name was first given
to those who is 1529, protested against a decree of the
diet of Spires, over which presided Ferdinand, brother
to Charles V.; which repealed all the concessions made
to the reformers by the unanimous vote of the former
diet, and prohibited all change in the doctrine, discipline
or worship of the church of Rome, until a general coun-
cil should meet and decide the questions. Against this
decree, John, elector of Saxony; George, elector of
Brandenburg, with four other princes, and thirteen impe-
rial cities solemnly protested. (See Mosheim's Ch. Hist.
vol. iii. p. 57.) Thus the doctrine, discipline and wor-
ship, with the oppression and iniquity practised to uphold
them by the Romish church, were directly denounced by
the very first Protestants. And who does not know,
(except Judge Gaston,) that the reformed have for three
hundred years, been as well known by the name Protes-
tant, as his own brethren by the name Catholic ? But
this is a most useless argument — for if Protestants may
be allowed to be judged by the bulls of popes, and the
dscisions of councils and the standard writers of the pa-
pal sect — we are one and all most gross heretics ; and if
bishop England had his way, he would we doubt not, put
judge Gaston in the inquisition if he honestly held to
our opinions, faith and practice. If on the other hand,
our own standards be permitted to express our own opin-
ions, we all, of all the evangelical sects, profess to differ
most radically from Rome. The Formularies of the
Westminster Assembly, held by the Presbyterian church
in a form more or less modified, wherever she exists on
earth, not only repudiate the doctrines of Rome, but call
the pope anti-Christ, and his church the synagogue of
satan. (See chap. xxv. sect. 5 & 6 of the const, of the
Pres. ch. in the U. S.) But if it is preferred to resort to a
prelatical church for proof, the XXXIX. articles of the
88 JUDGE GASTON OF N. CAROLINA.
Episcopal church are still harder on the pope and judge
Gaston, even thai) all the rest. In the XIX. article they
say, "the churrli of Rome hath erred, not only in their
living and manner of ceremonies, but also in matters of
faith." In the XXII. thus, "the Romish doctrine con-
cerning PURGATORY, PARDONS, WORSHIPPING and ADOR-
ATION as well of IMAGES as of RELIQUES, and also in-
vocation of saints is a fond thin g vainly invented, and
grounded upon no warrant of scripture, but rather r< pug-
nant to the word of God:" The XXIII. denounces the
popish use of an unknown language in the public wor-
ship of God ; the XXIV., declares that the five extra sa-
craments of Rome, and the processions of the host are
false, and in part corrupt ; the XXVIII. expressly denies
transubstantiation, — which the council of Trent ex-
pressly before-hand curses them and all others for doing ;
the XXXI. article says, "the sacrifice of masses, in
which it was commonly said that the priest did offer
Christ for the quick and the dead to have remission of
pain or guilt, were blasphemous fables and danger-
ous deceits:" And so on to the end of the chapter !
Now when Judge Gaston calls to mind the fact, that the
council of Trent, the last and most important of the gen-
eral councils of his church, explicitly anathematised all
the distinctive doctrines of the Protestants; and that that
famous body actually adjourned their sessions finally
after eighteen years of deliberation, amidst hearty, re-
peated and unanimous execrations upon all the heretics
in the world ; wThen he remembers that in the creed based
upon the decrees of this council, all its doings are af-
firmed, arid all persons cursed by it, distinctly damned
over again in terms, — with the solemn addition on oath,
to hold, believe and propagate these things to the end of
life ; — really we cannot see how he could say, "he be-
lieves what the Protestants believe," — any more than we
can understand how he can be a candid Catholic, and
yet fairly sware to support a constitution which, in terms,
requires the belief of the truth of the Protestant religion.
It seems to u^, if this gentleman regards his own high re-
putation, he must seek better defences than these.
Judge Gaston must be aware that there are many peo-
ple in the world who know little of him, many who care
JUDGE O ASTON OF N. CAROLINA. 89
nothing about him personally, and some perhaps who
may not care to exhibit dislike towards him. He may
perhaps, therefore, suppose it was an enein\ who said that
when he was applied to by his friends to know if he could
take this extraordinary oath, it" they procured for him
the appointment which he now holds; he replied evasive-
ly, asked time for consideration, came on to this city
(Baltimore,) and from this place wrote that he would
lake the prescribed oath — and accordingly was appoint-
ed and did swear.
This statement has been repeatedly heard by us; and
while we do not pretend to assert its truth, it appears
quite as reasonable, and as likely to solve the case to the
honour of the party most concerned, as any other we
have heard. This city is the seat of the archiepiscopal
power of the papacy in the U. States. The right to take
oaths in a false sense ; to break oaths, when taken to
heretics especially; to swear, and then to get a dispen-
sation not to keep what is sworn to ; — to get dispensa-
tions to swear to any thing for the good of the church,
or to break anything sworn to ; these and such doctrines,
privileges and powers have for centuries been part of the
orthodox faith of the papal church ; and amongst the
Jesuits, who are supreme in America, — the universal
practice as well as belief. More than four hundred years
ago, the council of Constance burnt John Huss, though
he had the emperor's safe conduct expressly to go to and
return from the council. But the holy fathers coolly laid
it down as settled law and morality, that as no faith ought
to be kept with heretics, the perjury wrould be in the
keeping not the breaking of an oath. And such is the
current morality of the papacy. We mean no offence
then, but the contrary so far as Judge Gaston is person-
ally implicated, when we say we think it not more un-
likely that he got a dispensation to take the oath in ques-
tion, than that he should attempt to defend the taking of
it, on the preposterous grounds on which others have
placed his justification.
In fine, what can excuse such an act? What can be
said evil enough of a religion, that would not only allow
but seduce an honourable mind into the perpetration of it?
90
NUMBER XI.
AN ADDRESS TO THE AMERICAN TEOPLE.
Hon. Mr. Gaston of N. C. — Catholic Perfidy. — Prosti-
tution of the public press.
Being on the eve of departing from the United States,
in discharge of a public duty committed to my hands bj
that branch of the church of Jesus Christ, of which 1 am
a member; I feel myself imperatively bound by a Bense
of what is due to myself, as well as to the cause of truth
and public morality, to lay before my countrymen the fol-
lowing correspondence. For I am well aware that the
same religious principles wThich teach men to swear false-
ly, and keep no faith with those who, as they say, have
no faith; will prompt those who are so tardy and reluctant
to speak even in necessary explanation when I am pre-
sent and ready to reply, to be bold and prompt even in
attack, when I am far away. Nor can I doubt, that the
prostitution of the public press to the Catholic supersti-
tion, wThich has wTought me so much injury, though so
great injustice, in despite of all my personal efforts to
the contrary; will lend itself to the same designs in cir-
cumstances more favorable to success.
I have then solemnly to call the attention of the
American people to the facts established by the following-
papers; which go far to show — 1. That the Roman Oa-
tholic religion not only admits, but approves of false
swearing, when papists can gain any advantage thereby:
2. That the political newspapers of the day, to some exti
applaud this tremendous principle; and to a still greater
extent, are grossly subservient to the religious sect which
teaches and practices it!
The attention of the reader is directed first, to the letter
<~f Judge Gaston of North Carolina, and the introduc-
tory remarks which precede it; both of which are taken
from the LEXINGTON (Va.) Gazette, of February 5th,
1836. They follow:—
Hon. Wm, Gaston. — The reader will find below, a letter fioni this
gentleman to the editor of this paper, on the subject of the charge pre-
ferred against him by "Senex," of procuring from the bishop of Bait)*
AN ADDRESS TO THE AMERICA* PKOPLE. 91
more, an ecclesiastical permission to hold an office under the state of N.
Carolina, which the constitution of that State expressly disqualified him
from holding — in other words, authorizing him to commit pirjury; for
the judge could not enter upon the duties of the office without first swear-
ing to support the State constitution.
\\ re wish our motives in publishing this letter to he distinctly understood.
We do not publish it for any bearing it may have upon the questions
heretofore in controversy between Senex and ourselves: that is altogether
incidental and undesigned. We publish it simpl) from a sense of justice
to Judgu Gaston — to the elevated station he occupies, and to the State of
North Carolina which has conferred that station upon him, and whose
fame is involved in that of her sons. Our paper has been made the ve-
hicle of a calumny: it is proper therefore, that it should he made the
vehicle also of the refutation of that calumny.
We had hoped to have been spared the necessity of publishing this
letter. "Senex" knows that we employed the only means in our power
to absolve us from the necessity — but unfortunately without success.
We do not mean by any thing we have said, to reflect in the slightest
degree, upon the conduct of "Senex" in making this charge. His error
we sincerely believe was one purely of the head, such as we are all
liable to commit.
The letter must satisfy every candid mind that the charge is wholly
unfounded. The Judge's positive denial would be sufficient to prove this,
particularly as the evidence by which it is attempted to be sustained is of
the very weakest character.
All who know Judge Gaston, know that his character is without re-
proach and above suspicion. The high and most responsible station
which he occupies by the election of his Protestant fellow citizens
with whom he has spent his life, shows that his character is without a
stain. If the charge is true, the Judge is not only a liar and a perjured
scoundrel, but a "fool" too, for if the facts which lie states are not
true, would it not be the height of folly in him to publish them to the
world when their falsity can so easily be established? Would he not
thus furnish unequivocal evidence of his guilt? And that too, to persons
who would seize upon it with ferocious avidity? But with those who
question the Judge's veracity we have no argument. The letter itself
bears upon its face convincing proof of his candour. We commend it
*o our readers.
Raleigh, December 29th, 1835.
Sir. — I had the pleasure of receiving yesterday, and not before, your
letter of the 17th of October addressed to me at this place. The num-
ber of the Lexington Gazette, referred to in the letter as accompanying
it, was forwarded to Newbern, the place of my residence, some time
since. In consequence of the editorial article in the Gazette, I caused
to be transmitted to you two newspapers containing a speech which I
mad<i in our late State Convention. I presume that you have received
these, and that they furnish most, if not all, of the facts about which
you enquire.
The publication to which the editorial article is an answer, I have not
met with. From the nature, however, of that answer, I infer that it con-
tains a vile charge of my having obtained some ecclesiastical dispensa-
tions or permission to hold an office under the State of North Carolina,
92 AN ADDRESS TO THE AMERICAN PEOPLE.
and relieving me from the guilt of perjury in violating my oath to sup-
port the Constitution of the State. I know that a charge to this effect
bad heen made in a periodical work published at Baltimore, called (I
think) "The Religious and Literary iSlagazine," for not long after the
adjournment of the convention, and while I was yet here occupied with
the duties of the supreme court, a copy of the Magazine containing such
an accusation was sent on to me, and as I suppose by the conductors of
the work. It is not easy to determine when it is proper to come forth
with a denial of a calumnious charge, arid when it it most becoming to
treat it with silent contempt. The accusation in question seemed to me
so preposterous — so ridiculous — that it was scarcely possible for me to
notice it gravely, without subjecting myself to ridicule or the manifesta-
tion of a morbid sensibility. But I was saved from all difficulty in de-
ciding on the course then to be pursued. The style of the article was
so uncourteous, and the temper which it breathed so malignant, that self
respect utterly forbade me from paying any notice to it.
But your enquiries, sir, are evidently prompted by a sincere desire to
know the truth, and made in a manner that demands my respectful con-
sideration. If therefore it will afford you any satisfaction to have my
peremptory denial of the accusation, I have no hesitation in stating that
it is wholly false. It is no doubt but a mere repetition of the Baltimore
slander, and that professes to be mainly founded on the asserted fact —
that I withheld my assent to be put in nomination for the office of judge
until after I had visited Baltimore. This allegation is itself utterly false.
My lamented friend Chief Justice Henderson died in August, 1833. In
a few days afterwards I was informed of the occurrence, and urged by
gentlemen of the highest standing in the State, upon public grounds, to
permit myself to be considered as willing to accept the vacant office if it
should please the legislature to confer it. Strong reasons were also pre-
sented for pressing an early decision. There were difficulties in the way
of an immediate determination, but these had no connection whatever
with constitutional scruples. I had occasion but a short time before to ex-
amine for myself and to seek the best counsel to examine the disqualifica-
tions for office which some supposed the constitution denounced against
the professors of the Roman Catholic faith. I was satisfied that my re-
ligious principles did not incapacitate me from taking the office. But
there were personal considerations which compelled delay. It is unneces-
sary to set these forth — but that which was last removed arose from pe-
cuniary engagements which I had contracted, and which I feared the
great sacrifice of emolument that would follow on quitting the bar might
disable me punctually to comply with. Justice, honour required that a
satisfactory arrangement of these matters should be concluded before I
consented to be removed from the bar to the bench. This was done by
an early day in September, and then I gave my written consent to be
nominated for the vacant office, and my permission that this determina-
tion night be publicly known.
A very laborious fall circuit closed in the first week of November.
From it I went on a long promised visit to see my danghter, who was
settled in New York. 1 travelled by Norfolk and Baltimore, and passed
one day at the latter place, and as well as I recollect, one only. It had
been supposed by several who took a deep interest in my receiving the
appointment, that it would be bestowed without opposition. They had
afterwards ascertained that this was a mistaken opinion, and had inform-
AN ADDRESS TO THE AMERICAN PEOPLE. 93
ed me before 1 left Carolina that doubts had been expressed on the con-
stitutional question, and dilliculties railed about it. Having an hour of
leisure when at Baltimore, I wrote to one of my zealous friends residing
at Raleigh, stating the views which 1 had taken of the constitutional
question, and authorising him to give publicity to them, that their cor-
rectness might be judged of. I have understood, and have no doubt of
the fact, that this letter was rend bv my friend at his table in the presence of
several distinguished gentlemen, among others the great and good John
Marshall, and that copies of it were taken. This is the letter which lias
afforded the pretext for the falsehood (I hope a falsehood through mistake)
that my assent to be put in nomination had been withheld until after I
reached Baltimore.
It is needless surely for me to go further — but I will add, that I never
had any intercourse, verbal or written, direct or indirect, with the bishop
of Baltimore on the subject — and that I did not directly or indirectly
confer with any individual belonging or professing to belong to the Ca-
tholic church, upon the subject (out of my own immediate household)
until after I had announced my unconditional assent to be put in nomina-
tion for the office.
What use you may make of this communication I leave entirely to
your sense of propriety. It is not a pleasant matter for any man of
character or feeling to have a discussion entertained on the question wheth-
er he has or has not acted as a scoundrel and a fool — and I regard the
wantonness with which men's characters are dragged before the public;
the facility with which slanders are credited, and the rashness with which
unfounded imputations are attributed by political or sectarian rancor, as
among the worst vices of the age. If any public motive should require
that the miserable calumny to which I have referred should be contradict-
ed or repelled, you have here my authority for so doing. But as it
respects myself personally, 1 cannot but belivethat a life of nearly three-
score years has established for me a character such as it is, that does not
require to be defended or propped. I could wish therefore that I might
be permitted to pass the remainder of my days in the quiet discharge of
my duties, and that no further notice should be taken of this contempti-
ble falsehood. You will however act in relation to it as your judgment
shall direct.
With very respectful sentiments, I am sir,
Your obliged and obedient servant,
Mr. C. C. Baldwin. Will. Gaston.
To the foregoing letter, which came into my hands in
the manner described in the one which follows; I imme-
diately addressed to the Gazette, which had published it,
the following reply, under cover to a friend in Lexing-
ton, Va.
Baltimore, February 19r/i, 1836.
To the Editor of the Lexington Gazette:
Sir, — Some unknown person has sent to me through the post office,
the fragment of a newspaper dated the 5th of this month, in which I find
long letter of Judge Gaston of N- C. addressed to Mr. C. C.
94 AN ADDRESS TO THE AMERICAN PEOPLE.
Baldwin, and preceded by a column of editorial remarks. It is from
a passage of Judge Gaston's letter only, that I am enabled to de-
termiuu the name and location of the newspaper, a part of which has
been sent me. It is from the same source, that I learn he had been called
to account by a previous article in your paper, under the signature of
"Bene*.;" and that his present letter is published on the responsibility of
the gentleman to whom it ii addressed; and rather against the wishes of
its author.
In the course of Judge Gaston's letter, he refers to the Baltimore
Religious and Literary .Magazine, as having been the vehicle of s charge
similar to the one now hinted at by him; and indulges himself in such
expressions, to justify his contemptuous silence under the accusations
of that periodical, as were perhaps natural under the circumstances. .My
right to addres to you this communication, and to ask its publication in
your paper, is founded in part on the fact, that I am the senior editor of
the work in question, and the author of the article complained of; and
in still greater part on the intrinsic and induring importance of the matter
in contest.
Then be pleased sir, to bear with me while I make a short and perfect-
ly plain statement. In the "Baltimore Literary and Religious Mag-
azine," for July, 1835, is an article of four or five pages, entitled
"Judge Gaston of JV. Carolina, Religious Liberty. Mental Re-
servation." I send you, along with this, a copy of the work, and ask
the insertion of that article in your paper. This I do the more readily,
that all who choose, may see the real temper, manner and end of that
article, which Judge Gaston has so grossly misrepresented. It will then
be seen that the whole ground of defence set up by him, for the most
extraordinary act ever justified by a Christian gentleman, is entirely
evasive and irrelavent; and that the real ground of dissatisfaction with
his conduct and religious principles, remains not only uncontradicted,
but absolutely confessed.
Judge Gaston is a Roman Catholic. To that I hare nothing to say.
He is at full liberty to believe and practice whatever religious rites, seem
good in his own eyes, or none at all if he so pleases. And God forbid
that any should abridge him of his liberty. But sir, Judge Gaston
has no right, either natural, civil, or moral, to continue a Roman Catho-
lic, and at the very same moment, swear that he believes "the Pro-
testant Religion to be true." Still less has he the right to do
this in a solemn, public, formal and official manner ! Yet this is the
very thing which he has done — which he neither has denied nor can
deny — which I have alledged against him, — which I am ready to main-
tain to be true before any tribunal in the universe, and that with unan-
swerable proofs — and which he in the letter I am now noticing indirect-
ly justifies ! This sir is the plain matter of fact of the case. By the
XXXII. article of the late constitution of N. Carolina, it was provided,
"That no person who shall deny the being of God, or the truth
or the Protestant Religion, or the divine authority either of the
Old or New Testaments, or who shall hold religious principles i?i-
compatible with the freedom and safety of the state, small be
CAPABLE OF HOLDING ANT OFFICE, OR PLACE OF TRUST OR
PROFIT IN THE CIVIL GOVERNMENT WITHIN THIS STATE."
Yet Judge Gaston being and continuing a papist, was appointed a
judge under that constitution — and actually took the usual oaths to sup-
AN ADDRESS TO THE AMERICA* PEOPLE. 95
port that, which he trampled under foot even while he called God to wit-
ness that he helieved that to be true, which in his secret soul lie was sat-
isfied was false ! !
You will allow me sir to say in my own defence, that I have been
kicked into this popish controversy, by the priests and others around me;
that the case of judge Gaston was no private matter, but a public and
official act, — that as such it has been used as a strong and frightful illus-
tration, of the natural and necessary fruits of a false and bloody super-
stition, which is spreading in all directions in this country, — and which
foreign states and princes are conspiring to establish as the public religion
of America; and that in the whole case, the talents, public services, and
private virtues of judge Gaston have been fully admitted, indeed stated.
But this act of his is undeniable and indefensible; and it ought to open
the eyes of all men to the dreadful nature of a religion, which while it
persecutes on principle all who reject it, — at the same time corrupts all
who receive it.
If you will look at the article to which I have already alluded, you will
discover that the four grounds of defence set up by the friends of this gentle-
man, are slightly examined. 1. That the provision in the constitution
of N. Carolina was a mere dead letter. 2. That he was not bound to
know what was meant by the terms " Protestant Religion," as they
were not defined either in the laws or constitution of his state. 3. That
the oath he took was actually true, and that though a Catholic, he might
believe the Protestant religion to be true. 4. That he got a dispensa-
tion to take this oath. These were actual defences which I had heard
suggested in his own state by his own friends, over and over, during two
journies entirely across the state in two different directions, which I had
then recently taken. For the notice taken of them, I refer you to the
printed article.
It must be apparent then, how absurd and how evasive is Judge Gas-
ton's letter lately published in your paper, in which he admits that he
had seen a copy of my article, and yet passing over the only real charge,
namely, that he took the oath, confines his defence to the denial of that
which his own friends had suggested as a defence for him. The burden
of his letter is to show that he did not get a dispensation from the arch-
bishop of Baltimore, to take this dreadful oath! Instead of making this
supposed dispensation the ground of charge, I stated it expressly as ground
of excuse, better and more likely in itself, and more to his credit than any
thing else I had heard of, or could imagine! If we are now to understand
that he got no dispensation at all, then I can only say, the whole weight
of criminality of the oath in question rests on himself, instead of being
divided with some ecclesiastic. But if on the other hand, as the tenor of
his letter admits of being construed — he only means to deny that he got
the supposed dispensation any where else than from his household
priest ; I will merely place this equivocation by the side of that which
passed by the only real charge, to level accusations against me, for ad-
mitting as relatively probable, what hundreds disposed to excuse him, re-
peated as true!
I assure you sir, that so far from having any personal or sectarian
reasons influencing my conduct, as Judge Gaston insinuates, the fact is
all the other way. I do not know his person, even by sight; I greatly
respect his public services, his talents, and his love of letters; and I have
had private reasons more than ever he can know, urging me to pretermit
96 AN ADDRESS TO THE AM ERICAN PEOPLE.
this whole matter, so far as it relates to him. But in the providence of
God. that gentleman's arts have given me the means of rousing my coun-
trymen to the dangers threatened them from a political religion, which
has one grand unwavering principle of action, to effect one great result
ruinous to the whole human race. It is branded into the soul of papism,
that the whole world belongs to herself as the mother and mistress
of all churches, and to the pope as the vicar of God. It is laid on
the soul of every papist, to labor by all means, good or bad, to bring
back a rebellious world to that horrid rule. Behold, illustrated in
this case, public and ollicial as it is, some of the worst results of this tre-
mendous system!
Whatever may be Judge Gaston's elevation, somewhat too boastfully
asserted perhaps, or whatever my own admitted insignificance; he should
remember that it is only in the church of Rome, that exalted rank, dis-
charges all the obligations of virtue; and that in the hearts of our simple
countrymen, truth is yet stronger than authority. And there are perhaps
Mr. editor, many around you who are able to satisfy even the fastidious-
ness of judge Gaston's apprehensions of dishonour, if he should notice a
charge from such a source. Thus far at least I may relieve his appre-
hensions without the appearance of too great presumption: I have yet
to learn that my name, by whomsoever borne, has ever been coupled with
an act of formal and deliberate perfidy, perpetrated in the name of God,
in the face of a free people.
I am, sir, your obedient servant,
Ro. J. Breckinridge.
This letter reached its destination in due course of the
mail ; and was placed in the hands of the person to
whom it was addressed. Instead of printing it however,
he returned it with the following letter addressed to me.
Lexington, Va. February 29, 1836.
Sir, — Your communication for the Gazette with the accompanying
pamphlet, was duly received, and for reasons which I will proceed to as-
sign, is respectfully declined.
- The Catholic controversy terminated in my paper some time since,
and (in compliance with the wishes of avast majority of my patrons) I
solemnly and repeatedly pledged myself not to admit it again into the
Gazette. Judge Gaston's letter was published as an act of justice to
his private character, and from no other motive whatever. Now Sir
how can I under these circumstances revive this controversy without
violating my solemn pledges?
Hut Sir, I would not entertain this controversy if the pope were to re-
lease me from my pledges, because it would exclude more useful and in-
teresting matter from my paper (a small weekly sheet,) and is entirely
uncalled for, there being scarcely an individual in the county who does
not consider the church of Rome as a sink of iniquity, and the enemy of
God and man. Why sir, a good many of my subscribers stopped their
papers because I dared to defend the Catholics, and all of them censured
me for saving a word in their favor.
A Catholic controversy is as much out of place in my paper as a politi-
cal controversy would be in your magazine. Your main reason then for
asking the insertion of your communication in the Gazette, is overruled.
AN ADDRESS TO THE AMERICAN PEOPLE. 97
Judge Gaston's letter was in reply to the charge of M Senex" — that ho
had obtained a dispensation from the bishop of Baltimore to commit per-
jury, and not in answer to the article in your periodical. He merely
mentions that your magazine had made a similar charge against him.
But this surely does not make you a party to the controversy, or give
you any u right" to reply through my paper. If Judge (jiaston has done
you any specific injury through my paper, most certainly you shall be
permitted to redress it. But you must confine yourself to that point.
Most certainly I cannot tolerate a discussion in my paper of the ques-
tion whether Judge Gaston acted properly or improperly in accepting a
judicial office under the old constitution of N. C. What is it to me or
my readers whether he acted criminally or not, or whether he and the
legislature who elected him, put a right or wrong construction on that re-
pealed instrument? For myself I am firmly persuaded that he acted
from the purest motives, and on perfectly sound principles. (See nig
speech in the late convention of N. C. recently republished in Baltimore.)
You ask me to republish a long article from the Magazine, because
Judge Gaston misrepresented its character. I pray to be excused. I
cannot admit the principle that a misrepresentation in the opinion of the
author, of the character of a disputatious essay in a paper, gives the author
of that essay a right to demand its republication in that paper. I am
afraid sir, that your Magazine might not be quite as interesting as it is at
present, if you were to acknowledge that right.
If however, you choose to deny the Judge's assertions as to the charac-
ter of your essay, you can do so, but you must confine yourself strictly
to that point.
In haste, yours &c. &c. C. C. Baldwin.
The italics in this letter, are of the author's own
making. The pretexts on which he refuses to publish
my letter, may be better judged of from the following
facts. 1. This Mr. Baldwin, commenced in his own
paper this very catholic duscussion, spontaneously as we
are informed, and published elaborate articles on the
catholic side of the argument as now pending over all
Christendom : and only shut his columns to it, after
Senex proved himself rather an unmanageable antagon-
ist, and his patrons, as he admits rebuked his doings. —
2. This very letter of Judge Gaston was elicited by one
from this very Mr. Baldwin; and was published, as the
latter part of Mr. Gaston's letter shows, against his own
views, and on Mr. Baldwin's personal responsibility. —
That he should under these circumstances refuse to pub-
lish my letter, sufficiently explains his principles and par*
tialities ; and might have saved him the disclosure to-
wards the close of his letter to me, that he "was firmly
persuaded that he (Judge Gaston) acted from the purest
9
98 AN ADDRESS TO THE AMERICAN PEOPLE.
motives, and on perfectly correct principles." Yet it is
undeniable, that this applauded act ivas a solemn official
oath by a staunch papist, that the Protestant religion is
true!!! It is well. Candour is a great virtue. So also
are truth and fair dealing.
It will be observed that Mr. Baldwin's letter is dated
the 27th of February, at Lexington, Ya. On the next
day, the Baltimore Gazette published in this city the let-
ter of Judge Gaston to Mr. B. with his preliminary re-
marks. This publication was preceded by a short note
to the editor; and the copy of the paper sent to me
through the post-office, several days after its date, had an
impertinent manuscript note in the margin. Both are
annexed : first the note to the editor of the Gazette ; then
the anonymous one to me.
To the editor of the Baltimore Gazette:
Sir, — May I ask the favor of you to publish in your valuable journal,
for the information of your subscribers and the public generally, the letter
of Judge Gaston, which will be found in the *' Lexington (Virginia)
Gazette" of the 5th instant, together with the introductory remarks of
the editor of that paper. In making this request, I am prompted by the
sole motive of contributing to the refutation of a calumny heretofore cir-
culated in this city, (where I believe it most wantonly originated,)
against one of the purest patriots and most enlightened jurists to be found
in this or any other country, and a gentleman whom I have the pleasure
of numbering among my personal and most esteemed friends.
A Subscriber.
"Now dear Sir, I hope you may see whether or not the Judge has
honored you with a notice: also it is seen that the community at
large have caught you in one of your many falsehoods, ivhich you
cannot refute without telling another!!"
This anonymous allusion is no doubt to a statement,
on page 103 of the 2d vol. of the Baltimore Literary and
Religious Magazine. In the article commencing on
that page of the March No. and headed "Collectanea
II. 1. Mr. Gaston — Princeton College-" it is said : —
"The Hon. Mr. Gaston of North Carolina has taken no
further notice of the article published in this Magazine,
in July L835, page 21*2, of vol. 1, than to return to us
the No. which contained the article, and which had been
sent to him by mail. " This was then literally true so
far as I was concerned or informed. After that sentence
(and nearly all the remainder of that No. of the Maga-
AN ADDRESS TO THE AMERICAN PEOPLE. 99
zine) was printed and nearly ready for publication, I saw
for the first time, Mr. Gaston's letter. My letter to Mr.
Baldwin is dated Feb. 1!) ; but even then, I wrote and
the printer set up, and want of space alone excluded a
short article stating the existence and reception of a no-
tice by judge Gaston, of that which he was most solemn-
ly bound to have noticed seven months sooner.
As soon as I saw the Baltimore Gazette containing
these articles ; I addressed the letter which immediately
follows, to the editor of that paper. His reply follows it.
Let them be fairly judged by the reader.
Baltimore, March 5th, 1836.
To the Editor of the Baltimore Gazette:
Sir, — I beg leave to direct your attention to the several communications
accompanying this note, for a purpose which I will immediately explain.
The first is a copy of your paper of last Monday, which I have re-
ceived to-day from the post-office, containing the letter of Judge Gaston
North Carolina, with the comments of the editor of the Lexington
vVa.) Gazette. In the margin you will observe an insolent manuscript
note to me, from the unknown person who sent me your paper. The
second is a letter addressed by me, to the editor of the Lexington Gazete,
in answer to that portion of judge Gaston's letter to him, which relates
to me. The third is that editor's letter to me, refusing to publish my
letter.
My sole object in now troubling you sir, is to ask the publication in
your paper, of the letter addressed by me to the editor of the Lexington
Gazette, in reply to Judge Gaston; and which he refused to publish.
It is now above a year since the paper you now edit, (which was then
controled by another person,) published repeated attacks on me; and re-
fused admission to any defence by me. The Baltimore American at that
time refused to allow me to defend myself through its columns; and
having no claim on any other paper in this city so strong as on yours,
and it (being a subscriber to one, and assailed in the other,) I applied
to no other. So that to this day, I have been denied a hearing in the pre-
mises. The recent conduct of the Virginia paper, is a sample of the
same proceedings. I make this statement to you sir, in the hope of im-
pressing your mind with the deep conviction which abides on my own;
that such conduct is equally inconsistent with the freedom of the public
press, the rights of individuals, and the interests of truth.
T make no sort of objection to any man's charging me, in any form
and before any tribunal he pleases. I object only to being denied the
liberty of defence. I therefore make no complaint whatever of your
publishing Judge Gaston's disrespectful expressions of me. On the con-
trary, I intend myself to publish his letter; — regretting only, that it
affords so bad a defence of so strange an act. But it seems to me, that
my right to be heard, is as perfect as his. For my character is quite as
important to me, as his can be to him; and the solemn and weighty
matter in contest between us, to be rightly decided, must be fairly heard.
100 AN ADDRESS TO THE AMERICAN PEOPLE.
I beg the favor of you, to preserve all the papers sent to you; and to
accompany the one which I hope you will publish, with as much of the
substance of the present statement, as shall be necessary to make the
whole case intelligible.
I am sir, your obt. sent.
Ro. J. Breckinridge.
Baltimore, March 1th 1836.
Rev'd. Sir. — I received on Saturday last your letter of that date,
with three accompanying documents, one of which — a letter from you to
the editor of the Lexington (Ya.) Gazette — you request me to publish in
mJ PaPt>r — intimating your conviction, that you have a light to expect
I will comply with your request.
Although I consider the compliance with an application — even from a
subscriber — to publish in my paper any communication, other than an
advertisement, as an act of courtesy and favour, and not the perform-
ance of a duty, or what can be claimed as a right: I would cheerfully
accede to your wish, if the contents of the letter you proposed to have
published were not of that character, which experience has convinced
me cannot be usefully and safely admitted into the columns of a news-
paper. I am therefore under the necessity of declining the publication.
1 return you the documents which accompanied your letter — assuring you
that I have no knowledge of the writer of the censurable note written
on the margin of the Gazette.
I am respectfully yours,
Wm. Gwyhn
At the suggestion of a friend that the editor of Balti-
more Chronicle would probably publish my letter in re-
ply to judge Gaston ; I addressed him the note publish-
ed below. He replied verbally, that he could not publish
my letter, as he had not published judge Gaston'* s.
Baltimore, March 9th, 1836.
Ro. J. Breckinridge presents his respects to Mr. Barnes, and begs
leave to trouble him, so far as to ask his attention to the subject contain-
ed in the packet of letters sent to him herewith.
The entire object of this application, is to obtain the publication in the
Chronicle, of the letter addressed by R. J. B. to the Lexington (Ya. )
Gazette; and which was refused, first by that paper, and then by the
Gazette of this city; for reasons and under circumstances which the
letter of Messrs. Baldwin, and Gvvynn, will explain.
He is the more urgent, for the publication of the letter which he asks
Mr. B. to admit into his journal, because, as he is on the eve of leaving
the United States — he wishes Mr. Gaston to see as early as possible, the
position which he is resolved to occupy, as regards a subject, with rela-
tion to which all the whole Catholics and half Catholics in the country,
seem already so perfectly organized, for Mr. Gaston, and against the very
clearest principles of morality and public virtue.
Alas! sir, if public men are allowed in the most formal, official acts,
to take false oaths; — and ihose who love truth well enough to remark on
it, are to be held up to public scorn, and then denied the only efiectual
AN ADDRESS TO THE AMERICAN PEOPLE. 101
means of defence, because there is a certain superstition in the country
which tolerates false swearing; then indeed the public press, and the
public morals too are sadly out of joint.
And is it so great a crime to love truth? Has it
ceased to be a sin against God, and a crime under our
laws, and an offence against good morals, for fraud and
falsehood to be formally and even officially committed ?
No: this is not so by any means. If / had acted as Judge
Gaston has ; my sect would have deposed me from the
ministry — my congregation would have shut my church
doors against me — my friends wfould have wept over me
as one undone — and the whole world would have had but
one opinion about it — and that opinion would have been,
that I was a degraded man. Then why not mete the
same measure to judge Gaston? I will tell you why. —
It is because judge Gaston is a papist ; and his creed ad-
mits and approves his conduct. And therefore let every
man that loves God pity and forgive judge Gaston ; and
frown down his pestiferous superstition as the parent of
all vice, and the enemy of every virtue !
But is the public press already Catholic or infidel? Is
the whole editorial corps converted, subsidised, afraid,
or totally indifferent ? No: this is by no means so. If
a Methodist judge should take a false oath ; or a Presby-
terian judge commit a flagrant violation of morality ; or
an Episcopal judge outrage public decency ; or a deisti-
cal judge be guilty of deliberate perfidy in official af-
fairs ; in all these cases the public press would fully res-
pond to the public feeling — and the judge would be dis-
graced, if not degraded ! Why deal out a different mea-
sure to a Catholic j udge ? I will tell you why. — It is be-
cause every Catholic in the world makes common cause
with every other Catholic in the world, and wriththe pope
of Rome, as the head of all the world, and with the
Catholic church, as the mother and mistress of all the
churches in the world ! Virtue is nothing, truth is noth-
ing, religion is nothing, country is nothing, liberty is
nothing ; — the church is all : and the pope its head, and
all its true members, form one universal conspiracy
against every good of man, and the honour of God him-
self. Printers feel the force, though they may deny the
9*
102 TEXIAN REVOLUTION, BEFORE SAN JACINTO,
reality of this conspiracy. If Mr. (iwynn abuses me or
any other Protestant in his paper — no one interferes; it
is a personal affair to be decided on its merits. If he
writes ten lines against archbishop Eccleston, in eight
days his paper would probably DC ruined. And this,
although every word he had said of him were pregnant
with truth, and vital to the public welfare ! — Oh! then
let every man that loves his race — his children — his in-
estimable rights — his glorious country — rouse himself up
to the contemplation of the principles and designs of this
atrocious society ; which aims at no less than the univer-
sal monarchy ot the world ; and which, though it pur-
sues this object under the guise of religion, is bound by
no principle human or divine. Oh ! how willingly
would I become their victim if that might be the means
of making my country feel ; that every sentiment of patri-
otism, every emotion of philanthropy, and every princi-
ple of true religion, equally impel us to suppress by all
awful means this unparalleled superstition, as the enemy
alike of God and man.
Bait. March 12, 1836. Ro. J. Brecktnridge.
i
NUMBER XII.
TEXIAN REVOLUTION, BEFORE SAN JACINTO.
The crimes which have been committed under the
sanction of religion, are the foulest that stain the pages
of history. The evils which have been inflicted on man-
kind in the name of God, are the most appalling which
our race has befell called to endure. The impurities of
heathenism, the cruelties of every form of false religion,
thedeadness to all virtue and all nobleness which so
strongly marks all bigotry and fanaticism; the miseries
in short, heaped upon the world, by the perversion of
TEXIAN REVOLUTION, BEFORE SAN JACINTO. 103
man's moral sense, ami the Minding of his natural con-
science, exceed almost the bounds of all belief.
Nor is this mournful fact true only of the whole sub-
ject, and in relation to the great abuse of religion in gen-
eral. It is true specifically, in a greater or less degree,
during almost the whole lapse of history, and as regards
nearly every land, and every form of the professed ser-
vice of God, Mahomedanism with its exterminating
sword before, and bloody track behind it, has for twelve
centuries shrouded in the blackest midnight — and beaten
down under the most galling despotism, at least a hun-
dred millions of the human race. And oh ! for howT long
a period has the fatal church of Rome ground down the
minds and bodies, the souls and spirits of "a third part
of men" — as the word of God so graphically expresses
it ; under nameless and enduring woes ! Her fires, her
executions, the dreadful tribunal of the inquisition, the
desolating crusades, bulls exciting subjects to rebellion
and revolution, seditious preachers, conspiracies, assas-
inations, — a world of mendicants praying on the fat of
the earth, — innumerable priests debauching and degrad-
ing mankind. — Oh ! what a controversy hath God had
with the world, to permit his infinite benignity to behold
without redressing, for so many ages, such wide spread
ruin, — perpetrated in his own hallowed name ! If his
justice bears any proportion to his forbearance, — the day
of his retribution will be full of horror to these, his ene-
mies.
Our own day, which has seen so many evils redress-
ed, has yet to see the perfect cure of this greatest of
them all. Our western continents, which have seen the
human race make such prodigious advances, have yet to
behold this most glorious of all revolutions fully con-
summated. The world looks to America, to place the
human race on that sublime elevation never yet reached
— or reached by how few ! — where light shall no more be
called darkness — nor darkness light; where crime shall
no longer be perpetrated in the name of virtue— God no
'onger be dishonoured in the name of religion, men no
nore degraded in the sacred names of liberty and order:
vhere in short, sin shall be called sin, and practised only
104 TEXIAN REVOLUTION, BEFORE SAN JACINTO,
in the name of the devil — and righteousness be called
righteousness, and loved and practised in the name of
God.
However far we may have gone in establishing ele-
mentary principles in the North American constitutions,
that are precisely right ; our practice is not always en-
tirely to be commended. However ample may have
been the success of the Protestant churches here, in set-
tling their foundations, wisely and firmly ; much, it is
too evident, is yet to be done by them, to repay the
world for its past sufferings, and reclaim it back to the
peaceful reign of the King of kings.
At this moment (January 1836) on our very borders,
there is in progress, one of the blackest conspiracies
against the spread of religious truth and the perpetuity
of free institutions, ever attempted amongst men. And
yet both the name of God and the sanction of religion,
are invoked to give success to a cause which dishonours
each alike ; while the clearest rights of men, based on
the most sacred guarantees which states can give, are
sought to be trampled down in the blessed names of lib-
erty and justice !
The citizens of the United States who settled in
Texas , made it their abode under the most formal and re-
peated pledges, given by the supreme authorities of the
Mexican people ; in the form of laws, compacts, grants,
and decrees, made and confirmed by successive adminis-
trations, under the several forms of government through
which they have passed. Under these pledges, thus
guaranteed, were embraced ; 1, Republican liberty, — 27
A federative system— 3, Free toleration of the Protest-
ant religion; 4, Sacredness of property; with other less
important interests. Whenever the people of Mexico
have had the ascendency, these pledges have been re-
garded by the nation ; and the Americans in Texas, have
lived safely in their new home. But whenever the
priests and their proteges, the soldiers of fortune, have
usurped the powers of government ; their earliest atten-
tion has been directed to the destruction of the people of
Texas. They have not only oppressed, robbed, and im-
prisoned many of the most distinguished emigrants from
TEXIAN REVOLUTION, BEFORE SAN JACINTO. 105
the United States, such as Stephen F. Austin, Colonel
Milam, and others who have been most scrupulous in
their devotion to the interests of their adopted country;
but they have from time to time, incited the Indians who
roam through the prairies of Mexico, to buther the Tex-
ians as if they were their open enemies, instead of an in-
tegral portion of the nation.
At length Santa Anna has thrown off the mask. By
the plan of Toluca, of which a brief account is given on
page 28 of this vol.; every stipulation made with the
emigrants to Texas has not only been violated and set
aside ; but it has become a part of the constitution of the
new empire, that the rights guaranteed to them, shall be
forever prohibited to all Mexicans hereafter. Republican
institutions are at an end ; centralism has taken the place
of the federative system, wdiich is the peculiar safeguard
of national liberty, in all anglo Saxon nations, and the
glory of their rece ; the Roman Catholic and apostolic
religion, is the exclusive religion of Mexico from hence-
forth ; and all freedom of opinion and purity of life with
it, are gone forever ! Such is the result of all the efforts
of a priest ridden people, to be free and happy ! Such
is a living commentary on the professions of popish priests
in favour of free government, and religious liberty !
In this case there is peculiar atrocity, on the part of
the priests. They have not only taken the most active
measures in aid of Santa Anna ; but the archbishop of
Mexico, and a few other Catholic ecclesiasticks, have vol-
unteered to present the tyrant wTith sufficient money to
carry on his bloody schemes against Texas. Two
bishops have pledged a million of dollars ! Counting all
the people in Texas, this is about twenty dollars a piece,
for butchering them, subscribed by twro priests ! This
money it will be remembered, has been in some former
period, wrung from the deluded Spaniards, under the
various pretexts by which the priests brutalize their fol-
lowers ; and it is now paid back to them, as a rewTardfor
fraud, oppression, fanaticism and murder. This ven-
geance too, it cannot be forgotten, is let loose against
peaceful citizens of the same nation ; wTho are to be ex-
tirpated, root and branch, simply because they are and
106 TEXIAN REVOLUTION, BEFORE SAN JACINTO.
prefer to continue republicans, freemen and Protestants":
and that in strict accordance with the laws, constitution
and compacts, under which they settled the country.
What is not (he least attrocious part of this affair is, that
a simultaneous attempt seems to have been made in this
country, by certain Catholic editors of newspapers and
other parti/ans of Home, to degrade the Texians, in the
estimation of their former country; at the same moment
that other creatures of the same Rome are preparing for
their slaughter, in their new abode. Nothing was ever
more cruel and unjust. Texas, is in arms in defence
of chartered rights, of constitutional liberty, of republi-
can institutions, of the protestant religion! If the people
of this republic had the hundredth part of the cause
which the people of Texas have, to arm; there is no good
man and true, in the length and breadth of the land, who
would not rouse himself up like "the lion, and the young
lion"— for the defence of his beloved country, and his
precious rights. We are no friend ta war. All war is
wrong. "Vengeance is mine saith the Lord." Yet if
ever men were justified to stand on their defence, the
men of Texas have the most perfect of all justifications.
If human glory was ever given with discriminating jus-
tice, posterity will award to them a place second only to
the fathers of our own revolution. And if a righteous
world can ever render a verdict of withering condemna-
tion, for the most horrible injustice, and deliberate per-
fidy—practised in violation of every thing that binds so-
ciety together, or that is held sacred amongst men; Santa
Anna, himself an atheist, and the vile priests in league
with him, will go down to the latest generations of men,
inferior in infamy only to those who have practised on a
broader theatre, the same deplorable wickedness.
This is the more likely, as we are deeply persuaded
that the people of Texas, have the utmost reason to ex-
pect success. The American nation will not stand by
and witness the sacrifice of our own brethren, in defence
of such principles, altogether unmoved. The nation will
not, even if its rulers should. If the Texians can sus-
tain the shock' of the first encounter, which there is no
reason to doubt ; the whole south and south west will
TEXIAN REVOLUTION, BEFORE SAN JACINTO. 107
have time to sympathise with them, and hundreds will
flock to their aid. Nor is it too much to say, that the
Mexicans are no match for the Americans. Texas with
its handful of daring spirits, may show a stouter resist-
ance than half the empire besides. Whatever heroic
courage, untiring fortitude, daring enterprise and perfect
skill in the personal use of arms can accomplish, will be
done. Whatever support the total stake of life, fortune,
honour, and every right can give, they have. Besides
all this, their cause is good, the world sympathizes with
them, and God is just.
In short, frantic as the statement may appear, it is our
deliberate conviction, that Stephen F. Austin, or general
Houston has a much better chance of being yet president
of the restored republic of Mexico; than Santa Anna has
of overturning the Mexican institutions, extirpating the
state of Texas, and ruling over the ruins created by him-
self. It is fully as likely that the army of Texas will
conquer Mexico, as that the reverse will happen.
We pray God to restore peace with righteousness to
all parties, if that be possible; if not, that He would give
signal triumph to whatever cause is just and right.
As far as we ever knew, the foregoing article, printed
in January 1836— was the very earliest public and deci-
ded stand taken by the press in the United States, in fa-
vour of the cause of Texas. The battle of San Jacinto,
was fought six months afterwards ; and the news of that
astonishing triumph, reached the author of these pages,
at Glasgow in Scotland, in the latter part of June 1836 ;
where it was received with almost universal incredulity—
indeed nearly with derision. Events wThich connect
themselves with the birth of nations, necessarily acquire
a high degree of importance. And as those which attend-
ed and marked the origin of the republic of Texas, have
been represented in every possible light; it seemed not
without its use, to recall from oblivion, what to say the
least, is a curious piece of happy political guessing, and
a view not generally taken of the true causes of a very
remarkable revolution . Its right to a place in a collection
of this nature, will not be doubted ; by any wTho con-
sider the views presented in it.
108
NUMBER XIII.
JEROME OF PRAGUE; AND THE COUNCIL OF CONSTANCE.
The most that we know of this illustrious martyr and
scholar, anterior to the meeting of the council ot Con-
stance, may be related in a few words, lie was a Bohe-
mian of rank, was born towards the close of the four-
teenth century, and spent his youth in the eager pursuit
of knowledge, in all the principal universities of Europe,
especially in those of Prague, Paris, Heidelburgh, Co-
logne, and Oxford. At this last mentioned place, he be-
came particularly acquainted with the writings and opin-
ions of John Wiklif ; the first great asserter of religi-
ous liberty in Europe, after the darkness of the middle
ages. When he returned to his native country and set-
tled at Prague, he at once joined himself to the party of
John Huss, the great Bohemian reformer, an'd forerun-
ner of Luther ; who was already the open advocate of
some of WikliPs sentiments. Indulgences, the abuse of
excommunication, the supremacy of the pope, simony,
and transubstantiation— were among the constant points
of controversy between the earliest reformers and the
papists. But the great grounds of contest on which
Huss and Jerome and their colleagues waged the con-
test, were the corruption of the Romish clergy, then
universal and horrible; the denial of the cup to the peo-
ple in the Eucharist ; and the use of an unknown lan-
guage in public worship. Huss rejoiced in the acquisi-
tion of a colleague so rarely gifted with all natural en-
dowments, and so deeply versed in the learning of the
times, as this'renowned lay reformer was. We know
only that Jerome, with all the ardour of his vivacious
and powerful character, devoted himself to the cause of
the reformation of the intolerable religious corruptions of
the church of Rome, in concert with Huss and his associ-
ates; until we find him implicated in the fate of the leader
of his sect, and arraigned by the council of Constance.
The great schism in the church of Rome had now last-
ed through two generations, aggravated rather than allay-
JEROME OF PRAGUE, &C. 109
ed, by every attempt to heal it. A schism every step in
whose progress and conclusion proves .it once that the
spirit of Jesus had totally forsaken the Roman ehureh;
and manifests the abiding folly which claims infallibility,
to be surpassed only by the corruption which dtspro
that claim. At length, Popes John, Gregory, and
Benedict, all asserting at the same moment, universal
and infallible authority from God, and each followed by
adoring multitudes; were in part, overreached by the su-
perior tact of the emperor Sigismond (son of Charles
IV.) and in part overborne by the universal voice of their
adherents; and induced to acquiesce in the necessity
which dictated die call of the council just mentioned. It
was convened by Sigismond in 1414. The avowed ob-
jects for which it met, were to remove the dreadful dis-
orders of the papal church, — to heal the disgraceful
schism which had so long prevailed — and to bring about
a thorough reformation of the clergy. The council as-
sembled at Constance (whence its name)— one of the
most southern cities of Germany, on the confines of
Switzerland— and nearly in the centre of what was then
Christendom. Here princes, prelates, clergy, laity, regu-
lars and seculars, flocked from every part of Europe—
indeed of almost the whole world. "There were" says
Fox— "Archbishops and bishops 346, abbots and doc-
tors 564, princes, dukes, earls, knights and squires
16 ,000 ^prostitutes 450, (a number far below the truth;)
barbers 600, musicians, cooks and buffoons 320!" Total,
to compose and aid at the deliberations of this holy and
cecuminical council— 18,282 persons. Four presidents
were chosen— one for Germany, one for France, one for
England, and one for Italy.
This council it must be admitted, did many good things
and decided many wise and just principles. Amongst
the latter, we would particularly note the decisions made
in their IV. and V. sessions, which established it as of
faith, that a general council is above the pope. This the
popes deny, and say that the reverse is of faith. Both
parties being infallible expounders of the faith, the pa-
pists have the happiness to know, that in their church,
there is no possibility of going astray, since there is in it
10
110 JEROME OF PRAGUE; AND
no difference between right and wrong; but opp
sides of the same proposition are equally true, if equally
asserted by the church. However that may be, the coun-
cil proceeded from good sayings to good doings; and
setting aside the three reigning popes, thus admitting that
there had been no true pope, for above thirty years —
proceeded to the election of cardinal Otho Collona, who
took the name of Martin V.
But this council did also many most disgraceful acts.
Wiklif was dead ; but they passed decrees reviling his
memory — and condemning the holy word of God, as
truly taught by him. They burnt his writings ; and im-
pelled by the spirit of fiends, ordered his bones even to
be dug up and burned.
Having whetted their appetite upon the dead, they
next turned upon the living. John Huss presented him-
self as the most conspicuous of Wiklif's disciples ; anc\
on him, their first fury fell. Huss had gone to Con-
stance with a certificate from the bishop of Nazareth 7
then inquisitor general of heresy in Bohemia, that he was
not a heretic; and a safe conduct from the emperor Se-
gismond, that, heretic or not, he should be allowed to go
to, abide at, and return from the council (to which he
had been invited by the emperor, cited by the council it-
self, and called by the legates of the pope) safe and un-
7nolested. Omni prorsus impedimento remoto, transire,
stare, morari, et rcdire, libere permitatis sibiqvc ct mU :
— these are the words of the emperor's safe conduct. —
But it is of the essence of papal faith, that no faith should
be kept with heretics. They burned John Huss, with
every circumstance of cruelty and insult.
When Huss was preparing himself for his journey to
Constance, Jerome exhorted him to bear himself firmly
in his severe trial, and to be faithful to the great princi-
ples on which they stood; pledging himself to repair to
his assistance, whenever he should ask, or need his pre-
sence and sympathy. This lie faithfully endeavoured to
perform as soon as he heard at Prague, of the dark pros-
pects of his friend's affairs at Constance ; although Huss
urged him to give up his undertaking as equally danger-
ous and unprofitable. He however kept his promiser
THE COUNCIL OF CONSTANCE. Ill
and arrived at Constance on the 4th of April 1415, a few
months before the death ofhifi illustrious friend. Find-
ing it ii. him, i r even to see him, lu-
lett the city; and writing to Sigismond, that he \.
i appear before the council if be would give him
a safe conduct, waited at Iberting for his reply. The
emperor had the honor to refuse tin < induct;
Jerome had placards posted up in the principal places
re the council sat, declaring his readiness to appear
before it, on receiving its plighted faith, for his security.
Receiving no reply, he took the certificates of several of
the Bohemian nobles, proving all he had done to obtain
a hearing, and set out on his return to Prague. On his
journey, he was seized, carried back to Constance, con-
fined, tried, condemned, insulted, and imprisoned under
circumstance of indignity and injustice.
And n^w we recount with sorrow, the fall, alas ! how
gre< , otherwise blameless man. It has ever been
the policy of Rome to ruin and degrade, as well as cru-
cify and slay her enemies. Confinement, sickness, pri-
vation, sufferings, and indignities, beyond what nature
could support; threats and promises, caresses and tempta-
tions; in short, every instrument by which the soul and
mind and body of poor erring man, can be made to show
how frail we are, was turned for months together, upon
this solitary and friendless man; — and turned alas ! with
fatal success. He first wavered ; shrunk before the trials
laid upon him ; fell ! On the 2nd of September, 1415,
he read his recantation — renounced the errors of Wiklif
and Huss — assented to the decrees against them both —
and declared himself a firm believer in every article held
by the church of Rome.
' But God did not wholly forsake him. From the mo-
ment of this dreadful apostacy, his heart was broken. —
He had sinned against light and knowledge, against God
and his own soul. He seemed to desire life, only that he
might repair this awful fall ; and sunk into a gloom from
which nothing but the hope of wiping off with his
blood, the stain he had brought upon his own name and
his Master's cause, could for a moment rouse him. The
zealous papists, saw with joy, a state which they did not
112 JEROME OF PRAGUE; AND
perhaps fully comprehend. Bu1 it gave room to question
the sincerity of his present faith in their superstition —
and that wws enough, to justify the slaughter of him,
whom they had already undone. God gave to Jeroi
not only space but opportunity to repent, and to do his
first works. And well and nobly, did the holy martyr
win his crown of light. New accusations were brought
against him, and the old reiterated with new viok ace and
indecency. After a year of Buffering, perplexity and in-
carceration, lie was again broughl before the council in
May, 1416.
His enemies tried in vain, to persuade him to I
his defence through the proctors, appointed by the coun-
cil for that purpose. He refused positively, to make any
defence, or take any notice of the proceedings against
him ; unless he were allowed to answer for himself pub-
licly and in full and open council. They probably lo -
ed for another victory, in a new and more signal humilia-
tion of Jerome. They had put out the eyes of Samp-
son ; and they judged it not amiss to mock him. But the
God of the shorn and blinded Nazarite, gave him back,
for one last and glorious effort, more than his pristine
strength ; and now as then, he made his repentant serv-
ant illustrious in his honoured death, beyond all the glory
of his life !
How he bore himself in this last enterprise, and how
he met the death which he no longer dreaded, let his ene-
mies testify. Boldly avowing his real sentiment- —
openly renouncing the unhappy recantation they had so
cruelly and basely extorted from him — he was sustained
with more than human ability through the fearful contest;
and met his fate with that noble mixture of dignity and
gentleness, which illustrates the Christian hero. His soul
rests with God. Let his memory live for the benefit of
a world, whose annals are adorned by few more replete
with interest and instruction
The letter annexed to this article written by PoQGIO
Bracciolini the Florentine antiquary and historian, who
was secretary to two popes, and himself at the council
which burnt Jerome; will convey to the reader a striking
idea of that truly illustrious man., llow full of glory,
THE COUNCIL OK CONSTANCE. 113
does this representation even of an enemy, tAo was not
able to steel his heart utterly to all noble impressions
make the name and character, the death and eause^oi
the gifted martyr seem ?
Rome says she tolerates and loves her dear Protestant
brethren in this favoured land ; yea that she would take
and cherish them in her maternal bosom, even though
not altogether dutiful children. "Oh ! fools and slow of
heart to believe" — that we have been and still alas ! con-
tinue to be ! Look at the funeral pile of this gentle, love-
ly, noble man. With every quality to command respect
and love, and without one particle of offence against the
laws of God or his lawful sovereign; see him burnt, by
the same Rome, that builds dungeons in the midst of our
cities, and threatens public violence and private assassi-
nation, to all who whisper a word to her discredit ; burnt
for a far less heresy than we embrace and teach. And
what popish minion, ever yet condemned the deed?
The letter is dated at Constance, May 20, 1416, and
addressed to Leonard Jiretin at Rome. It is taken by
us from Gilpin's Lives of Wiklif and his disciples, page
208 ; from which wrork, and that of Lenfant, entitled
UHistoire du Concile de Constance, the facts here stated
are principally drawn.
POGQIO BRA.CC10LINI, TO LEONARDO BfiUNI.
In the midst of a short excursion into the country, I wrote to our com-
mon friend; from whom, I doubt not, you have had an account of me.
Since my return to Constance, my attention hath been wholly engaged
by Jerome, the Bohemian heretic, as he is called. The eloquence and
learning, which this person hath employed in his own defence are so ex-
traordinary, that I cannot forbear giving you a short account of him.
To confess the truth, I never knew the art of speaking carried so near
the model of ancient eloquence. It was indeed amazing to hear with
what force of expression, with]what fluency of language, and with what
excellent reasoning he answered his adversaries; nor was I less struck
with the gracefulness of his manner, the dignity of his action, and the
firmness and constancy of his whole behaviour. It grieved me to think
so great a man was laboring under so atrocious an accusation. Whether
this accusation be a just one, God knows. For myself, I enquire not
into the merits of it; resting satisfied with the decision of my superiors.
Bat I will just give you a summary of his trial.
After many articles had been proved against him, leave was at length
given him to answer each in its order. But Jerome long refused, strenu-
ously contending that he had many things to say previously, in his defence;
and that he ought first to be heard in general, before he descended to
10*
114 JEROME OF PRAGUE; AND
particular?, When this was over-ruled ; "Here," said he, standing in the
midst of the assembly, "here is justice; here is equity. Beset by my
enemies, 1 am already pronounced a heretic. I am condemned before I
am examined. Were you gods omniscient, instead of an assembly of
fallible men, you could not act with more sufficiency. Error is the lot
of mortals; and you, exalted Bi you are, are subject to it. But consider,
that the higher you are exalted, of the more dangerous consequence, are
your errors. As for me, I know I am a wretch below your notice.
But at least consider that an unjust action, in such an assembly, will be
of dangerous example."
This, and much more, he spoke with great elegance of language, in
the midst of a very unruly and indecent assembly. And thus far at least
he prevailed; the council ordered that he should first answer objections,
and promised that he should then have liberty to speak. Accordingly,
all the articles alledged against him were publicly read, and then proved:
after which he was asked, whether he had aught to object? It is incredi-
ble with what acuteness he answered; and with what amazing dexterity
ho warded off every stroke of his adversaries. Nothing escaped him.
His whole behaviour was truly great and pious. If he were indeed the
man his defence spoke him, he was so far from meriting death, that in
my judgment, he was not in any degree culpable. In a word he en-
deavoured to prove, that the greater part of the charge was purely the
invention of his adversaries. Among other things, being accused of hating
and defaming the holy see, the pope, the cardinals, the prelates, and the
whole state of the clergy, he stretched out his hands and said in a moving
accent. "On what side, reverend fathers, shall I turn me for redress?
Whom shall I implore? Whose assistance can I expect? Which of you
hath not this malicious charge entirely alienated from me? Which of
you hath it not changed from a judge into an inveterate enemy? — It was
artfully alledged indeed! Though other parts of their charge was of less
moment, my accusers might well imagine, that if this were fastened on
me,' it could not fail of drawing upon me the united indignation of my
judges. ■ '
On the third day of this memorable trial, what had passed was re-
capitulated. When Jerome, having obtained leave, though with some
difficulty, to speak; began his oration with a prayer to God, whose di-
vine assistance he pathetically implored. He then observed, that many
excellent men, in the annals of history, had been oppressed by false
witnesses, and condemned by unjust judges. Beginning with profane
history, he instanced the death of Socrates, the captivity of Plato, the
banishment of Anaxagoras, and the unjust sufferings of many others. He
then instanced the many worthies of the Old Testament, in the same
circumstances, IWoses, Joseph, Daniel, and almost all the prophets; and
lastly, those of the New, John the Baptist, St. Stephen, and others, who
were condemned as seditious, profane, or immoral men. An unjust
judgment, he said, proceeding from a lavicwasbad; from a priest worse:
still worse from a college; of priests; and from a general council, super-
latively bad. These things he spoke with such force and emphasis, as
kept every one's attention awake,
On one point he dwelt largely. As the merits of the cause rested en-
tirely on the credit o\' witnesses, ho took great pains to shew, that very
little was due to those produced against him. He had many objec-
tions to them, particularly their avowed hatred to him; the sources of
THE COUNCIL OF CONSTANCE. 116
which be so palpably laid open, that be made a strong impression upon
the minds of his hearers, and not a little shook the credit of the witness-
es. The whole council was moved, and greatly inclined to pity, if not
to favor him. He added, that he came uncompelled to the council; and
that neither his life nor doctrine had been sj the least
reason to dread an appearance before them. Difference of opinion, said
he, in matters of faith, had e\er risen among learned men: and was al-
ways esteemed productive of truth, rather than of error, where bi_
was laid aside. Such, he said, was the difference between Austin and
Jerome. And though their opinions were not only different, but contra-
. yet the imputation of heresy was never fixed on either.
one expected that he would now either retract his errors, or at
least apologize for them. But nothing of the kind was heard from him.
He declared plainly, that he bad nothing to retract. He launched out
into a high encomium of Huss; calling him a holy man, and lamenting
his cruel and unjust death. He had armed himself, he said, with a fail
resolution to follow the steps of that blessed martyr; and to suffer with
constancy whatever the malice of his enemies could inflict. "The per-
jured witnesses, (said he) who have appeared against me, have won their
cause But let them remember, they have their evidence to give once
more before a tribunal, where falsehood can be no disguise."
It was impossible to hear this pathetic speaker without emotion.
Every ear was captivated: and every heart touched. But wishes in his
favor were vain. He threw hanself beyond the possibility of mercy.
Braving death, he even provoked the vengeance, which was hanging over
him. "If that holy martyr, (said he, speaking of Huss) used the c
with disrespect, his censures were not levelled at them as priests, but as
wicked men. He saw with indignation those revenues, which had been
designed for charitable ends, expended upon - :.d rior"
Through this whole oration, he shewed a most amazing strength of
memory. He had been confined almost a year in a dungeon. The se-
verity of which usage he complained of. bat in the langage of a great
and good man. In this horrid place, he was deprived of books and
paper. Yet notwithstanding this, and the constant anxiety which must
have hung over him, he was at no more loss for proper authorities and
quotations, than if he had spent his intermediate time at leisure in bis
ice was sweet, distinct and full. His action every way the most
proper, either to express indignation, or to raise pity: though he made
no affected application to the passions of his audience. Firm and in-
trepid, he stood before the council, collected in himself: and not only
contemning, but seeming even desirous of death. The greatest charac-
ter in ancient story could not possibly go beyond him. If there i3 any
justice in history, this m»n will be admired by all posterity. I speak not
of his errors. Let these rest with him. What I admired, was his learn-
ing, his eloquence, and amazing acuteness. God knows whether these
thins* were not the groucd-work of his ruin.
Two days were allowed him for reflection, during which time many
persons of consequence, and particularly my lord cardinal of Florence,
endeavored to bring him to a better mind. But persisting obstinately in
«aierror3, he was condemned as a heretic.
With a cheerful countenance, and more than stoical constancy, he met
his fate : fearing neither death itself, nor the horrible form in which it
116 PAPAL PROPAGANDISM IN THE UNITED STATES.
appeared. When he came to the place, lie palled off his upper garment,
and made a short prayer at the stake: to which he was soon after bound
with wet cords, and an iron chain; and inclosed as high as his breast with
tuggots.
Observing the executioner about to set fire to the wood behind his
back, he cried out, ''Brin^ tfiv torch hither. Perform thy office before
rny face. Had I feared death, I might have avoided it."
As the wood began to blaze, lie sang a hymn, which the violence of
flame scarce interrupted.
Thus died this prodigious man. The epithet is not extravagant.
I was myself an e\e-u itne<s of his whole behaviour. Whatever his
life may have been, his death, without doubt, is a lesson of philosophy.
But it is time to finish this long epistle. You will say I have had some
leisure upon my hands. And to say the truth, I have not much to do
here. This will, I hope, convince you, that greatness is not wholly con-
fined to antiquity. You will think me perhaps tedious, but I could have
been more prolix on a subject so copious. Farewell, my dear Leonard.
Constance, May 20, 1416.
NUMBER XIV.
PAPAL PROPAGANDISM IN THE UNITED STATES.
In the Rue Vivienne, which is one of the principal
streets of Paris, is a very extensive reading room, circu-
lating library, and book store, owned by Galignani ; and
here is one of the most common resorts of the English
and Americans in Paris. The same establishment issues
a daily news-paper in English, called GalignanPs Mes*
sender, which has a very extensive circulation, and is
perhaps the largest gazette published in France. From
the No. of that paper dated March 2, 1837, I cut the
advertisement of the Roman Prelate of Philadelphia,
which follows, and which I venture to elucidate by a
few notes.
" To the Charitable and Humane.
M Gentl( inm and Ladies. — You are already acquainted with th«
history of America since its first discovery. That portion of it especi-
ally to which 1 wish to draw your attention, Lis the government of the
United States, rescued from the hands of the King of England sixty
PAPAL PROPAGANDISM IN THE UNITED STATES. 117
yean ago. This terriu r than all F.uropo, and comprises
twenty-lour ^pirate republican gov
President, c\.
came here from I'urope experience.: < h they
suffered in England, the law being tin ra consequently de-
barred from the free exercise of the Catholic religion. t But after the
written, tl twenty-i
in the Union; or if Michigan could :ered as
actually admitted, still there were twenty;//***1. The
States never elect the president; that duty being per-
formed by the/)e- president being the chief mag-
istrate of the natioji as such — and not \ of the
states, in their sovereign capacity. The Catholic priests
and prelates in the United States, are generally I
ers ; and are not only ignorant of the actual state of our
country, but deplorably so, of the peculiar principles of
our; s. This is the more wort] .^us
consideration, as the Catholic ecclesiastics of all coun-
tries are not only keen political partisans, but to a great
extent, direct the political opinions of their flocks. — The
instances of this conduct, in the United States are in-
numerable. A most signal one occurred in the presi-
dential election of 1S40 ; preparatory to which the coun-
cil of all their prelates met at Baltimore, called upon
their people throughout the nation, to vote, upon certain
general principles stated by them ; and then, several
months afterwards, the senior prelate (f, John, Bishop
&c.) issued another manifesto, indicating how, and for
whom, the faithful should cast their suffrages ! And they
did it — almost in solid phalanx, over the whole nation. —
And more manifest, corrupt, and alarming attack on
popular rights, never was made.
f This statement, is utterly untrue. Several of the
states were originally settled by papists — as Maryland
and Louisiana. In which of the colonies were Catholics
treated as they have often been in England? On the
contrary, which papal government, ever, in any age
awarded to Protestants the same privileges that even
England has secured to her papal subjects in manv of
her colonies — as for example Lower Canada ? — But what
country exists on earth, or ever did exist where the Pa-
118 PAPAL PROPAGANDISM IN THE UNITED STATES.
date of the declaration of independence, every person had a right bylaw
(de jure) to profess and practice the religion of his conscience, without
restriction or impediment. As the Catholic emigrants from Europe, es-
pecially from Ireland, Germany, sod Franoe, were rery numerous, and
increasing every year from the period of the revolution up to this date, it
19 evident that their numbers have at length beenm*- a \<-ry considerable
portion of the population, dispersed and spread over all parts of this vast
and extensive region: so that twelve dioceses (each diocese having its
own respective bishop, appointed by the holy see)* have been created
pists bad the power to persecute Protestants, that they
did not apply fire and sword to them without mercy ? —
In America, it is true, liberty does not depend on religi-
ous opinions, all sects are equal in the eye of the consti-
tution and law ; and this is right. But even now in
America, the spirit of the papacy interferes with the ex-
ecution of law, to a dreadful extent. How many Roman
Catholic murderers and rioters have escaped conviction
in Maryland alone, solely because they were papists ;
through the influence of papal principles on witnesses,
jurors, and prosecutors ? How many convicted felons,
have been pardoned, solely to conciliate for political
ends, the papal party ? — This spirit is part and parcel of
Romanism — and is only another manifestation, of that
which produced the massacre of St. Bartholomew, and
the revocation of the edict of Nantz, and countless ex-
cesses, persecutions, assassinations and massacres. It
is of faith in the papal sect to exterminate heretics ; and
the people of America have no alternative but to convert
papists — to be killed by them — or to be their slaves. It
is a political superstition, wThich tolerates no other reli-
gion— except while prudence requires it. The French
papal press is now defending the policy, wisdom, and
piety, of the conduct of Louis XIV. in butchering and
exiling his Protestant subjects !
*The papacy has sustained great losses, by the progress
and results of free opinions. But in some important re-
spects, it has also wronderfully gained. During the
highest influence of the bishop of Rome, all papal kings
deemed it indispensable to keep some check on his power
over the clergy, in their kingdoms. In no former period
of the world, not even in the darkest ages, was the direct
power of the pope so great over the Catholic clergy, as at
PAPAL PROPAGANDISM IN THE UNITED STATES. 119
and erected in the United States within these thirty years pa9t, viz.— -
Baltimore, Philadelphia, New York, Charleston, Boston, Cincinnati,
Bardstown, St. Louis, .New Orleans, Mobile, Detroit, and Yincennes.*
this moment. In Ireland, in France, every where — even
in the United States, the pope of Rome has an army of
ecclesiastics, devoted to him — appointed by him — de-
pendent on him for wealth, for honour, promotion, every
thing. These men are of course thoroughly imbued with
his spirit, and active agents in promoting his cause.
That pope, be it remembered, not only rules a temporal
kingdom, and is a king himself — but is of all kings the
most opposed to free governments, and political liberty.
(See Encyclical Letter of Gregory XVI. Bait. Lit. and
Rel. Magazine, vol. ii. (1836) pp. 190—200.) Now
this king appoints, says bishop Conwell, all the American
papal bishops ! Every other sect in America is national;
the papal sect is anti-national. No other sect recognises
any temporal head at all, still less any foreign one. But
this superstition, is based on sworn fidelity to, and abso-
lute dependence on, a foreign king — who is the most
corrupt and ignorant of all kings — and whom they not
only believe to be infallible, but absolutely to stand in
God's place, as his vicar on earth ! — Every one of these
bishops swears once every year, an oath of allegiance to
the reigning pope, king of Rome ; and every private
member swears as often as he repeats his creed, to ren-
der " true obedience" to this foreign despot. (See
Bait. Lit. and Rel. Magazine, vol. i. (1835) pp. 33—5,
The Creed of Pius IV. and pp. 158—60, Bishop's Oath.)
* There has undoubtedly been a very great augmenta-
tion of the papal population of the United States, within
the present century. This has resulted principally, as
bishop Conwell says, from emigration. And while this
increase is such as to give just uneasiness to the people
of the United States ; the change has undoubtedly been
of much temporal advantage to the papal emigrants them-
selves. If the papal population of the United States
continues to increase, for a century, as it has done for
the last twenty five years ; it cannot be doubted that the
most serious and unhappy modifications will necessarily
120 PAPAL PROPAGANDISE! IN THE UNITED STATES.
Each diocese ii as large and extensive as a kingdom is in Europe. Here
arc nriiiv triht;- of Indian* I, many of whom are converted oc-
casionally to the Catholic ami Christian faith. All the different 84
heresies prevalent in Borope are to he found here, with their peculiar
prejudice-;. The mission i- very difficult here J the country heing thinly
peopled, missionaries ha?e long and painful journeys to undertake, and
nre subject to privations of every kind.*
occur in the s^^r 6f Society, manners, religion, freedom
and property in America. And in the event of that party
l. icoming greatly the strongest in a few of ti , the
dissolution of the union, and religious wars, are to be
looked for as nearly certain. It is probable that some
modification of the naturalization laws of America might
be serviceable in retarding the evil day. But the true
course is — to attack the subject with spiritual arms,
which alone are mighty in this contest. The papists are
sent to America by the Lord for their good, or for our
rebuke, according as we meet the crisis. Enlighten them,
and teach them the word of God ; and they become val-
uable citizens ; neglect them, and they will for ages trou-
ble our country and our children. — It is certain that eon-
versions from protestantism to papism, which were not
uncommon in America a few years ago, are now nearly
unknown ; while opposite conversions are common.
This is only the first fruit. The final result, if the people
of America do their duty — must be, the conversion of the
great body of the papists themselves. Why should we for-
get that Luther, Calvin, Zuingle, Beza, Knox — were all,
once blinded papists ? — Truth is mighty.
* It is obvious from the whole history of the Roman
sect, in the United States, that they aim at the conversion
of the whole nation— whites, Indians-— and all, to their
superstition. They are not to be blamed for this ; as no
doubt, it is the duty of all men, to propagate what they
consider truth. But they are to be blamed for the se-
cret, sly and underhand methods they use; and the in-
numerable false representations they make on this sub-
ject. And the people of America are to be blamed for
their credulity in believing that the papists have no idea
of trying to convert their sons in their schools, and their
daughters in their nunneries. ---As to the privations sup-
PAPAL PROPAGANDISE! IN THE UNITED STATES. 121
The object of this address is to solicit charitable contribution! for the
purpose of erecting and establishing places of divine worship, and semi-
naries for the education of youth of both sexes.* My dioceses requires
ported by papal priests in America, it will doubtless be
news in that country ; and their painful journeys — in the
best steamboats in the world, or in comfortable and
speedy coaches — are surely as endurable as their pedes-
trian journeys in the dominions of their pope-king, whose
fears of human intercourse induce him to prohibit dili-
gences and stages ! — As to the heresies of America — it is
certainly true, that even the annual cursings upon them
on Holy Thursday, have not yet suppressed them. (See
Bulla in Cosna Domini, Bait. Lit. and Rel. Magazine,
vol. ii, (1836) pp.225— 40.)
*The schools of the Romanists in the United States,
are generally designed for the education of Protestants,
and are used as their most effectual means of propagating
their opinions. Young persons educated in them, are
generally materially injured in their religious opinions ;
either by becoming familiarised to error, and thus losing
a proper aversion to it ; or by being disgusted with their
own former and true opinions by the falsehoods and so-
phistry of their teachers against them; or even, in many
cases becoming papists, by reason of the assiduous and
unscrupulous proselytism of the priests. In the mean
time, they lose some of the most precious years of their
life, in schools, w^hich are without exception of an infe-
rior order, conducted on methods at once ignorant and
antiquated, and in studies not directed to the best ob-
jects. In the midst of these attempts against protestant
youths, hundreds of papal youths are totally neglected
by their proper and natural teachers, and allowed to re-
main in ignorance, because they are already in their
power. In Europe, national education is only on a good
footing in protestant states ; and in papal countries, as
the first step towards doing any thing, the power of the
priests over education, has been abolished. For they
not only do all they can to defeat popular education in
their own sect, but are found incompetent as a body, to
take a distinguished part in the higher branches of in-
11
122 PAPAL PROPAGANDISM IN THE UNITED STATES.
assistance more than any other in America, as it comprises three states,
viz. Pennsylvania, New Jersey, and Delaware, and has a population of
two millions of inhabitants, scattered through this vast extent of territo-
ry "where the harvest is great and abundant, and the labourers are few/'
Benevolent societies in different parts of Europe, feeling for the state of
America in the above regard, have Bent charitable donations to the other
dioceses ; hut Philadelphia, which requires more assistance than any of
the rest, has been totally neglected and forgotten up to this date.* Be-
Struction. in France lor example, priests have nothing
to do with education, except the education of priests only.
Is it not extraordinary that such men, unfit for such em-
ployments and opposed to such extension of knowledge
in Europe ; should be so anxious to teach Protestants in
America, and so capable of doing it? Is it not strange
that France, which ranks about the fortieth amongst
states in point of general education should furnish money,
and Ireland, which ranks last of all in the same scale,
should furnish teachers to America, which as a nation
ranks second or third, and some of whose states rank frst
of all?
* Bishop Con well is certainly entitled to sympathy, that
he has been entirely passed by in the distribution of
the bounties of the faithful. And the good people of
New Jersey, Delaware and Pennsylvania which com-
pose his diocese — are hardly fairly dealt by; in having
their spiritual wants overlooked by the society of the
Propaganda at Rome — The Leopold Society in Austria
—-and I know not how many besides. Is it not possi-
ble to ascertain how much money is annually contribu-
ted by the papists of Europe, to Romanize the people
of the United States. It is no longer doubtful however,
that an organised system is on foot to effect this object;
that many of the oligarchy of Europe, and especially the
royal house of Austria are deeply engaged in the scheme;
and that the whole power of the church of Rome is se-
cretly but assiduously devoted to it. There are always
one or two American bishops in Europe on this errand,
---and bishop England especially seems the hero of the
plot. The rich give money; the kings encourage emi-
gration; the poor unite in brotherhoods, such as that to
worship the heart of Mary, and pay for masses in her
honour, that she may become favorable to the great object;
PAPAL PROPAGANDISM IN THE UNITED STATES. 123
sides, I have purchased a lot of ground to build a church upon, where it
is much wanted, in this city ; bat I in totally destitute of the means of
accomplishing that great object, without charitable aafiftaaee, which J
am under the necessity of soliciting, and which 1 now earnestly recom-
the priests and nuns go forward (personally to the work.
This effort must be met by a corresponding effort. We
must redouble our exertions to enlighten and convert the
papists of America. We must contribute money in aid
of protestant efforts in Catholic countries. We ought to
aid the Evangelical societies of France and Geneva,which
are nobly engaged in efforts to spread the gospel. But it
is high time that missions were established by us in all
papal countries. Faithfulness to God, to our fellow men,
10 our country, and to our children require this of us.---
In the year 1839, a single society in France sent nearly
$70,000 to aid the various papal prelates, &c, in the
United v The items which go to make up the
sum stated above, are here given: they are taken from the
May No. for 1840, of the "Annals of the Propagation of
the Faith" printed at Lyons.
Paid to the Lazarists, for the missions to
Missouri and Illinois, the seminary, and
the college of St. Marie des B aniens, 7,000 francs.
Outfit of missionaries who left in 1839 to
join those missions, - - - 9,333 30
To the Jesuits, for missions in Missouri
and New Orleans, - - - 15,000
Ditto in Kentucky, - - . 6,000
There were also sent —
To my lord Eccleston, arbhbishop of Bal-
timore, ----- 7,327
To my lord Loras, bishop of Dubuque, 52,627
To my lord Purcell, bishop of Cincinnati, 39,827
To my lord Fenwick, bishop of Boston, 20,327
To my lord Kenrick,bishop of Philadelphia, 20,327
To my lord Hughes, acting bishop of New
York, - - - - 831 50
To my lord Miles, bishop of Nashville, 26,807
To my lord Fiaget, bishop of Bardstown, 21,409
226,815 80
124 PAPAL PROPAGANDISM IN THE UNITED STATES.
mend to your consideration. Whatever aid the friends of religion m
your good city may be disposed to give on this occasion, by your kind
egency, can be sent by good bills of exchange, drawn in my favour, on
Brought forward, - - - 226,815 80
To my lord Hailandiere, bishop of Vincen-
nes, 65,827
To my lord Rosati, bishop of St. Louis, 20,327
To my lord Blanc,acting bishop of Natchez, 10,827
To my lord England, bishop of Charleston, 13,827
Outfit of missionaries to Detroit, - 4,000
341,862 80
This same society is said by the Catholic Jllmanac for
1839, in a note on the life of bishop Dubourg, to have
sent $160,000 to the United States in a single year.
Let it not be supposed for a moment, that these remit-
tances are either occasional, or of recent origin. They
are known to be at least annual; and must amount to im-
mense sums, distributed all over our nation to seduce and
corrupt it. How long the papal prelates here, have been
in the habit of receiving these subsidies from Europe,
it is diffiult to say with precision. There is printed in
the "Baltimore Literary and Religious Magazine" vol.
v. (1839) pp. 502 — 6, an account current of P. Inglesi,
a papal priest, and agent in Europe for soliciting funds
for bishop Dubourg, the particulars of which curious and
authentic matter will appear on reference to that work.
In that account, published by Inglesi himself, in the Phila-
delphia newspapers in November 1823, during the fa-
mous and voluminous quarrel, between priest Hogan, and
this very bishop Conwell and. others; occurs the follow-
ing u Statement of the sums received in Europe per ac-
count of the Louisiana mission"
From the king of France, - Francs, 4,000
" the king of Holland, - ■* 7,085
u the emperor of Russia, - - 20,000
u the emperor of Austria, - - 20,000
" the king of Sardinia, - - - 6,192
" his holiness the pope, - - 20,000
" the grand duke of Tuscany, - 11,474
u the duchess of Lucca, - - 5,100
" sundry individuals and collections, 29,192
PAPAL PROPAGANDISM IN THE UNITED STATES. 125
merchants in London, Amsterdam, Paris, or any of the other great com-
mercial cities in Europe or America, and forwarded to my address in
Philadelphia, where the same will he gratefully acknowledged, and kept
for ever on record, in the archives of this diocese.
By vour most sincere and faithful friend in Christ,*
HENRY CONWELL, Bishop of Philadelphia.
Philadelphia, A. D. in the year of our Lord 1837.,:
It seems then that at least twenty years ago, the con-
spiracy of the tyrants and bigots of Europe, for the ruin
of our country was in active operation; and the prelates
and priests of Rome settled amongst us; then as now
the agents of the conspiracy.
* This letter is obviously a circular — and no doubt was
published in the principal Catholic cities of Europe. By
itself it is of little importance; but as a portion of a great
system, and an indication of the character and objects
of that system, it is worthy of profound regard. It is
sufficiently humiliating to an American spirit that igno-
rant and conceited foreigners, who are indebted to our
humane laws, and just institutions for ten thousand bless-
ings denied to them in their native land; should do all
in their power to create false impressions concerning our
real state, and render us ridiculous to the enlightened por-
tion of Europe, by representations and solicitations which
are entirely unjustifiable. But that such men should
enter into a league with all the ignorance, fanaticism, and
despotism of Europe; to effect objects as to us, and our
country — which if successful, must destroy every thing
for which that country is so inestimably precious to us,
and important to the whole world; is surely calculated to
arrest the attention of the nation — and rouse it to the ne-
cessity of countervailing exertions. In this, as in every
other case, the path of duty, safety and honour, is one.
To enlighten and convert the papist is to bless him — and
preserve ouselves.
11*
126
NUMBER XV.
PAPAL PROVINCIAL COUNCIL; PREACHING OF BISHOP
ENGLAND;
The city of Baltimore, as the seat of the arc]
pal power of Rome in the United States, occasionally
witnesses the assemblage of all the high and mighty dig-
nitaries of that superstition in this country.* A few
*From the Baltimore Gazette, May 2, 1837.
Provincial Council of the Roman Catholic Church,
We have abstained from noticing the session of this assembly until we
should be enabled to lay before our readers such an account as we could
rely upon as fully correct. That which we give is, in some measure
extracted from the Catholic Herald of Philadelphia, to which additional
information, derived from a member of the council itself, is attached.
The bishops of the Catholic church form its legislative assembly and
its court of judicature; but their acts of legislation, and, in many instan-
ces, especially of weightier causes, their judgements must be examined
by the pope, their presiding bishop, whose spiritual jurisdiction extends
over every portion of the world. The object of this examination is to
ascertain their conformity to the doctrine and the discipline of the whole
body over which he is placed, and, in many instances, his sanction is ne-
cessary to their validity. The church is divided into districts, which are
called provinces; and each province into dioceses.
^ Each diocess is governed by a bishop, and one of those in each pro-
vince is called the archdiocess or metropolitan diocess. The bishop of
this see is called the arch-bishop; he can convoke the assembly, and pre-
side in its session; the other bishops are called suffragans, because their
suffrages, united with his, create the acts of the council.
Several priests are usually invited as theologians, or canonists, to ex-
amine the questions to be discussed, indeed, the bishops may invite for
the purpose any persons from whose experience or information they ex-
pect to derive aid, even though they be not priests nor in any orders. —
The bishops and theologians assemble in congregation to receive the re-
ports cf the several committees to which the different questions have
been referred for a first examination ; the matter of these reports is open
to free discussion; the bishops subsequently assemble in council and act
upon the business thus discussed; their acts then forwarded to Rome for
approbation, and, when returned approved, are published and executed.
In most of the countries of Europe, the tyranny exercised over the
church, under the pretext of its protection, has extended so far as to pre-
vent such assemblies; and, therefore, during centuries, comparatively
few provincial councils have been held in Spain, Portugal, Erance, or
Germany. Two had previously been held in this city, one in October,
1833. The council of the present year was opened on Sunday, the 16tb
PREACHING OF BISHOP ENGLAND. 127
;years since, a council was hold here — and its decrees
after being approved a#t Rome, became Jaw for the
papists of the nation. We Lave endeavoured in vain
to lay our hands on an authentic copy of the pn
ings of that assembly ; and may not uncharitably in-
fer the nature of the decrees, from the sedulous care with
which they have been kept, from the public eye. At
of April, the previous assembly having in their decrees fixed upon that day
for itf commencement.
The prelates present on this occasion were ten in number, including the
archbishop, the most Rev. Samuel Eccleston. The bishops sat accord-
ing to the order of their consecration, as follows :
"The right Rev. John England, bishop of Charleston.
"The right Rev. Benedict Fenwick, bishop of Boston.
"The right Rev. Joseph Rosati, bishop of St. Louis.
"The right Rev. Francis Patrick Kenrick, bishop of Arath, and
Coadj. of Philadelphia.
"The right Rev. John Baptist Purcell, bishop of Cincinnati.
"The right Rev. Guy Ignatius Chabrat, bishop of Bolina, and Coadj.
of Bardstown.
"The right Rev. Simon Gabriel Brute, bishop of Vincennes.
"The right Rev. William Claney, bishop of Orie, and Coadj. of
Charleston.
"The right Rev. Anthony Blanc, bishop of New Orleans.
"The very Rev. Felix Varela, V. G. appeared as procurator of the
bishop of New York, who sent reasons for his absence.
"Three other prelates were absent, one being in Europe, another call-
ed away by urgent affairs, and a third, who had set out from a remote
diocess, not having succeeded in reaching Baltimore before the close of
the council.
"The bishop of Boston, and the very Rev. Louis Deluol, V. G.
were promoters.
"The Rev. Edward Damphoux was secretary.
"The Rev. Charles White Associate secretary.
"The Rev. Francis L'Homme, master of ceremonies.
'•The very Rev. William McSherry was present at provincial of the
Society of Jesus in Maryland.
"The very Rev. P. Verbaegen as provincial of the Society in Missouri.
"The Rev. John Hickey, superior of the Sisters of Charity.
"The Rev. Thomas Mulledy, S. J. president of the college at
Georgetown.
•"The Rev. John J. Chanche, president of St. Mary's College.
"The Rev. Thomas Butler, president of the College of St. Mary's
near Emmettsburg.
"The Consulting Theologians were — The very Rev. Lewis Debarth.
The very Rev. Peter Richard Kenrick. The very Rev. John Hughes.
The Rev. Peter S. Schreiber. The Rev. Stephen Theodore Badin. —
The Rev. Regis Loisel. The Rev. Tgnatius A. Reynolds. The Rev.
Augustia Verot."
128 PAPAL PROVINCIAL COUNCIL;
the present time a similar council is assembled in our
good city called, perhaps the 'Third Provincial Council
#c.' ; and the presence of "their lordships," as the pre-
lates delight to call themselves, has not only occasioned
great excitement amongst the faithful, ---but the public at
large have been benefited by various shows, and enlight-
ened by several discourses, on the part of "the purple."
We have so many occasions to pay our respects to Mr.
Eccleston and his high and mighty colleagues, male and
female ; that at present, we owe our peculiar service to
the council, and especially to bishop England its light
and grace !
It is part of the faith of every papist— that the deci-
sions of a council of the whole church, are as infallible,
and as binding as the word of God ; because they are
equally inspired by the Holy Ghost. It was once receiv-
ed doctrine, that the decisions of inferior councils, of
whatever kind ; become universally binding and infalli-
ble, if they should acquire the sanction of the pope, and
the approbation of the whole papal sect. On the other
hand, the ultra montain theory, which is the prevailing
one since the restoration of the Jesuits, does not allow a
council to be general, unless the pope calls it and ap-
proves its decisions; nor does it allow the acts of any
council to be valid until submitted to his holiness— and
assented to by him. Our present council therefore,
though honoured by the presence of such and so many
spiritual powers, and guided by the wisdom even of the
lord bishops of Charleston and Cincinnati; is of no more
authority, than an assemblage of old ladies (excuse the
comparison) ; nor their acts of more value than the waste
paper of their own printed discourses ; until a miserable
old man at Rome, who calls himself Saint Peter, under
the name of Gregory, shall examine and decide whether
or not the Divine Spirit, was really present in the assembly.
We who are near the scene of action, have too much
reason to fear, that Gregory would be obliged to set aside
the council— if he should make that fact the ground of
his decision. If he should decide on the nature of the
council from the character of its acts— we shall never
perhaps be able to estimate the value of his decision; for
PREACHING OF BISHOP ENGLAND.
129
the acts themselves will in nil probability be concealed,
like their predecessors, from the public.
There We several considerations connected with this
subject, which appear to clothe it with an importance
which is not generally attached to it. Jn the first place,
— what has the pope of Rome to do with the religion of
us Americans ? He is a king— we are republicans; he is
a papist, and the father of them— we are protestants,and
mean to continue such ; so that both civilly and religi-
ously, we are the very antipodes of each other, and we
the especial objects of his jealousy and hatred. It seems
to us, that if the episcopal church of the United States,
after the American revolution, had continued its con-
nexion with the established church of England— and
with the king of England as its temporal head ; the coun-
try would have had just grounds of suspicion against
that body. Or if the Presbyterians of this country had
insisted on occupying a subordinate relation to the Kirk
of Scotland, even although that venerable body never
acknowledged any head but Christ ; there would have
been much reason to suspect their loyalty to the country.
In the case of the Papists, the argument is rendered
doubly strong by the fact, that their acknowledged bead
is not only a foreigner and a tyrant, but he professes to
be all but a God. He is not only utterly hostile to every
distinctive principle of our political system, but his peo-
ple here profess to believe that he is the vicar of God,
and spiritually infallible. When wTe add to this the
alarming facts that the majority of the Papists of the Uni
ted States are foreigners ; that all their bishops, except
Mr. Eccleston are also foreigners, and nearly all their
priests aliens; we augment greatly the grounds of public
apprehension. But the whole case seems complete in
its evil aspect, when we remember that the influence of
the atrocious society of the Jesuits, is absolute over the
papal clergy of America; and that the Roman communion
throughout the civilized world, is systematically engaged
in a conspiracy to subject this country to the influence
of the pope.
There is little in the past history, either of the Jesuits
or the entire papal sect, to lull our apprehensions in re-
130 PAPAL PROVINCIAL COUNCIL;
Said to their designs against our country. Two centu-
ries and a half of unparalleled crimes, caused the expul-
sion of that society from nearly every Christian state, and
at last forced the pope of Rome to dissolve it ; although
he foresaw, as the event proved truly, that he signed his
own death warrant, when he signed the hull lor their
suppression. So also, the unvarying history of the pa-
pacy shows, that no dissent from the principles of Rome,
has never been tolerated where Home was able, by force
to suppress it in the blood of its martyrs ; that no people
lias preserved itself from the pope's domination, except
after long and bloody wars, and as the fruit of victory;
every protestant nation of Europe, has in turn been the
theatre both of civil and foreign wars, waged solely to
reduce them to the yoke of popery ; and are protestant at
this moment, only because God has blessed their arms in
the day of battle. With such facts before our eyes, we
ask reflecting men, what are we to expect from the secret
deliberations of a set of agents of a foreign king, who
are bound to him by interest, by the ties of religion, and
by the most solemn oaths; and who in turn control the
whole papal sect in this country ? Why are their delib-
erations secret ? Why are their acts concealed} Why
do they alone, of all sects of religionists, shun the light,
and concert their plans darkly in suspicious silence ; and
then lay their unknown decrees for approval, humbly at
the feet of a prince, whose throne in all ages has been
filled by the most unscrupulous, ambitious, and detesta-
ble succession of rulers, that ever cursed the earth ?
The papal clergy of America have one title to praise,
which few of their brethren in other nations share with
them. Every where else the public services of their re-
ligion are all mummery; while with us only nine tenths
are mummery. That is, they do in this country make an
attempt to teach their people, their moral duties, by pub-
lie instructions on the sabbath-day. Every where else,
this is omitted, as a stated and uniform duty ; and the
people at ordinary seasons, come and go, without one
ivord of admonition, instruction or reproof from those,
whose onh/ commission from the Saviour, if they be in-
deed his ministers, is to teach mankind, and so gather
PREACHING OF BISHOP ENGLAND. 131
and o-uide the flock of Christ. Go teach all nations—
was the commission of Christ ; receive power to sacrifice
for the living and the dead, is the ordination of Rome.
Striking similitude !
During the sessions of the present council in Balti-
more, the community has been more than usually favored,
with these unusual instructions. Bishop England has
been the chief, if not the only speaker, and in so far at
least, resembles Saul of Tarsus. This good city has
often before had the fortune to enjoy the services of his
lordship ; and we have therefore been all the better pre-
pared to profit by his present efforts to enlighten us.
Having once had the advantage ourself of hearing him
prove the excellence and advantage of the holy inquisi-
tion, of which it is confidently believed he is the pope's
inquisitor general for the U. S.; we were, of course, some-
what prepared for his lucubrations on the mercifulness of
purgatory, the delicacy of auricular confession, and other
similar topics. We \vould respectfully remind Mr. Eng-
land, that there is an unsettled account between him and
us, on the first of these subjects, namely the inquisition;
and that our gage has been lying at his feet, unnoticed
for a number of years. Did he formerly misunderstand
us ? Then let us repeat what we have said. We charge
the bishop with upholding a system, hateful to God, and
ruinous to man. We offer to prove this charge against
him, or any other bishop, or any man that any bishop
will designate ; and the time, place, and method are un-
der his own choice. If he thinks us beneath his notice,
we can only beg him to fix his august eye upon the man
in the Presbyterian church of this country, whom he
deems worthy of his notice ; and no effort of ours shall
be wanting to accommodate the matter to his content.
This we have repeated in word and in print, many times,
from the autumn of 1834 to the winter of 1841, say six
years. We therefore humbly conceive, that the recreant
party should either change his boastful and insolent tone,
or vindicate the truth of his doctrines and the propriety
of his conduct, in some clear and public manner.
Our principal design in introducing the bishop's name,
at this time ; is however to speak of a discourse we had
132 PAPAL PROVINCIAL COUNCIL;
the fortune to hear him deliver, at saint Patrick's church
on Fell's Point, on the feast of the ascension. We beg
leave also to direct attention to an analysis of another
discourse of his, on auricular confession, annexed to this
paper. It is from the hand of a friend who heard the
sermon, and may he relied on as substantially correct.
The two representations will give those who have never
a SO fortunate as to hear the gentleman himself---
§ome idea of his manner and matter in the pulpit.
The sermon had already been commenced when we
entered the little church, and got well situated in front of
the speaker. He stood in a little barrel looking pulpit,
with an image of the virgin in a nich in the wall, on his
left hand. The altar, garnished yrith long wax tapers, a
figure of our Saviour, various pictures, and several men
and boys wTho looked as if they were in their shirt tails,
but probably were not, occupied his rear to the right ;
and further over in that direction, was an image of saint
Patrick, in a nich corresponding to the one occupied by
the virgin. Mr. England, is a stout, ruddy man ; look-
ing just as a good papist might be expected to look, after
keeping lent, on oysters, terrapins, and champagne wine.
He is a hail old gentleman ; and we heartily wish him a
long life, and freedom from all surfeits. His dress was
rather gaudy; and exceedingly queer. Part white, part
lilack, part male, part female ; as unlike as possible to
that of his audience, and not very similar, we suspect,
to that of Mr. Fisherman Peter. As the enormous ring
he wore on the little finger of his right hand, is a badge
of his rank; we pass by any suggestion touching its os-
tentatious display.
The manner of the bishop is exceedingly pompous and
magnificent; and his rage for attitudenising so great, as
to weary both himself and his hearers. His favourite
posture, is a bad copy of^that in which Napoleon is
usually represented, with his arms crossed on his chest,
and one foot slightly projected. His utterance is fluent,
and his speech copious. But his pronunciation is as in-
distinct, as if his mouth were full of hot mush; and his
treatment of the king's English murderous to a bloody
degree. The words lt children of Israel" he pronounced
PREACHING OF BISHOP ENGLAND. 133
several times childrin of Izreet; " Isaac91 he called hie;
" realms," he pronounced as it' the word were of* two
syllables, and spelt rulums; while the word " ignominy"
was uttered with a strong accent on the second syllable,
ig-nom-iny. These are only specimens out of a very
large class.
As samples of the matter of the discourse, we will at-
tempt to state a few of what appeared to be the princi-
pal ideas of the speaker. We have said the subject was
the ascension of the Saviour.
He called attention to the fact, that the Bible informs
us clearly that the Saviour held much familiar intercourse
with his apostles, during the period that intervened be-
tween his resurrection and ascension. Then he assert-
ed that the fathers who were cotemporary with the apos-
tles, inform us that during this period, the Saviour taught
his disciples — all those doctrines of the church, which are
not found in the Bible; and made all those explanations,
and gave all those instructions, which the church has
faithfully preserved to elucidate and complete the written
word ; and amongst these things, he mentioned particu-
larly, the sacraments, the mode of their administration,
&c. &c. He did not venture to name any of the fathers,
by whom these extraordinary facts could be established ;
nor did he seem to halt at all, at the admission that many
of his most important doctrines were not contained in the
Scriptures.
A second theme was the promise of the Comforter,
and his coming, as a consequence of the ascension of the
Saviour. No part of the Christian system is more re-
plete with majesty and glory, than that which relates
to the purchase, the promise, the shedding forth, and
the eternal presence of the Holy Ghost, in the church;
as the agent on the one hand in the regeneration and
sanctification of the people of God, and as the wit-
ness on the other, of the divine mission, infinite ex-
altation— and eternal Godhead of the Messiah. It was
therefore with sorrow and shame that we heard one pro-
fessing to be a Christian minister, teaching a religious
assembly, mean, erroneous, and narrow views of these
sublime and consoling truths. The church of Rome does
12
134 PAPAL PROVINCIAL COUNCIL;
indeed deny the new birth, as taught in the word of God-
and held up by all who have experienced its power: and
its ideas of holiness are limited to such attainments as
may be made by "bodily exercise" — which we know
of God, profiteth little. But we were not prepared to
find the most distinguished prelate of the Ajneri<
church, so utterly unacquainted with spiritual things-
even as to any methodical head knowled cording
to the orator, this promise of the Holy Ghost, derives its
practical value from the fact, thai in this way all the d
mas of the church are proved to be of divine origin,
cause a divine spirit testifies to them; and to the faithful,
the comforter is so called, as he dwells in the ordinances
of the church, in his office as the Paraclete. So that the
most stupendous facts of religion, are so to speak, only
available in the narrow7 channel of a corrupted worship;
and only strong to uphold what is revolting and absurd.
As for example, are we to believe that the proof that
Jesus is seated at the right hand of God with all power
—is only important as it shows that he is to be worship-
ped truly, under the appearance of a cake; and that the
promise of a divine witness with our spirits that we are
God's children— has its accomplishment, when we be-
lieve "what the church tells us— -and because she tells
it"-— even though she should call perjury and blood-guilt-
iness virtues, wThen they promote the cause of Rome.
A third point of remark, was the glory of the entrance
of the ascended Redeemer into heaven. — The well
known passage in 1 Peter, iii. 19 — 21, was made to teach
that Christ was occupied during the three days that in-
tervened between his crucifixion and resurrection — in
proclaiming salvation to the righteous dead. The lo-
cality of this mission was not specified; and we were left
to guess, whether we should call it 'limbo' — with Milton,
the "place of departed spirits" by permission of the
episcopal rubric, — or "hell" outright, with the papal cor-
ruption of the apostle's creed. The Idocrine was laid
down in the broadest terms that before the ascension ot
Christ, no human soul had ever been admitted into
glory; but thai "from Abe! to the thief Oil the CFOS8 — not
one soul had ever entered paradise;55 such being his own
PREACHING OF BISHOP KNOLANI). 135
words. The promises and declarations of Scripture, to
the patriarchs and the Old Testament saints, were inter-
preted in such a wav as to Confirm this new and frightful
doctrine; and the grand and majestie passages in the
xxiv. Psalm, were especially adduced to prove the <:
trine, and illustrate the method of Christ's ascension, fol-
lowed by all the dead who had died in the Lord from the
beginning of the world — and who then for the first time
were admitted into their rest. Every Bible reader will
at once perceive the awful perversion of truth, involved
in such statements — and the total ignorance of Scripture
which they manifest: we only report, without aiming to
refute the nonsense.
The last topic of remark we shall repeat, was stated
somewhat to the following purport "The ascension of
Christ to glory — after such a life of humiliation and suf-
fering as his had been, affords one of the strongest pos-
sible proofs that virtuous efforts, privations, &c. are of
themselves meritorious, and that they will be finally re-
warded." There is something exceedingly painful and
affecting, in the manifestation of that species of judicial
blindness, which while it is not utterly dead to the power
of truth — seems incapable of perceiving it with sufficient
clearness, to be guided by it. The life of Christ as con-
trasted with his taking up into heaven — does undoubted-
ly afford the finest and loveliest incentive to virtue, that
all past time gives us, of human conduct. But oh! how
much more does it teach us: how7 much higher and more
awful are its lessons! To fasten on the lowest aspect of
the subject, betrays a coarse and dull spirit; but to fix on
a false analogy, to teach a fatal error,— as the lesson
which the clearest truth inculcates; exhibits an ingenuity
in going astray, which nothing but the "strong delusion"
to which God has given over the Roman hierarchy, seems
capable of explaining. What rational being, could
otherwise ever think of inferring, that the merit of good
works and voluntary sufferings, is proved by the fact that
God has accepted of the sacrifice of his Son for sinners
— and so can justify the ungodly, while he continues Just
himself ?
Our great controversy with Rome, lies precisely here.
She has perverted and obscured the truth of God, till
136 PAPAL PROVINCIAL COUNCIL, &C.
she no longer knows it herself: and the system which she
teaches, is such, that he who believes and practices it, is
only the more confirmed in darkness and fatal error. "We
unhesitatingly assert, as the resultof repeated attendance
on the public discourses of the favourite teachers of
Catholicity wherever we have had opportunity — that they
are deplorably ignorant of Scripture, even a- i of
truth; and that its influence on the heart and conscience,
in the way of regeneration and sanctificatioD — while it is
pointedly denied in their faith — is utterly unheard in their
preaching, and apparently unknown in their experience.
Bishop England, ubelievest thou the prophets?" Bishop
England, "understandest thou what thou reddest?"
ANALYSIS OF A SERMON OF THE LORD BUHOP OF CHARLESTON.
Bishop England of Charleston, S. C, preached in the cathedral in Bal-
timore on Tuesday, May 2d, 1837, on the popish sacrament of penance,
and auricular confession. The ohjectof the discourse appeared to be to
establish the divine authority of this custom of the Roman Catholic
church. lie stated that in an early period of his life, the impressions
made upon his mind, in his ordinary school education were not Roman
Catholic. He read in one of the school books a remarkable statement
which attracted his attention, viz: that Auricular Confession was first
introduced in the year 1215. His curiosity was excited to read eccle-
siastical history, as he could not solve the difficulty which occured to his
mind from so extraordinary a fact. On investigation and examination, he
found the fact announced as history, to be entire and deliberate falsehood.
He had early read that monarchs were proud, that kings were ambitious,
that knights were chivalrous; but had not learned that facts could be re-
corded as his history which were false and without foundation. That so
many people believed the doctrine of auricular confession to be of divine
authority, is evidence he thought of their sincerity in adopting that be-
lief. Monarchs, senators and dukes went to confession.
How difficult now would it be to produce the conviction which then
existed? Suppose it possible for Baltimore to adopt it, would Philadel-
phia, and New York, and Boston, and Charleston follow; would the
western world, would Europe join in the belief?
That auricular confession existed before the year 1215 appeared to
him from the testimony of many Catholic writers, which he quoted ;
from their opponents themselves ; from the j)ractice of the Greek church
which separated from the Latin in the 4th century. The bishop affirm-
ed that the same writers who say that auricular confession was first in-
troduced in 1215. also affirm that auricular confession was done away
by Nestorius of the 4th century, who seeing evils arise from public con-
fession, enjoined private confession ; and drew an agreement in favour
of liis proposition from this fact, since if it was done away at this period,
it existed before 1215. Auricular confession is not a doctrine of the
dark ages, but existed under the Old Testament at the giving of the law
CASE OF ELIZA BURNS, &C. 137
lo Moses by Almighty God ; In the sacrifices offered by the priests of
the Mosaic economy; and was sanctioned by Christ, tin; Saviour of the
world and his associates. The doctrine was taught a* essential to salva-
tion by some of the Catholic writers. "Except ye go to penance ye
cannot be saved," was a doctrine taught. It is not tyranny over men's
consciences, because the humblest knows the bounds of the confessor's
jurisdiction The priest confesses to the bishop, the bishop to the arch-
bishop, thearchbishop to the pope, the pope to God.
The bishop called the reformation a novelty.
The cathedral was tilled with a crowd, and he was attentively heard
by the assembly. The text was from John xx. 22 23. " Receive
ye the Holy Ghost, whosoever's sins ye remit, they are remitted; and
whosoever's sins ye retain, they are retained." Which was explained
to mean, not that the priests and bishops could forgive sins, but that from
confession they can form a judgment whose sins should be forgiven.
NUMBER XVI.
CASE OF ELIZA BURNS, THE ABDUCTED ORPHAN.
We have just been made acquainted (August 1837)
with a story of great and painful interest, which we take
the responsibility of making public; in the hope and with
the design that an enlightened and informed public sen-
timent may come to the aid of the laws, in restraining the
outrageous proceedings of some of the papal functiona-
ries, institutions, and people in this city. We freely
give names and facts; and hold ourself responsible, for
the general accuracy of the following statements.
Some years ago, an Irishman by the name of Burns,
who was perhaps originally a papist, married in this city,
or at least in this section of the United States, a Protest
ant Irish girl from Dublin, whose maiden name was
Walker. About three years ago, the female died in Bal-
timore, leaving three infant children — all girls. In her
last illness, she was repeatedly visited and greatly harass-
ed by one or more of the priests of this city; but she re-
jected all their attempts to proselyte her, and died in the
faith of her fathers. Her dying injunctions — like her
12*
138 CASE OF ELIZA BURNS,
living precepts, were thnther little girls should on no ac-
count be allowed to come under the influence of the po-
pish religion, or its wily ministers, In the house in which
she died, lived an Irish Protestant of advanced age,
named Eliza Gifford ; to whose eare the children were
left by their dying mother — and in whose cafe they re-
mained till her own death ; which occurred on the 21st
day of June 1837.
The Burnses were poor; and Eliza Gifford had little
else than a small annual stipend, of which m .. —
After the death of Mrs. Burns, her husband, who had be-
fore been a gardener in the employment of various per-
sons in and about Baltimore; removed near to Harper's
Ferry — where he took sick and died, about the latter
part of the summer of 1836. He had allowed his little
girls to remain with Eliza Gifford constantly, since their
mother's death; and had as he was able, discharged his
duty as a father, kindly to them — contributing more or
less towards their support. The little property of which
he died possessed, came into the hands of Mrs. Gifford ;
and it and the children remained without question with
her, till her death.
Mrs. Gifford, was a woman of good family in Ireland ;
had received a superior education — and been raised a
lady. In consequence of the troubles in Ireland during
the rebellion, at the close of the last century ; she was re-
duced to want, and deprived of all her relatives. She
was compelled to stand by, and witness the death of her
whole family — who were burned to death in their own
house ; a fate which they suffered in common, with mul-
titudes of other Protestants, at the hands of the priest rid-
den and fanatical mob of Irish papists, in that day of
blood. Her state of mind, in regard to the papacy may
be easily conceived ; nor did she at any time conceal it.
Her chief, if not only means of support of late years, has
been an annuity of about $75 — which she regularly got
from abroad through the house of Alexander Brown and
Sons ; and which, there is some reason to suppose, was
allowed her as a pension by the British government. —
This pittance she nobly shared, for above three years,
with the little orphans whom God had so strangely com-
THE ABDUCTED ORPHAN. 139
mitted to her care; and was to them, as \vc know from
the best \ 11 that a mother could be. During all
this period, not a single Papist in Baltiq
offered to render the least aid in supporting the child: •
nor did any of them manifest the slightest interest in their
welfare — either before or after the death of their lather.
Some short time ago, Mrs. GifTord took sick; and af-
ter an illness somewhat protracted, died. During her
last sickness, she was visited by the Rev. Dr. Henshaw,
and by various other benevolent individual*; and amongst
the rest by Mrs. Keywurth. This lady, had already re-
ceived into her family the eldest of the three orphans,
who had been regularly bound to her husband, at the re-
quest of Mrs. Gifford; and it was the dying request of the
latter, that she should take the charge of the other two
little girls — obtain a suitable place for the second one —
and place the youngest in the orphan school in Mulber-
-treet (which is not papal as yet) until it was old
enough to go to service, and then take it herself. Mrs.
Key worth and her husband are both members of the
Methodist Episcopal church. These facts are proven
by the lady herself — by all who had access to Mrs. Gif-
ford in the last months of her life, and by the eldest child,
with whom we have freely conversed, and who is an in-
telligent girl of ten or twelve years of age. They are
also abundantly confirmed by the followin 2: written state-
ment of Dr. Henshaw, copied by us, from the original, in
the hands of the person to whom he gave it — for a pur-
pose which will be stated presently.
Baltimore, June 22, 1S37.
Mrs. Eliza Gifford, who died yesterday, and has had charge of three
orphan children by the name of Burns, stated to me on her death bed
that she wished the eldest child to remain with Mrs. Kevworth, and de-
sired that a good place might be secured for Fanny, the second child, and
that Elizabeth the youngest, should be placed at the Baltimore Female
Orphan Asylum, in Mulberry street: and furthermore that they should be
educated in the principles of the Protestant Episcopal church.
Signed, J. P. K. HENSHAW.
Eliza Gifford paid the great debt of nature on the 21st
of June ; and about sunrise, on the next morning:, a Pap-
ist woman of the name of Hammond, who resides on
Fell's Point, secretly stole away the two youngest chil-
140 CASE OF ELIZA BURNS,
dren from the house, in which the dead body of their
last earthly protector, still lay unburied ! — Through the
persuasions of a Papist woman living in the house, these
two children had been permitted to remain during the
night, with her; and when next morning they were
called for, Dr. Henshaw, Mrs. Keyworth, and others,
were informed, that this Mrs. Hammond, had come from
the opposite end of the city, and claiming to be u god-
mother" as they called it, to the second child, took tin
both off. The second one she carried to her own house.
The youngest one she so disposed of, that it was early
that morning safely lodged in the Papal Orphan Asylum,
near the cathedral, called we believe, St. Mary's Orphan
Asylum ; into which it was thus privately introduced, as
we have every reason to believe with the connivance, if
not by the aid of Bishop Eccleston, Miss Spaulding,
and Mrs. Luke Tiernan.
Mr. and Mrs. Keyworth, accompanied by other friends,
and in execution of the duty laid upon them by the oft
expressed wishes, and dying injunction of Mrs. Gifford ;
set about ascertaining the fate of the two children, and
if possible, recovering their persons. The eldest one, as
before stated, was already in their charge. After some
enquiry — the facts stated above, were ascertained ; and
the Papists whose names are given, were each repeatedly
visited during the course of the day on Saturday and
Monday succeeding the death of Mrs. Gifford ; by Mr,
and Mrs. Keyworth, Mr. and Mrs. Thorps, Mr. Paul,
and perhaps others. On Monday several of them went
to the Papist Mrs. Hammond — who after much difficulty,
partly by persuasion, partly by the openly expressed
wishes of the child, but chiefly perhaps, by threats of a
legal prosecution for carrying it off, or seducing it away
from its rightful protectors ; was reluctantly induced to
give up the second child, which remains with its proper
friends. Blessed be the God of the helpless orphan, who
has raised up active and efficient friends, for those little
ones, in a land of strangers, amongst whom there dwells
not one individual, having a drop of their blood; and
where they find themselves suddenly environed by so
great snares, dangers, and troubles.
THE ABDUCTED ORPHAN. 141
Mr. Eccleston, Mrs. Tiernan, and Miss Spaulding,
were made of other materials than Mtti, Hammond.
Again and again, were tiny each waited on, by the anx-
ious friends of the little orphan of six or seven jr<
whom sister Bridget, or perhaps sister Clotilda, had al-
ready safely deposited in the secret places of the asylum;
and from which, a word from either of these persons,
would have at once set her free. We cannot forget the
story of Mary Elizabeth Little, which the name of sister
Clotilda recalls. Her case is fully stated in vol. i. pp.
341—2, (December 1835) of the 'Bait. Lit. and Rel.
Magazi?}e; and to elucidate the present subject, the state-
ment of her friends published at that time, is annexed in
a note.* The abduction of children is not a newT busi
♦Mary Elizabeth Little was sixteen years of age, on the 1st
day of July, 1835. Her father died whilst she was an infant, and she
was brought up by her grandmother. The grandmother has been for the
last four years a cripple; is now between seventy and eighty years of age;
and has been dependent on Mary almost exclusively, for personal care
and nursing, for some years. The grandmother, has been residing with
the girl, for some time in Paca street, Baltimore, in the rear of Saint
Mary's Seminary.
Mary Elizabeth Little is an intelligent and affectionate tempered girl,
of good character; and until she became intimate with the Catholics,
was a great comfort to her mother and aged grandmother.
On the 2nd day of September 1835, about day-light, this girl left the
house of her grandmother, and has not since been seen by her or her
mother. Two days after she left the house, the grandmother received a
note from her, dated on the morning she left home, stating that she was
in as decent and safe a place as there was in the city of Baltimore; that
she was to go into the country the next morning, and that when she ar-
rived at the place of her destination she would let her grandmother know,
The mother of the girl went in search of her immediately, enquiring
at several of the Catholic Institutions in the city; but for five or six days
could get no correct information about her child. At length she heard
that she had been sent from the Catholic Orphan School, in Franklin
street, under the care of sister Clotilda. The girl had never been sent to
that school. The mother called on sister Clotilda, who told her that the
girl had come to her with an order for admission into the Institution at
Emmettsburg, from Dr. Deluol, who is the superior of St. Mary's
Seminary, (in this city:) and that she had been sent there by his direc-
tion, in company with a young woman from New York. Since that time
Dr. Deluol has received a letter acknowledging her arrival at Em-
mettsburg.
About ten days after Mary Elizabeth Little left the house of her grand-
mother, she received a note from her dated Sept. 6th, which was brought
to her from Saint Mary's Seminary, but without stating where it was
142 CASE OF ELIZA BURNS,
ness, with some of the ])apists of our city ; but any regu-
lar attempt to reclaim them, we believe La somewhat no-
vel. Indeed we feare the bishop's word for this. For
on being pressed for an order to the asylum for the de-
livery of the child, he not only declared he had DO power
to give it (which nobody credited;) but most solemnly,
and in the deep wonderment pfignoranl im de-
clared he had never had such a request made of him be-
fore! Alack — adasey! to think that wicked Protestants,
should be so silly, as to suppose that nuns and priests,
have not the " sovereignest remedy in the world" for all
the evils of life ; and that the secret recesses of their un-
explored, and unexplorable man-traps and woman traps,
are not the very seats of all the virtues ! Alack-a-day !
The silly wicked Protestants !
Through the greater part of two whole days, the friends
of these abducted children, went backwards and forwards
— to Mr. Eccleston, Mrs. Tiernan, Miss Spaulding, and
the orphan school, over which those individuals are un-
derstood to exercise control. We forbear to comment
on the evasions, the twistings, the petty meanness of Mr.
Eccleston, reported to us, by these worthy persons. We
had hoped, that he had not forgotten, in becoming a Je-
suit, and a sworn vassal of the pope ; that he was once
a gentleman, and a free American. Such also seem to
have been the feelings of Dr. Henshaw in giving Mrs.
Keyworth the note copied above ; and upon the mere
written; in which the girl said she had got a place for life — she had found
a friend — God was her friend — He had opened her eyes — he was hap-
py, &c. &c.
The circumstances of Mrs. Geddes, and the situation of Mary Eliza-
beth Little, her place of abode, and all about her was fully known to
Dr. Deluol. The grand-mother, mother, and uncle of the girl, are
none of them Catholics; were all ignorant of any purpose to carry off
the child until she was privately removed out of their reach — and have
been informed by competent legal advisers, that there is no legal method
to recover the girl, or get redress; inasmuch as, amongst other things,
■he had Attained, before her departure, the age of sixteen, which, by the
laws of Maryland, is mature age in such cases, in females.
The mother, grand-mother, and uncle of Mary Elizabeth Little, de-
clare the lull troth of all the foregoing. Any person having doubts on
the subject, will call on .Mrs. deckles the grand-mother, or on the mo-
ther, or uncle.
Baltimore t Nov. 1835.
THE ABDUCTED ORPHAN*.
143
presentation of which to Mr. Eccleston, tlitMloclor be-
lieved, and doubtless thought lie had reason to believe,
that the child Eliza limns, would be immediately deliv-
ered to her friends. But after all other shifts had been
used u\ vain, all the heads of the school and the church
slipped their necks adroitly out of the case, as responsi-
ble actors; and referred the applicants for justice to a
new and mighty power " behind the throne, greater than
the throne itself."
In the Bait. Lit. and Rel. Magazine for May 1836, is
an account of a Baltimore lawyer, who entered into a
conspiracy with the famous prince Hohenloe, to work a
notable miracle ; which unhappily failed. In the Jan-
uary, March, and November Nos. for 1835 — are accounts
of incidents in the lives of priests De Barth and Deluol;
in which are references to the same remarkable person-
age—as the especial friend of the first named priest, in
trying to extricate him from charges brought by a girl
who had the night mare, and whom he persuaded to be-
lieve herself ridden by her mother's ghost. The same
March No. of 1835, contains another allusion to this il-
lustrious person— as the lawyer on a certain occasion for
one priest Smith, of very famous memory in these parts
as a burner of bibles and forger of wills, in his day. —
Now we have in this unhappy story— the same referee of
all troubled priests, figuring as the grand master of cere-
monies in the finale of the matter.
And who may this renowned advocate be? Ah! reader
it would indeed argue yourself unknown— not to know
Mr. John Scott. A gentleman who having been born
and raised a Protestant, was so fortunate as to discover,
that the right of private judgment, was a burden and
vexation, as well as a sinful figment; and so happy as to
find other persons, modest and competent enough to take
this whole matter off his hands in all his intercourse with
God. A gentleman so sagacious, that while the world
was disputing whether the moon was made of green
cheese or not— discovered by intuition that the Godhead
abides as an object of worship, under the aspect of a
flour wafer! A gentleman so ripe in faith, that he risked
his system of religion, on prince Hohenloe's power to
144 CASE OF ELIZA BURNS.
work a miracle on his own body, at the distance of four
thousand miles; and then when the prince failed, only
remained the more thoroughly convinced of the truth of
that which required no miracle to confirm it! A gentle-
man so consistent in his fidelity, that having espoused
doctrines which seem to poor heretics incapable of be-
lief, and which, as they contradict reason, consciousness,
common sense, and physical sense to boot, must be very
hard to believe; has yet the goodness to act as if they
were very easy to believe; and thus voluntarily surrender-
ing all the honours and advantages of a double apostacy,
countenances by his great example, every thing that or-
dinary men might be ashamed to propound, backward to
avow, or disposed to recant, under the frowns of an in-
credulous world! Illustrious gentleman!— we treasure,
the honour which Protestantism has won by giving birth
to him. Rara avis in turris!. —which for the unlearned
we render, " attorney of Smith and De Barth!" Nigroque
similima signo!— well translated, "final referee in the case
of the abducted child, Eliza Burns?"
As soon as the name of this great lawyer was announ-
ced, the whole case took a new turn. "You must go to
Mr. John Scott;" said Mr. Eccleston, "You must go
to Mr. John Scott" — repeated in succession, Miss Spaul-
ding, Mrs. Tiernan, and the ladies at the orphan school.
And doubtless — every utterance of that name, — clarum,
venerabile — caused a tremor in the nerves, and a palpita-
tion at the hearts, of Mr. and Mrs. Thorps, Mr. and Mrs.
Keyworth — Mr. Paul, and all the rest who heard it. And
to Mr. John Scott they did go. But before doing so, they
went to obtain counsel, if any could be found bold enough
to risk themselves against papal prejudices, insolence and
dictation. They went also, to ask redress of the legal
tribunals of the commonwealth ; who thank God, have
not yet learned the lesson of "mother church," that the
temporal sword is subject to the spiritual one, and that it
is wielded only in subordination to it. They were suc-
cessful in both applications. Messrs. R. Moale, E. L.
Finley and II. D. Evans, readily agreed to advocate their
righteous cause; and on the Monday following the death
of Mrs. Gifford, the orphan's court, having heard the
THE ABDUCTED ORPHAN. 145
whole case, promptly, and lo their great honour decided
it. The second child which had been secretly carried to
Fell's Point, by Mrs. Hammond, and recovered as al-
ready stated, was allowed to remain in the possesion of
her friends, and hound to Mr. Paul. The youngest one,
which Mrs. Hammond declared she had carried to St.
Mary's Asylum, and which Mr. Eccleston, Mrs. Tier-
nan, Miss Spaulding, and the sisters at that asylum, ad-
mitted was there, and which the orphan's court was duly
informed was then retained by force, after having been
abducted by fraud; this child, the court placed under the
care of Mr. Paul, by appointing him its guardian.
Fortified by competent advice and armed with legal
power, Mr. Paul demanded his young ward again, from
all the parties who seemed to have a hand in her detention;
and again the answer was — "go to Mr. John Scott." To
Mr. John Scott accordingly did the friends of the poor
child go. To Mr. John Scott did they go; and exhibit
the legal evidence that Mr. Paul was the guardian of the
abducted orphan. But what was "Hecuba to him or he
to Hecuba," that Mr. John Scott should swerve from his
accustomed mood, at such a case! What is law — what
is justice — what are the bonds of social life — what are
the orphan's tears — or the dying prayers of parents and
honoured benefactors; nay what should they be, to a true
son of uholy mother" — if her commands or interest
point, in another direction? Mr. John Scott if a true
son of "holy mother," believes as she believes; and she
belives as he believes; and they both believe alike! Mr.
John Scott therefore was hardly to blame, for being rude
to applicants for restitution, in a case so difficult, and so
very dubious; nor even for open and contemptuous dis-
regard of the decisions of one of the judicial tribunals
of his country, in a case where his church deemed her-
self interested — and had at least deeply implicated her
character. Mr. John Scott, positively refused to cause,
or allow the delivery of the abduoted and secreted child,
to its proper friends, and legal guardian; announced his
resolute purpose, to contest the matter to the farthest ex-
remity— and by every possible means;- and discharged
13
146 CASE OF ELIZA BURNS;
the applicants for redress at his hands-— with little less
than contumely.
Here we pause for the present. When the cause has
been decided by the proper tribunals — we shall record
that decision, and detail so much of the intermediate pro-
cess and facts, as may seem proper. Mean-time the case
as already developed presents a subject of most srrious
consideration. Are the papists of this town, th<
of us all in such a sense that our children and wards can
be stolen from their friends .before our bodies are buried
— and so secreted that those friends cannot recover them?
Then it is high time to look about for a remedy against
such a despotism. Are the papal institutions and func-
tionaries both male and female, vested with authority to
catch up people's children wherever they can get access
to them; and by right or against right, retain them by
fraud or violence, under their control? If so, it were
well to look needfully after our little ones, and to have
an eye to those pretended asylums which may be so
readily converted into prisons. Are the persons of free
citizens, of whatever age, liable to be taken into custody;
and there held under the secret control of Mr. Eccleston,
and Mr. John Scott; until the tardy and uncertain steps
of law shall find relief, or lagging far behind its vigilant
despisers, fail of ever reaching the secret cell of the
captive? In such a case, we shall provide for our own
freedom as well as safety; and those of us who are so
often the objects of personal threats, must take care, that
those who have this power to oppress, shall be held re-
sponsible in their own fashion, for its exercise. We say
to Mr. Eccleston, and to Mr. John Scott, and to all the
rest of the wire-workers, in this and similar cases; that
it were well for them to be careful of their proceedings.
We know the power of the priests over their own people;
and the moment it shall be manifest that the laws cannot
protect us, from the tools of the ecclesiastics; from that
moment, we become not only of right, but of necessity,
our own protectors; and in caring for our liberty, our
rights and our safety— we shall hold those who really
have the power to injure us, responsible for the acts of
all their subordinate agents. We begin to be weary of
THE ABDUCTED ORPHAN. 147
hearing threats, which we are convinced nothing but a
suitable opportunity is lacking, to sec enforced. And we
tell Mr. EcclestOil fairly, that lie will be held responsible
for whatever evil shali befall us, or our friends in the
course of this controversy, from the hands, or by the
procurement of his dependants. We fear them not, but
we knowT them. We utter no threats against any man;
but we understand fully our real posture. And such
cases as the present, render it necessary to say to others,
that we well understand theirs also.
FINALE OF THE CASE OF ELIZA BURNS.
We promised to report the issue of the case of the or-
phan child; the narrative of whose abduction by certain
papists of Baltimore, occupies the preceding pages. —
It has been our purpose and earnest wTish, to lay some-
what minutely before the public, the steps taken in this
trial, and the conduct of all the parties connected with it,
up to the issue of the matter. But we have been so
much pressed by other engagements, and have found so
much difficulty in arranging a detailed narrative, which
should be at once of sufficient interest to command atten-
tion, and so accurate as to forbid just complaint ; that on
the whole, we have been obliged to pass it by for the pre-
sent. Nor indeed is such a detail of more than second-
ary importance. For it is sufficiently manifest, by our
own experience and that of other Protestants in this coun-
try for a few years past; that the services of able counsel
can always be had, whenever a resort to the courts of jus-
tice is considered adviseable against the audacious acts of
the papists; and therefore the information to be derived
from the first successful attempts to check them by legal
process, is the less important to the Christian public.
We will take leave, however to say, that the thanks
of the Christians of this city are due to Hugh Davy
Evans, Esq., for his generous and successful efforts in
the case now under consideration. E. L. Findlay,
Esq., was prevented, only by severe indisposition, from
taking an active part in the case : and Randall Moale
Esq., who was the first counsel employed, abandoned
148 CASE OF ELIZA BURNS;
the cause at a very early stage of it ; for reasons, which
although we are informed of them, through those to whom
he communicated them, at least in part; we presume he
would prefer stating himself; and in regard to which our
reverence for the noble profession to which we were bred,
makes us prefer to be silent.
Of all the classes of men who adorn modern society,
and to whom liberty and civilization are indebted for
their triumphs and their security; there is S< ar< ely one
more deservedly dear to mankind, than the legal profes-
sion. Nothing surely, is a more radical proof of igno-
rance and malignity combined, than those sneers which
are too often heard, against a profession wThich has been
in all ages, the bulwark of all the temporal interests of
man, and which has produced from amongst its ranks
more glorious names, than all others united. In our own
country especially, the discerning eye of society has
sought and rejoiced to confer on the enlightened mem-
bers of this noble profession; the choicest and most mul-
tiplied evidences of public gratitude and applause. And
faithful history will record, that they well deserved the
nation's confidence. For however unworthy particular
individuals may be, and however extensive the evil in-
fluence of their vices; as a body, these men have been
the benefactors of the human race, and as a profession
they have well fulfilled the prime duty of their condition,
namely, to redress the wrongs, and to protect the rights
of all.
The laws of all states are designed to be, and in all
free and civilized states really are, adequate to the pro-
tection of every citizen in the enjoyment of all his rights;
and to the restraint or punishment of the wicked, for all
their injuries to their fellow men. Deeply impressed with
the force of these truths, we have from the beginning of
this papal controversy, advised all who have been injured
by the audacious incroachments of the Romanists, to re-
sort to the laws for redress. And so, when the papists
have threatened any with legal prosecutions — our advice
has uniformly been, that protestants should keep them-
selves strictly within the lines of truth — and the laws ;
and then court, rather than shun prosecution. Not that
THE ABDUCTED ORPH 149
we would contend; at all v en for our rights; far
- that we would wantonl j agj ap-
our enen * fcnd
this con ; and the utm nd public
that can be given to I - and injurious proceedings
of the ] orthetnith. P testants gen-
erally do not understand the nature of our l< em,
in regard to the sill v and wicked pretentions of the Ro-
manists; and therefore, it is good to show them how
strong our c Papists are still more ignorant of
the extent to which our laws go, in frowning upon their
vices and follies; and it is exceedingly well to have them
enlightened, and brought into a salutary terror of the
civil tribunals, as well a* of public sentiment. In short,
the whole of society needs to be taught, that crime is
not winked at by the laws, because wicked men call it
religion; that truth is not to be put to shame in our courts,
because bigots call it persecution; and that nonsense and
wickedness, are not entitled to public reverence, because
the fiftieth part of the people choose to call a cake of
flour God, and debauched ignoramuses his vicars upon
earth.
No instance has occurred where either the Papists or
the Christians of this country, have brought any part of
the momentous subjects in contest between them, into
the courts of the nation, in which our cause has not been
decidedly advanced thereby. We suppose, it will be a
long day before the case of Duparque vs. Rice, will be for-
gotten; or the papists cease to remember that an intelli-
gent jury valued the character of the priests and nuns of
Kentucky at one cent ! This result is always to be ex-
pected where the laws have free course, and justice is im-
partially administered; because, all the institutions of the
country are based in reason, and assume the truth of
Christianity. In our courts in this city — for example,
when the representatives of deceased papists — as has
often been the case — put into their accounts, monies paid
to the priests for prayers and masses for the dead: — what
do our courts know about purgatory? Of course nothing:
— So also, when Christians are insulted or beaten, be-
cause of want of what papists choose to consider, suita-
13*
150 CASE OF ELIZA BURNS;
ble reverence, to their superstitious rites; what do the
courts know about transuhstantiation ? Absolutely no-
thing.---Men may be ridiculous if they please; but ob-
serve, they are not at liberty to bind others, either by
force or intimidation, to be silent as to their follies---nor
to embrace them— nor even to appear to do so. The
papists need to learn this lesson.
It was precisely in view of these principles, that we
advised the friends of Eliza Burns to • the
courts for the recovery of the abducted child. To con-
sider Mr. bishop Eccleston and all his abettors, male and
female, legal and private — simply as so many citizens ;
and to hold them all responsible for the performance of
an act wThich no gentleman or Christian ever should
have had any hand in. We thank God for inclining their
hearts to followT that counsel. We thank him for raising
up friends of the little orphan, in this land of strangers.
We thank him for giving our land faithful public servants
— upright judges, and able and honest lawyers. We
thank him for discomfiting the counsels of wicked men
— and snatching this poor child, from certain ruin, as a
brand from the midst of the burning. We thank him
for having given us courage to execute our duty even at
the risk of our lives; — and above all, we thank him for
the complete success of the cause of the righteous, and
the confounding of the machinations of his subtle enemies.
The child, Eliza Burns, has been rescued, by due process
of law, from the hands of the papists who abducted her;
restored to the custody of her proper and I an fid friends;
and is now (Nov. 1831) in the Orphan School, in .Mul-
berry street, to which the dying injunctions of her gener-
ous protector, Eliza Gifford, — the friend of her deceas-
ed parents and the support of her helpless infancy, had
consigned her.
All who love God and the orphan children of his people
— will rejoice at this issue. It is an event in the progress
of the papal controversy, that is worthy of deep considera-
tion. It erects another barrier against the flood of cruel
superstition, which is coining in upon us. Let us re-
member, that while we organize public sentiment and
enlighten the popular mind, the courts of the country
THE ABDUCTED ORPHAN. 1M
•are open to us for protection and redress. We wUk
injure no one; therefore it is no terror to us, to say the
laws will restrain us. But we contend with men ferocious
in spirit, indifferent to the means by which they e::
their purposes — and bursting with malignant and un-
bridled passions. It is therefore of immense importance
to us to teach such people that the laws will punish
their misdeeds, and redress their injuries inflicted on the
innocent. It is vital to our cause that these people
comprehend at once that we will hold them responsible
both to exposure and punishment in the courts of law;
and that the figment of non-resistence has no place
whatever in our code. AVe know out rights, and mean
to enjoy them.
We have spoken of the personal risk we have been
obliged to encounter in this affair. We will be more
specific; and if other persons find occasion for offence in
what we are about to say, they must charge their own in-
solent folly with their mortification.
It is perfectly known to all the world, that in all ages,
the papal sect has reasoned a thousand fold more with
the rack, the gibbet, the dungeon and the stake; than
with the common instruments of moral evidence. Their
first and most common answer to all the remonstrances
of all God's people in all ages; has been the very same
uttered by the Jews to our Lord. Crucify him, crucify
him, is their standard argument, in every age, and in an-
swer to every antagonist. When they have had power,
they have openly killed people, in the name of the laws.
When they have not had the entire rule---they have killed
them by mobs and organized violence, as now, and for
ages past in Ireland; where for six hundred years, proba-
bly not one week has passed without witnessing the
murder of some Protestant, by a band of Papists. When
they have feared the open opposition of their victims, they
have assassinated, sometimes a whole people in a day,
as during the Sicilian Vespers, and the massacre of Saint
Bartholomeic; at others, only their chief enemies, as Henry
III., and Henry IV. of France, the prince of Orange,
the prince of Conde and others without number.
We have therefore known from the first moment we
152 CASE OF ELIZA BURNS)
entered into this controversy, that Ave took our lives in
cur bands when we did SOJ and it has always been in our
view a probable thing, that we should be, some day, put
to death by some myrmidon of the priests. We have
received numherle8S proofs of their malignity; weekly
threats against our life; and all kinds of insults-— slanders
and abuse, have been incessantly heaped upon us, in
public, and in private. Our printers have been threaten-
ed; our friends insulted; our dependents tampered with;
Our private correspondence pried into; our dwelling beset
in the night season; our private walks watched; and every
species of annoyance set on foot, to brow-beat, frighten,
and silence us. We have even been dogged into foreign
lands; and during our abode in Europe in 1836 and '7
rumours of our death, by poison, by accident and by
violence, were repeatedly circulated in this country; and
these reports wrere always found to oiiginate wTith some
of the most active papists in this city. In the expecta-
tion of our visiting Rome, a likeness was surreptitiously
obtained in this city, and sent thither! For what use let
the authors of the act explain. And in the holy city it-
self, which God's providence in a singular manner pre-
vented us from reaching; a friend has told us that minute
enquiries were made of him, apparently in mere curiosity
howevjer, by an Irish ecclesiastic attached to the Propa-
ganda; enquiries indicating a most suspicious acquaint-
ance writh our history and movements, — and under the
circumstances, altogether remarkable.
We have now to state, that in consequence of the pub-
lication of our former article, relative to the case of
Eliza Burns, the malignity of the papists has risen to its
heighth; and that since the decision of the case in favour
of the friends of that child, open and repeated threats
against our lives, have been made by responsible persons
in the streets of our city. We will at present give the
names of two of these persons only.
A young man, who called himself Tiernan, and whose
Christian name we believe to be Charles, called at the
printing office of this Magazine, and after some conver-
sation wTith our printer, became enraged and declared the
fact to be within his knowledge, that the life of one or
THE ABDUCTED ORPHAN. 153
other of the editors of the Magazine should paj the forfeit
of their conduct in the case of Eliza Burns. I pre-
vent all possibility of mistake, the senior editor assumes
the Responsibility of the present and former articles, on
this subject. But he utterly repudiates the conduct at-
tributed to him, by this deluded young man. He declared
his cause of offence to be the improper introduction of
his mother's name, into the former article, and our inde-
corous use of it. Now we expressly deny having said one
single disrespectful word of Mrs. Tieman, or any other
private female whatever; and we as expressly deny having
referred to any private conduct of any person whatever.
We have abundant evidence of the private corruption of
many priests, which we have declined using, simply be-
cause it chieily concerned their personal characters, rather
than their religious system; and our quarrel is onl) with
the latter. We have sedulously spoken of famales, even
when obliged to use their names in treating of their
public and official acts, with the utmost forbearance; as
our whole pages testify.
Mrs. Tiernan, was one of the official actors in an
event, which we have felt obliged to lay before the pub-
lic; and of her official conduct only have we spoken, and
that in terms, of as perfect respect, as are compatible
with decided disapproval. We deeply reverence the.
most enthusiastic feelings which a son can cherish for a
mother; and therefore we take this trouble to explain, that
young Mr. Tiernan is utterly mistaken in point of fact.
As to his threats, we heed not, of course, any such things,
come from what quarter they may. Mr. Tiernan — had
better be careful, how he is prompt to shed blood; and read
once more the laws of God, and of his country on that
subject, before he attempt that, which end as it may, will
hardly be pleasant in the remembrance of it.
The other individual to whom we have reference, is a
certain Gexl. Williamson, son of a Protestant, and
brother of a priest; himself also an amateur member of
the church of Rome> and a mere volunteer, in this quar-
rel. Mr. Tiernan, we pity, and in some degree sympa-
thise with; while we respect the pretence of his anger. —
Genl. Williamson, has no claims, but on our contempt
154 CASE OF ELIZA BURNS;
and defiance; which nothing, but our Christian princi-
ples prevents us from hurling at him.
"He would Lynch us." — "He would cut ofTour ears —
but for the fear of* soiling himself!" — "He would" in
his own refined speech, "hire a big nigger to chas-
tise us!" —
Now sir, let us fairly say to you — you are not wise, in
this matter. First, there are those who would be very
glad, at the least leasable opportunity, to hold you re-
sponsible for these threats, in a way, which we take it
for granted would be very unpleasant to you; as it would
assuredly be most painful to us, to be the occasion of
damage to you. You have excused yourself by saying
that as we are preachers, you cannot challenge us ; and
therefore justify your vulgarity, on that pretence. But
remember sir, all the Protestants on earth, do not preach;
and therefore unless you are very eager to get yourself
into trouble, we beg you to guard your tongue a little.
But in the second place, we entreat you to be careful,
least you talk yourself into so great a rage, that you
should finally lose all prudence; or finally persuade your-
self that you can, not only abuse, but chastise us with
personal security. Nowr if you should accomplish this
feat, it would add little to your military glory; and if per-
chance you failed in it, it would be a sad mortification to
you. And we suggest to you not to forget, that the
■writer of this article w^as bred a man of the world, and
is therefore not entirely ignorant of your kind; that altho'
he is a preacher \ he claims also to be both a gentleman
and a Kentuckian; and that being a thorough Protestant,
he has small confidence in any imposition of hands. But
above all, sir, it were wise for you to recollect before you
commence the shedding of social blood, that in this city,
your sect numbers but one in Jive, and in this nation not
one in Jiffy!! Mark, sir, — this prophecy-— we make it
deliberately: The first drop of Protestant blood shed in
this controversy, will rouse a spirit in this broad repub-
lic which neither of us will live to see allayed; and which
in its results must sweep the very name of papists from
the land. Surely no madness is so great, as for one
man to expect tb destroy fifty, in open combat ! Better,
THE ABDUCTED ORPHAN. 155
sir, keep cool— -digest your wrath,— -leam manners, and
let alone affairs with which you arc no way called to med-
dle; and people whose serious business as well as inclina-
tion and duty, lead them entirely out of your track.
A word in the ear of Mr. Eccleston,— so called
arch-bishop of Baltimore. Does your eminence imagine,
we or our friends to be so silly, as not see the hand of
Joab, in this business ? Power has its troubles as well
as its sweets. Sir, you must keep all bullies— great and
small, off our backs. We turn not aside, for small or
great; it is the papal superstition we war against, not pa-
pal ladies, gentlemen, nor generals. We hold the priests
as a body, and you as their head, responsible at the bar
of public opinion,— -and at every other bar to which we
shall see it to be our duty to carry the citation— not only
for the fatal system taught by them; but for the personal
injuries inflicted by consequence of their principles, and
in virtue of their sanction— if not in obedience to their
orders. Your subject, priest Gildea, once expressed sur-
prise, that the virgin Mary had not killed us. Now two
devotees seek our blood. In all these, and every other
case— our sole offence has been, the exposure of the ab-
surd and pernicious dogmas,— and vicious conduct of
the priests. Gentlemen, if you love your own lives, you
will show wisdom in respecting ours. If you would
understand your true policy,— silence your street brawl-
ers; for their threats are lost on us— and bring upon your
cause public abhorrence.
POSTSCRIPT TO THE CASE OF ELIZA BURNS.
We are obliged by a sense of justice to an individual
who says we have circulated a false report regarding him,
and possibly we may have done unintentional wrong; to
return again, to this case— so full of hope to every Pro-
testant heart, and so fatal to the character and designs
of Papists. Let the two following papers speak for
themselves.
To the Conductors of the )
Baltimore Literary and Religious Magazine: )
T am informed that my name is used in an article in your Magazine of
this month, and that it is therein asserted that I called upon the editor, in
156 CASE OF ELIZA BURNS;
reference to a piece which appeared in one of your previous numbers. —
The assertion is gratuitous and not founded on fact. — I did not at any
time deem the piece referred to, of sufficient importance to require any
notice or attention,
Your.-*, &c.
Charles Tiernan.
Lexington st., November 7th, 1837.
A young man called at my office during the month of October (to the
best of my recollection) and asked me if there was there the last two
numbers of the Literary and Religious Magazine, when I replied in the
affirmative, and at his request I presented them to him. lie sat down
complacently and commenced reading, occasionally making observations,
all of which I do not recollect as I was employed — However, I recollect
distinctly of his stating that lie had heard of a design, or recommenda-
tion of some persons to Lynch the editors. On my replying that such
effects always argued a bad cause, he justified it, and said he thought it
right. He said the Literary and Religious Magazine was of a similar
character with the Castigator, and some other infamous papers. To
which I replied that that was not so — as the editors were both gentlemen
of respectability in society, and openly inserted their names in front of
the Magazine. He became angered and stated that he "heard a person
that morning swear by the eternal G-d that he would put a ball in him,"
(Mr. Breckinridge) I replied that I was only the printer of the paper,
but as he heard such an assertion made, J required his name. He stated
it was Tiernan, and that the Mrs. Tiernan whose name was mentioned in
one of the Magazines, associated with the relation given of the abduc-
tion of Eliza Burns, was his mother, and "by the God that made me
(him) one of those (pointing to the names of Messrs. Breckinridge and
Cross on the cover) should answer for using it (Mrs, T's name)
there," — walking out as he was speaking, — I inferred from his manner,
that he was the individual who would put the ball in Mr. Breckinridge. —
Mr. Tiernan did not say whether his Christian name was Charles, nor
give any name — nor do I know his name. I deemed it my duty, (under
those circumstances) to tell Mr. B. and as Mr. Charles Tiernan in a note
to the editors says that the assertion that "I (he) called on the editors
relative to a piece which appeared, is gratuitous, and not founded on
fact," I am called upon to make this statement. — The inference is
plain, that it was a brother if not Mr. Charles Tiernan. I would know
him again if I saw him.
There were two other persons present.
November 1837. R. J. Matchett.
The reader will see at once from Mr. Matchett's state-
ment, that all we have formerly said, and more, was true
to the letter. We did no more than express our belief, as
to the Christian name of the person, who called himself
Tiernan. We will now say, that we arrived at that be-
lief, after considerable enquiry, and as we then supposed
satisfactory information. We insert the foregoing note
of Mr, Charles Tiernan with great pleasure; and sincere-
THE ABDUCTED ORPHAN. 157
ly regret having been led into any mistake — if indeed
that has been the ruse.
We are not more assured now, that this note is from
the veritable author, than we were formerly that we named
the person rightly; for then we had responsible persons
as our informants, and now we have only a note left at
our office, by we know not whom. Again, it will be re-
membered, that we never said Mr. Tiernan had "called
upon the editor;" it will also be observed, that this is the
specific matter denied in the note. There may be a mere
play on words here. Or the note may not be from him
whose name is to it. Or the first individual may have
given a false name to Mr. Matchett.
The probability however seems to be, that the present
note is from Mr. Charles Tiernan; that we were misin-
formed in calling the person who honoured us with the
former notice, by his given name; and that it was an-
other member of the family and not himself, who made
the threats in question. Supposing the facts to be thus
—we repeat, that we publish this note wTith much pleasure,
and sincerely express our regret at the supposed and un-
intentional mistake; if as we have already said, any has
occurred.
It will be observed however, that Mr. Charles Tier-
nan's reason for not having "called upon the editor" is
frankly given; namely, that he "did not at any time deem
the piece referred to, of sufficient importance to require
any notice or attention." Therefore of course, whenever
we shall be able to write an article which he shall think
worthy of notice, we may expect a call, perhaps a bullet,
or possibly a Lynching, at the hands of Mr. Charles
Tiernan. And in the meantime, the other Mr. Tiernan
who did deem the piece already published, worthy of his
"notice and attention;" may at his leisure, still favor us
with a call, a ball, or a Lynching; even if General
Williamson, and his "big nigger" should let us escape.
Still we are glad to publish this note. For it puts to
rest the hope over wThich the priests have chuckled, of
embroiling us with laymen; and about temporal and per-
sonal affairs. You have outwitted yourselves gentlemen;
and God has once more, for the hundredth time", deliver-
14
158 CASE OF ELIZA BURNS, &.C.
ed us out of your hands.— Whatever may befall us here*
after, let it be forever remembered, that the preterm t
our having offended a son by speaking improperly- of his
mother— is a fabrication and contrivance of the priests-
nailed down and finished. The son comes voluntarily
forward and says he took no offence — deemed our article
not requiring any notice. Remember that gentlemen.
See how a plain and honest course has confounded you.
See how God has turned your machinations to your own
exposure.
Mrs. Tiernan, is known to this whole community, as
a most decided Catholic. Very well; she has a right to
be so. But she is also known as one of their most active
official members, in various societies, institutions, schools,
&c. &c. Her private conduct, rights and duties, are
matters with wThich we have never meddled, and never
will. Her official and public acts, we suppose are on the
same footing as those of all other females, of equal con-
dition in life; and therefore we cannot be deterred from
taking such notice of them, as public necessity may re-
quire. Being a female, she shall never receive from us,
any treatment of which any lady could justly complain.
But if she performs official and public acts — she must ex-
pect them to be respectfully canvassed, and where need-
ful decidedly condemned; as for example, in the official
connivance at the abduction of an orphan Protestant child.
After all, we have feared there may be foul play in the pre-
sent denial; that the individual who called at our office was
Mr. Charles Tiernan; and that he has sent us this note,
under the pressure of public sentiment roused against
him by his former conduct. We express this suspicion
with pain: but we fear on sufficient authority. We do
not know, even by eye-sight any Tiernan on earth; and
are therefore liable to be many ways imposed on in the
whole affair. But we are strongly assured by persons
who ought to know, that the Mr. Tiernan who did threat-
en our life, is the one who has been of late years residing
much out of this city, perhaps in New Orleans; and that
he is really named Charles. In that case what are we
to think of his present conduct?
One thing at least rejoices our hearts: the orphan
child abducted and secreted, is redeemed from destruc-
BISHOPS FULT , BISHOPS EMPTY.
tion. Thanks be to God Hitting us to have had
v in this blessed •••
ir memo sed by the enemies of God,
the grateful fc phan will be like -
upon our tomb. When the wicked revile our name, the
oppressed and the forsaken will point to our resting place
and bless the God of truth, who inclined and enabled us
to do them good — at so great risk, and amid such lei
ous opposition. And in the hour of death and the day
of judgment, — a faithful Saviour will not forget that we
have not held our life dear, that we might rescue one of
his little one<. W< have neyer*een the face of this poor
child; but we humbly beseech the Lord that we may meet
her in heaven.
NUMBER XVII.
BISHOPS FULL, 0*1*10, BISHOPS EMPTY.
We are informed by Tacitus that it was a custom of
the ancient Germans, to decide all important questions
twice; once namely, when sober, and once afterwards
when drunk. By this means, they supposed they w-
sure to sret at the true solution of every difficult subject;
for if both the drunk and sober decision was the same, it
might be safely followed: if they were different — either
might be followed; if opposite, a medium might be ob-
served.
The conduct of the dignitaries of the papal church in
this country, very often reminds us of this habit of our
ancestors; and we know not that a more notable instance
of it has lately occurred, than is furnished by, f John.
Bishop oY.. commonly called Mr. England, as his sayings
and doings are reported in the Baltimore American—
from the Norfolk Beacon-— on the occasion of a fourth
of July (1S37) dinner at Charleston. South Carolina.
160 BISHOPS FULL, Versus, BISHOPS EMPTY.
We do not by any means insinuate, that this prelate
—any more than the rest of his brethren,— -is more than
a tolerable judge of good drink; far from it. For bishop
England's remarkably robust, ruddy, and plethoric habit,
is proof enough of the fidelity with which he observes
the generous fasts of a church, whose lent is kept on the
richest productions of nature; and most clearly estab-
lishes the excellence of her religious observances as
dietetic rules. Heartily do we wish him long life- — many
refreshing lents— and many feasts on returning anniver-
saries of our national independence.
Considering that so large a part of the religion of the
papal church consists in "meats and drinks"-— it is not to
be wondered at, that the dignitaries of that sect, should
be so prompt to eat and to drink, to the honour and glory
of all unusual subjects. We observe that Mr. Ecclestcn
has been down to Georgetown, to feast to the success of
the Jesuit college there, on the occasion of its late anni-
versary;— as well as that of the Nuns' school for girls, in
the same place. Mr. Eccleston is doubtless aware that
his immediate predecessor in the See of Baltimore, was a
superb host and most admirable feaster; and it were to be
regretted that the fame of our good city, or of the peo-
ple, should suffer in a matter so important.
It is curious to observe that whether feasting or fasting,
these gentlemen never for a moment lose sight oi' the
great object for which they live, namely, the advance-
ment of the interests of the papacy. At the feast at
Georgetown, Mr. Eccleston attended as Jlrch-bishop; and
in his robes officially conferred on the young gentlemen
and ladies of the two institutions there, the honours and
rewards wTon in their previous course of study. Observe
this, reader: whatever Papists and their Protestant friends
may say to the contrary, every institution of learning in
which priests and nuns teach, is a place meant and used
for the grand, if not the sole purpose, of proselyting: and
is as real a part of the papal sect as one of their churches
is; and all the degrees and honours there conferred, are
papal, far more than they an4 literary. When these peo-
ple are erecting their schools and obtaining patron,
from credulous Protestants, by false statements about
BISHOPS FULL, VerSUS* BISHOPS EMPTY. 161
their spirit, intent and compass, they remind us of the
Germans when sober; hut when W6 find all the officers
of the college at Georgetown, and divers other pri
— with their archbishop — in his robes at their head, open-
ly feasting and distributing rewards, en papist, we have
then a picture of the other and honester, if not so deco-
rous consultation.
We learn from a description of the college exercises
and the priests3 least at Georgetown — that a number of
Protestant gentlemen of some distinction attended both:
and the friendly hand which prepared this account for
the National Intelligencer — appears to have exerted him-
self especially to do justice to the excellent manner in
which these guests as well as the regular body, perform-
ed their parts in the eating and drinking. Mr. Eccles-
ton made a speech over his wine; Mr. Mulledy the pre-
sident of the college, another; Mr. George Washing-
ton Parke Custis, delivered a very good one — rather
long; Mr. Seaton of the Intelligencer, did himself jus-
tice in his address: and Major General McComb — with a
point and brevity peculiarly military, and that dignity and
pathos so eminently characteristic of a great dramatist,
honoured the company both with a speech and toast. —
All the wrhile the marine band, belonging to the United
States and stationed at the navy yard in Washington —
regaled the company with excellent music: and the young
gentlemen who had figured on the stage before dinner,
not only partook of the good cheer, but did a portion of
the regular toasting, speaking and drinking.
It is sufficiently humiliating to see any of the institu-
tions of learning in the country, prostituted to the super-
stitious and selfish ends, of the most ignorant and cor-
rupt body of ecclesiastics that can be found in the na-
tion. It is shameful enough to behold these men, seiz-
ing occasions of such solemn and overpowering interest
to the young persons under their charge, to set before
them examples of "wine bibbing," in circumstances of
great public notoriety, if not indecency. It is woful
enough to behold the priests of a system, calling itself
religious, with their archbishop at their head, feasting,
drinking, toasting and spouting, with military music, on
14*
162 BISHOPS FULL, Versus, BISHOPS EMPTY.
public occasions; and without the least show of compunc-
tion, getting up scenes which aic utterly unbecoming the
occasion, and the professed character ot all the parties.
It is truly humiliating to see that such scenes and per-
sons, are publicly praised in our leading political news-
papers; even those which pretend to be, and perhaps
are on most subjects, regardful of public morals and pro-
priety. Dai there is to be found in these public revels,
Something still more calculated to alarm and as1
every true friend of the country, and of truth and liberty.
General McComb after being toasted — made a sp<
and drank, u The health of the Pope, and prosperity to
the Catholic religion"
Mr. Seaton, after having been toasted, and after list-
ening to a high panegyric on his journal — made a speech
in reply — in which, he bestowed unmeasured praises on
the papal institutions at Georgetown — and wound up by
toasting the Jesuits!! An order — devoted (said he, in
substance) for three centuries to religion and learning!
Now what are wre to expect next? — The highest judi-
cial officer of the national government is a papist. The
General in chief of our armies, comes out on a public
occasion — over his wine cups, as the guest of revelling
priests, and drinks prosperity to the Catholic reli
whose success, necessarily involves the ruin of the
try and the overthrow of her institutions and liberties. —
The leading opposition journalist at the seat of govern-
ment, praises the Jesuits in a speech ; and then insults
the nation, by proposing as a sentiment, a society which
has been polluted by every crime, convicted of every en-
ormity—and whose very name, the synonyma of all. that
is atrocious, he did not dare to utter ! At the same mo-
ment, the head of this superstition is present, officially to
receive these adhesions; and the whole conspiracy is
steeped in alcohol and baptised in strong drink!
These revelations over their wine-cups, are as import-
ant as they are fearful; and the whole case goes to show,
that not only the public press is to a shameful and dan-
gerous extent, under the influence of the papists of this
country; but that the men who are in high places, and
those who are seeking to reach them, are under the
BISHOPS FULL, VeftUSj BISHOPS L\MFTY\ 163
grasping control, to a degree— -which they themselves
do not confess, except in the fulsomness of subservient
Battery, or in the honest garulity of a half-done revel. Jt
is manifest besides, thai the papists not only clearly un-
derstand the secret of their influence— but thai they be-
gin to make open show of that influence itself; which
they have won at first, by the perfect concert with which
they have all acted together, on all occasions— and with
reference to every subject; and now they still further ma-
ture and extend it, by showing in these public forms that
they really posses it.
There is no alternative but for Protestants to resist the
pressing dangers which threaten us, by a similar concert
amongst ourselves, and an enlightened devotion to our
own principles. If Mr. Seaton does really wish to see
the Jesuits restored to all their ancient powers, and to
behold the earth cursed again by their crimes and cruel-
ties; it is good that the readers of the Intelligencer have
found it out. If General McComb, really desires to see
the papal superstition extend over the land and blight all
that is fair and excellent in it; it is fortunate for that de-
ceived country, that he has revealed his true and secret
inclinations. Let true Protestants note these declara-
tions, as signs of the evil days wThich are coming upon
the land. Let them begin in time to resist an influence
so seductive, so fatal, and already so extended. We have
no fears for the final result; for this terrible superstition
is destined to absolute and no distant destruction. But
we mourn over the growth of error; we bewrail the defec-
tion of the weakest of our brethren; we prefer that evil
should be resisted in the beginning, and so put down at
once and without commotion or bloodshed: we pray to
God, and we labour earnestly, that the Protestants may
see in time where things are tending; and not permit them
to run on, till in mere self-defence they will be obliged to
take arms in their hands and put down by force, what
can now be easily extirpated by moral means. Between
the use of one or other of these means, and the final ex-
tinction of liberty and protestantism in this country, there
is no choice. The papal sect, first crawls at the feet,
•and licks the dust, if need require; it then stands up,
164 BISHOPS FULL, VerSUS, BISHOPS EMPTY.
and carefully steals abroad under the cover of twi-light ;
alter that it revels in open day — and celebrates its de-
bauches on the house tops; then it tramples into the dust
the bleeding members of its first credulous friends — and
raves in madness over the moral desert it has created;
then human nature reacts under insupportable sufferings,
and the victim reeks his vengeance on his pitiless tyrants;
then for a brief space liberty and reason and truth reign;
and then the fearful round commences again* Thus
has it been for long ages. Thus has the career of this
bloody system heretofore progressed amongst us, up to
its present posture; and at this moment, it is as easy to
indicate its position, and its next act, as to read on the
dial the sun's degree.
But let us return to the other case of a full against an
empty bishop — furnished by Mr. jJohn, Bishop. The
newspapers of our city, are veiy shy of saying any thing
in favour of Protestants, and not less prompt to say all
that can be culled in favor of Papists. For ten years
past, every Protestant in Baltimore has known this; and
yet there is no daily paper here, that is really Protestant.*
The American was right in publishing this toast, and the
speech of Mr. England, at the Charleston dinner; and
we are glad of it. But why did it refuse to publish when
repeatedly solicited by old subscribers, and by as respecta-
ble men as any in the city, the letter to Dr. Wardlaw,
written from Paris a year ago, by the author of these
pages? A letter as purely and thoroughly national, as
could be prompted by a heart, out-and-out, American.
*This was published three years before General Duff Green, opened
the columns of his paper (The Pilot,) in the autumn of 1840, to the
political evils of papism; on the occasion of Bishop England's attempt
to control the papal vote of the U. S. in the late presidential election.
That movement and its consequences, will produce effects, — unless we
greatly err, — of incalculable importance. The Papists were deceived
in two respects. 1. As to the extent of their own strength; 2. As to the
statejof public sentiment. After long reflection and much hesitation, they de-
termined to <^o lor the Administration then in power; and did so in solid
column. The effect of this move on the entire Whig party, and on the
Protectant portion of the Democratic, must be equally disastrous to
Papism. The Lord be praised alike for the folly, and the overthrow of
t, John, Bishop, and the J V. Provincial council, of Papal prelates, by
whose direction he acted, and whose plans he executed.
BISHOPS FULL, VCrsi'S, BISHOPS EMPTY. 165
If they had published it, they would perhaps have lost
all their Papal subscribers and patrons, while by refusing
to publish it, they probably gained Papal, and lost no
Protestant patronage. Here lies the radical difference
between the policy of these parties; and as long as things
stand so, every man that prefers his interest to his duty
and his principles, wdl either openly oppose Protestant-
ism— or stand neutral in the struggle.
"At one of the celebrations of the fourth of July in
the city of Charleston," some one gave as a toast "the
health of bishop England" — with the usual addition of
blarney — which as usual wTas, vox et prceteria nihil. It
is not stated at what celebration this occurred ; and for
aught that appears, it may have been one got up by the
Papists, or even the priests of that city. It cannot be
denied however that not only Charleston, but all South
Carolina is much indebted to Mr. England. In that
whole state, we have his own word for saying, there are
only about Jive thousand Papists, of whom nearly half are
black; and there are not less than a dozen priests, besides
nuns — to give spiritual instruction to this handful of the
faithful. It is clear therefore, that the bishop and his
helpers, have directed their principal efforts to the work
of proselyting the poor deluded Protestants of his diocese;
and for this surely they ought to be abundantly grateful.
And for our part, we are not able to see that Mr. England
is not just as much bound to eat and drink to the con-
version of heretics in Carolina, and to give toasts and
make speeches in aid of his mission; as Mr. Eccleston*is
to undertake the same severe and painful labours at
Georgetown. Nor do we perceive anymore reason wThy
the one rather than the other, should be restricted of his
liberty to say one thing at a feast when full, and quite
another thing, in conclave when empty. In our attempt
therefore, to elucidate the sentiments of bishop England's
Charleston dinner speech, by his previous official oaths;
we assure him wTe do not consider his conduct at all un-
canonical — or even peculiar in his sect; but on the con-
trary, we fully admit, that a papal bishop is no more
bound to exhibit his true principles in his public speeches
—than a sober German was bound by his drunken judg-
166 bishops full, versus, BISHOPS empty.
ments. The ancients had a God that was blessed with
two faces; he was a sort of God of time, and stood at
the point where their years began and ended, with one
face looking back into the past, and another gazing be-
fore him into futurity. On one countenance4, age was de-
picted with gravity, solemnity, and thoughtfulness — as
if the closing year had not been lost in its many lessons
of wisdom; on the other, was painted youth full of
watchfulness, alacrity, and decision, — showing how the
future must be encountered. As it regards the duplicity
of this figure, we have mused on it as a most striking
emblem of Rome: an emblem on whose brows the faithful
chronicler should write, — on the one, Janus; and turning
the head about on the other also, Janus; with ineffaceable
characters.
But let us do the bishop full justice, and hear him state
his own sentiments and principles. We give in full,
both the speech and the toast which called it into being.
The health of Bishop England. — In the state a patriot — In the
church a living evidence of the wisdom of those institutions which tole-
rate all religions and legalize none.
This toast having been received with acclamations, bishop England
addressed the president substantially thus:
Sir — I acknowledge myself to be very deeply affected by the very
kind and unexpected manner in which my name has been introduced tc
this company, by a friend, to whom I owe very many obligations for re-
peated acts of friendship, and several manifestations of esteem; but sir,,
the favour has been greatly enhanced by the more than flattering way
in which his proposition has been received by so highly respectable a
society of my fellow citizens, upon whose bounty I cannot pretend to
any claim.
Allow me, whilst I express my gratitude, to assure them that I at least
respond to their sentiment. My kind friend has said that I was a patriot
in the state. I should be one — I came to South Carolina a stranger, un-
known, unproved — she took me to her bosom, she enrolled me amongst
her sons, sho protected me. I pledged to her my allegiance — I could not
be recreant nor ungrateful. From many of her children in various parts
of the State, under a variety of circumstances, 1 have received strong
proofs of respect and of attachment; from her legislators, I have, on
various occasions, experienced flattering attention and ample justice. I
have no merit, therefore, in striving to cherish within me that love for
Carolina which has been inspired by her own kindness in my regard.
I came 10 Carolina to promulgate a religion of which she had but little
knowledge; I should more properly say, concerning which she made great
mistakes. She had little opportunity of knowing what it is — that is no
fault of hers; she was not to be blamed for not beiug acquainted with
tenets which she hud no opportunity of learning. She had boon told.
BISHOPS FULL, VerSUS, BISHOPS EMPTY. 167
and led to believe that they were what they are not; hnt though labour-
ing under this serious disadvantage, the extended to me her iudulgence.
1 obtained every common right for which I found it necessary to ask — I
was entitled to no privilege, and did not look for any. And when I
draw the contrast between the conduct of this State arid that of others
upon this topic, I am more strongly impelled to the love of our southern
section. We stand here in glorious relief as contrasted with others.
I believe that my friend used one expression which I would correct. —
Did he not speak of religious toleration, or toleration of religion? The
meaning of that phrase cannot be his sentiment; I know him too well to
suspect such to be the case. I am a Carolinian. I grant no toleration to
him who differs from me, because he possesses the right as fully as I do.
It would not only be treason to our Constitution, but a traitorous folly
in our own regard to talk of toleration !
And whilst I am prepared to defend my own right to the profession and
the practice of the religion to which I adhere, I am ready to protect the
religious opponent who differs most widely from me in the same enjoy-
ment; for if I permit his right to be infringed, I undermine my own. —
Thus as the sentiment of my kind friend expresses, it is wisdom for our
state to sustain our perfect religious freedom, and it would be a suicidal
fanaticism for any religious body in this republic to aid in procuring any
diminution of the civil rights of any other.
These, sir, have always been my convictions — I have so proclaimed
them as I felt them, strongly and without restriction. Once I did fear
that the same bad spirit, which elsewhere has overshadowed some of our
legislative halls, was about to spread its sable wings over our own. 1
did believe that its influence was about to be manifested in a refusal to
the church over which I preside, of an indulgence which is granted to
every other. I proclaimed what I feared, I showed the legislators that
even without their aid I could attain my object, by using my private
right as a citizen; but I had another, and I trust a nobler motive, for the
anxiety which I felt — I was proud of Carolina — I loved the untarnished
honor of the south — and I trembled lest I should see our State placed by
the side of others in the degradation of bigotry. But they showed me
that I was deceived, and their vote of the next day proved to me, that in
place of having any well-founded apprehension, I was only troubled by
a nervous sensibility — and the enactments of our State prove her wis-
dom, whilst they show her to be just and generous, as she will always
continue to be, by protecting all her children in their religious rights,
whilst she gives no preference to any one above another.
Allow me, sir, to repeat my thanks for the manner in which so humble
a name ha3 been introduced and received by your society.
It will be perceived that Mr. England avows in the
most unqualified terms, that the object of his settlement
in Carolina was uto promulgate" the papal system; a
system which he admits the people knew little of, had
not enjoyed many opportunities of learning, and had
made great mistakes about. This admission at once
puts to silence, all the outcry which this individual and
his friends have setup; about the intolerance of Protest-
168 bishops full, versus, BISHOPS empty.
ants, in their opposition to the papacy. Here are people
who avow their object to be, the promulgation of a reli-
gion— as to us, new, misunderstood, and mistaken. —
They come as apostles of a better system, and demand
its examination and adoption. We have examined it;
we discover it to be one great mass of lies, folly and
corruption; we find its aim to be universal domination;
and its past history written in blood. We are resolved
not to embrace it; nor to permit our countrymen to be
deceived into the fatal error of so doing, if we can pos-
sibly prevent them. And now when we tell Mr. Eng-
land all this to his teeth; he "promulgates" his creed, by
secret devices rather than open and manly exposition; by
dinner harangues over the bottle, rather than fair contro-
versy on the rostrum or through the press. Nay he
throws off, when occasion requires it, his character of an
apostle coming to enlighten and convert a whole peo-
ple; and raising the silly cry of intolerance and persecu-
tion, on the part of those who refuse to be converted by
him, sneaks ingloriously off, or defends his system only
when his courage is warmed over his potations. Said
we not truly — that a double faced God, is their just em-
blem ? Pity that the face of the lion should conceal the
heart of the stag.
But our principal object with regard to Mr. Bishop
England at this time, is to point out the flat, positive, and
repeated contradictions between this dinner speech, and
the plain and repeated oaths, taken by this same indivi-
dual, on the most solemn occasions; oaths by virtue of
which he is and continues to be a papist— a Jesuit-— a
bishop— and an inquisitor; or as many of those notable
characters, as he may confess that he sustains. In the
speech, the author declares himself, to be thoroughly and
on principle and conviction, devoted to the most absolute
religious liberty, for all mankind. He declares that it
would be treason to the constitution, traitorous folly on the
part of Papists,— suicidal fanaticism,— -degradation and
bigotry, unwise, unjust and ungenerous; to trespass in the
smallest degree, or to connive at it on the part of others,
even the state itself or restrict in the least, the most ab-
solute equality of religious liberty as between one person
BISHOPS FULL, Versus, BISHOPS EMPTY. 169
and another, and the most unlimited freedom to all!—
Well done bishop England ! We venture to predict that
this prelate will make hiiiistlt" scaiceat Rome, from the
moment this speech falls under the eyes of the congre-
gation of the Index, — or that for inquisition into hereti-
cal piwrity.-~.En passant, let us say in this dignitary's
ear, that we have long been in possession of the facts,
relative to his 4th of July speech in Rome, and the
trouble he got into, and how he was gotten out of it by
the generosity of the Americans then in that sink of cor-
ruption. We had the facts, years ago, from one of the
parties; a Kentuckian then at Rome. — But to return to
the matter in hand; perhaps he has a dispensation to talk
politics and praise liberty in the U. S. ? Well done
bishop England— -full ! Oh ! that his sentiments and
oaths when empty, accorded with these just and true
statements. — That they do not — that they are directly at
variance with them; and that bishop England himself is
solemnly sworn to diametrically opposite and irreconcile-
able statements — we shall now proceed to show in the
clearest possible light.
In the 13th article of the creed of Pope Pius IV. —
every time bishop England has repeated it, he has said
"I acknowledge the holy Catholic and apostolical Roman
church, the mother and mistress of all churches; and I
promise and swear, true obedience to the Roman bishop,
the successor of Saint Peter, prince of the apostles, and
vicar of Jesus Christ." And as often as he has repeat-
ed the same universal standard of his church he has said
in the words of the 15th article; "this true Catholic
faith, out of which none can be saved, which I now freely
profess, and truly hold, I John England, promise, vow,
and swear, most constantly to hold and profess the
same, whole and entire, with God's assistance, to the
end of my life; and to procure, as far as lies in my power,
that the same shall be held, taught and preached, by all
who are under me, or are entrusted to my care, by virtue
of my office. So help me God, and these holy gospels
of God."
Now the chatechism of the Council of Trent declares
it to be of faith in this holy church, to which the bishop
15
170 BISHOPS FULL, Vei'SUS, BISHOPS EMPTY.
has hound his souj; "that hereticks and schisi/iatics, ere
Still subject to the jurisdiction of the church, and I'm.
he anathematised and punished by it." (see Cat. Coun-
cil Trent, page 94. )
The papal church has put translations of the Scrip-
tures into all vulgar languages, when not accompanied
by authorised notes, into the Index of prohibited Looks;
that is, they are prohibited. The church has reserved to
herself the right to give a version with proper no*
And she has done so; impliedly at least. In 1582 the
Jesuits at Rheirns published an English version of the
New Testament, with authorised notes; and both the
version and the notes, have been repeatedly printed by
competent papal authority in various countries, and both
are in circulation amongst Papists to this hour. In a
note on Matthew, xiii. 29, it is taught "that where bad
men, whether malefactors or hereticks, can be punish-
ed or suppressed, without disturbance and hazard of the
good, they may and ought by public authority, either
spiritual or temporal, to be chastised or executed." In
a comment on Luke ix. 55, the infallible church teaches
"that rigorous punishment of sinners is not forbidden —
nor the church, nor Christian princes blamed, for put-
ting hereticks to death."
In the usual forms of papal excommunication, the
heretick is not only "excommunicated, anathematised,
cursed, and separated from the threshold of the church:"
but with a minuteness almost as ridiculous and indecent,
as it is horribly blasphemous, he is cursed in every part
of his body — every act of his being, every spot where he
reposes; and then all who favour, countenance, or in any
way protect, comfort or even converse or deal with him,
are cursed with the same bitterness. Nor is this the case
only with gross heretics, and on special occasions: but
annually on the 16th day of April, when that day is
Thursday, or otherwise on the Thursday nearest thereto,
all the "Hussites, Wickliffites, Lutherans, Zuinglians,
Oalvinists, 1 [ugonots, Anabaptists, Trinitarians, and
other apostates from the faith;" with all their "adherents,
receivers, favourers and defenders; and all other heretics
by whatsoever name they are called, or of whatsoever
BISHOPS FULL, Versus, BISHOPS EMPTY. 171
sect they be, together with all who, without authority —
read, or even retain their booLs, and together with all
schismatics — and such as obstinately recede from their
obedience to the Roman pontiil:" — in short, every Pro-
testant on earth is thus Largely and fully damned for time
and eternity. And SO sacred a duty is this, on the part
of bishop England himself, and every other papal pre-
late; that the day is called in their calendar "holy
thursdaw" For the Bulla in Ccsna Domini at large
the reader is referred to the Bullarium Laertii Cherubim,
Romse 1638, Tom. iii> p. 183, It will also be found in
vol. ii. (1836) p. 225 — 40 of the Baltimore Literary
Religious Magazine. And the curious reader will see
on p. 69 — 70, of a work explanatory of the ceremonies
of the holy week at Rome, by this very bishop England,
some account of this horrible bull. The bishop, appears
however to have been empty, just then; and therefore is
neither as candid nor as communicative as he sometimes
is. Sir Henry Spelman has preserved in his Glossary , p.
206, the form of excommunication used against a poor
fellow, who eloped from the pope's alum works ; and
such profanity, impiety, and malignity, the devil himself
could hardly surpass.
The "Laity's Directory, or Catholic Almanac for 1836"
— published at the Baltimore cathedral by archiepisco-
pal authority informs us, that the IV. council of Lateran
was the 12th general council; and of course, that its de-
crees wrere irrevocable and infallible. Now we are fur-
nished in the Annals of Cardinal Barronius, continued by
Bzovius, vol. XIII. p. 226-7, with a full decree of that
holy council, as to the mode of judging and punishing here-
ticks. In that decree the secular power is directed, and
the spiritual is commanded to teach and aid the secular
in its duty, — to exterminate hereticks. But if the secu-
lar power refuses, it is to be excommunicated and extermi-
nated itself ; and the country given to any Catholics who
are able to conquer it. And to induce them to undertake
it, all are promised the same favours and indulgences in
kitting hereticks, as in killing Turks or Saracens. Let
it be remembered that bishop England has veiy often as-
serted, in the words of the 14th article of the creed of
Pius IV. that uhe undoubtedly receives all things deliver-
172 bishops full, versus, BISHOPS empty.
ed, defined and declared, by all general councils ;" of course
therefore by the IV. general council of Lateran ! Still
further in the same article, he proceeds to say, and has
doubtless said many thousands of times; " that he con-
demns, rejects and anathematises, all heresies whatever,
condemned, rejected and anathematised by the church:" of
course then, all the real Protestantism on earth ! Now-
let any candid man compare Mr. England^)///, with Mr.
England empty; and say is he not worthy to have Jamjs,
written both on the back and front of his head?
Thus far we have only considered our table orator, in
the light of a private member of the papal community ;
and have shown 1st from the creed of the church; 2nd
from the standard catechism of the church; 3d from the
authorised notes, to the authorised version of their New-
Testament; 4th from the uniform and yearly practice of
all their bishops as well as the common forms of their
excommunication; and 5th from the decision of a holy
general council, that every word uttered by the full ora-
tor,— the empty Papist has sworn to be false, heretical
and abominable ! But unhappily for our o»ator, we have
other and still more conclusive evidence of the discrep-
ancy between his wTords when/u//, and his oaths when
empty, furnished by still more solemn and awful oaths
which we presume he dare not deny that he has sworn.
Is bishop England a Jesuit? Now, please your lord-
ship— a plain civil answer— -full or empty ; is bishop
England a Jesuit? If he is, he will find in Vol. 1, of
The Bait. Lit. and Rel. Magazine, (for August, 1835;)
and in the 2d Vol. of McGavin's Protestant; and in the
Collection called "Foxes and Firebrands" as quoted by
archbishop Usher; "The oath of Secrecy" of the Jesuits.
In that oath he will find a full declaration of the power
of the pope to depose kings and subvert states; then a
full renunciation of all allegiance to all heretical states;
then amongst other tremendous specimens of hard swear-
ing— the swearing in Flanders, in uncle Toby's day,
was nothing to it — the following words: "J do further
declare that I will help, assist, and advise, all or any of his
holiness' s agents in any place , where 1 shall be in England,
Scotland and Ireland, or in any other kingdom or territory
BISHOPS FULL, VCrSUS, BISHOPS EMPTY. 173
I shall come to; (as for example South Carolina,) and do
my utmost to extirpate the heretical Pmtestanfs" doctrine,
^AND TO DESTROY ALL Til KIR PRETENDED POWERS, KKCAL
or otherwise."— What tines your lordship think of that
-—as a commentary on your fourth of July speech? Truly
we have heard your pulpit orations with wonder; but eve:
in them we never heard text and sermon so unlike as thi:
oath and the dinner speech.
We have one more question to put. Is Mr. John En-
gland—-really and truly a bishop of the Catholic, apostolic,
Roman church? If he is, he will find in Vol. 1. of The
Bait. Lit. and Rel. Magazine, (for May, 1835:) and in the
masterly work of Barrow on the Pope's supremacy; and
in the Pontificate Romanian; the oath of allegiance
and vassalage, taken by every bishop to the pope of
Rome. If Mr. John England is a bishop in that church,
he has sw^orn an oath, by the influence of which he ceas-
es to be of a right, a citizen of any nation, and becomes
the mere servile agent of the pope; an oath which if he
keep not, it is terrific perjury, and if he keep, it is con-
tinual treason; an oath anti-social and anti-Christian in
every feature of it, which no government ought to tole-
rate for one moment — and which tends directly to the
subversion of all possible governments. The Bull In
Ccena Domini, sets the pope up as virtual sovereign of
the wThole world ; and the bishop's oath, organises the
corps of leaders in the army destined to make the
vast conquest. Wre extract from this oath a single sen-
tence— and beg Mr. England, if he be indeed a papal
bishop, to reconcile this sentence with his Charleston
speech. "Heretics, schismatics, and rebels to our said
Lord or his foresaid successors, (that is to our lord pope
Gregory XVI. now reigning and his successors canonical-
ly coming in) — i will to my power persecute and
oppose; pro posse persequar et impugnabo! !" — Beware my
lord bishop, that men are not obliged to wTrite Janus, on
both sides of your head, as well as on its rear and front.
Beware lest a credulous and insulted people, at length
discover that the discrepancy between your real princi-
ples, and your jack-straw speeches — is too great to be
accounted for, on the hypothesis of full and empty.
15*
174 BISHOPS FULL, VerSUS, BISHOPS EMPTY.
In sober seriousness, do not such cases exhibit poor
human nature in a light unutterably despicable? Here
are men concealing their real principles, and propagating
others, for which they themselves will burn their brother,
the moment they have the power. Here are priests pre-
tending to believe that their church is infallible; and yet
contradicting publicly, the most cherished definitions and
decrees of that very church. Here are persons pretend-
ing to be Christians; and deceiving habitually the pro-
fessing Christians around them, as to the most important
matters regarding time and eternity. Here are citizens
professing to love their country, either native or adopt-
ed; and plotting treason against liberty, social order, and
all human institutions that deserve to exist. — No men
ever did this but popish priests. God has called their
system "the mystery of iniquity;" and said of its minis-
ters, that they "speak lies in hypocrisy" — and act with
all "deceiveableness of unrighteousness."— Blessed be
his name, he has had in all ages "those who were called,
and chosen — and faithful;" and to these his great and
precious promises are full and ample, that all his and their
enemies, shall one day melt away before the brightness
of his glorious coming. In the holy kingdom which he
will set up on the ruins of the kingdom of darkness, well
do we know, that "they who love and make a lie," shall
have no place.
We venture, in closing this subject,* to recommend to
our readers the discussion on civil and religious
liberty, as affected by the tenets of the Papal and Pres-
byterian systems, by the present Bishop Hughes and the
Rev. Dr. John Breckinridge; in wrhich they will find
the whole matter thoroughly sifted, and the real and anti-
social not to say diabolical principles of Romanism, set
in their true light, and fastened upon the deceitful super-
stition and its wiley and unscrupulous advocate---by ir-
refragable proofs.
175
NUMBER XV 111
FIRST KENTUCKY CONSECRATION, OF u MY LORD
PURCELL."
About the beginning of December (1837) there oc-
curred at Lexington Kentucky, one of those indescriba-
ble scenes, which a sudden and causeless panic some-
times produces ; by which the long projected and care-
fully got up show, of consecrating a papal chapel — was
turned into a most uproarous affair. Nobody was seri-
ously injured, as we have reason to believe; multitudes
had hearty laughs afterwards at what befel them there;
and this good resulted from the threatened evil, that the
whole affair became a subject of ridicule, instead of an
engine for promoting papal influence in that delightful
town. We will recount the matter — out of lack of ca-
pacity for more weighty business — during an hour of
bodily and mental lassitude ; and perhaps it will hurt
nobody to smile at the expense of those, who have given
the world so many occasions for weeping.
Lexington is a delightful spot, seated in the midst of
the fin€st district of America, enjoying a climate not sur-
passed in beauty and sweetness — and inhabited by a
population, worthy, if any could be, of the blessings
they enjoy. It is moreover, so to speak, a sort of west
end, not only to Kentucky, but also to the southern coun-
try below it; and from year to year, persons of refine-
ment and wealth, as well as persons seeking knowledge
and those in pursuit of health — not only resort to it tem-
porarily on account of its many advantages, — but become
permanent residents. It is however, and has been from
the first settlement, a Protestant place, inhabited by Pro-
testant people. In an out lot of the town there did in-
deed stand a small chapel, w7here a few Romans, as the
people called them, met in shy privacy, once in a year
or two — and there went through certain queer facings
and wheelings, which made the boys wonder. And
there were a few, but very few people — decent, but only
176 FIRST KENTUCKY CONSECRATION,
a handfull, — old Mr. Tibbats the baker, old Jerry Mur-
phy the constable, old Mr. Ilickey the white-smith — and
a lew others — who privately professed this uncooth faith.
Thus matters stood, for a long, long time. At length,
about six years ago, the Papifi to have made a
simultaneous movement all oyer the country; and the citv
of Lexington was one of the selected fields of their
labours for converting back the American people to king
craft, priest-craft, and we know not what besides. Sud-
denly there appeared there, priests and nuns, in anyde-
sirable quantity. How strange it is, these priests and
nuns should forswear each other's society and yet con-
stantly stick together; renounce each other's company
and yet never be found apart ! But no matter. They
came to Lexington merely to do good. Were so anxi-
ous to nurse the sick; so devoted to orphans; so eager to
teach schools; that is, howrever, — and it is very odd, only
to care for Protestant sick, feed Protestants orphans, and
teach protestant schools. In the twinkling of an eye —
all things were changed. Those who were secret Ro-
mans before, came openly forth; those who were luke-
warm, became bold; those who were careless, became ex-
cessively pious, particularly after grog-time of day. —
Property which was supposed to belong to Mr. Such-a-
one, was found to be the heritage of the church ; money
in abundance was ready; accommodations for the sisters,
and possibly for a few others not so certainly sisters,
were at once erected; and arrangements made to erect
a new church in the town.
This is all the common course of things, Only at
Lexington, after all the raking and scraping, not half
enough Romans could be got to fill the little old house in
the back lots as you went the back way to Fowler's gar-
den; and therefore a big chapel, erected in the city and
holding itself forth with much pretension, could be of
course, only an engine for proselyting, of rather more
than ordinary boldness. However, so the affair was.
And what with contributions coaxed out of liberal Pro-
testants on talse pretences, and taxes levied on the faith-
ful throughout that diocese, and alms contributed by the
Leopold Foundation, and other foreign associations, powers
and potentates (see pp. 123 — 4, ante,) the chapel at
OT "my lord purcell." 177
last approached its completion; and in the autumn of
1837, the grand event of its consecration was to occur.
This whole matter of religious juggling is to OS, B
great barbarianism; doubtless we are great barbarians to
it. But the idea of baptising a bell, sanctifying a house
or a grave yard,— blessing cups and plates, pow- wowing
over bits of wax or metal, and such nonsense; is too
silly to amuse grown children with,— -and worse than ri-
diculous, when used as a means of pleasing God and ob-
taining his favour. The Romans at Lexington thought
otherwise, and we are clear for their right to think as
they please; only give us also our right to think of their
thoughts with the same freedom.
In due time all their arrangements were made. The
chapel was fixed off, all just so. The doll babies to re-
present saints and angels all dressed up. The long wrhite
sticks writh wax ends, all set about the altar to give light
in 1he day-time. The little boys and their bells to jingle,
and their crimped wThite over-shirts, as nice as could be.
Every thing— prim and snug; and all the sisters dying
with anxiety, and all the fathers chuckling at their com-
ing glorification. The music and the machinery to praise
God withal, tried and retried; all right Every part
practised; all perfect. — Alas! that even the consecration
of a chapel should be subject to chance and fate. Alas!
that the best concerted schemes, should be liable to de-
rangement— yea to sad and signal failure!
Time and tide pause not on their ceaseless course.
The eventful day at last arrived. The musicians were at
their posts. 'The fathers were in their best array of white
and red, and scarlet and violet, cut into all sorts of fantas-
tic shapes. The people streamed into the chapel — and
filled it up, jam — cram full. In came the gang of ope-
rators,— boys, lads, men; wThite, parti-coloured, red; dea-
cons, priests, and "my Lord Purcell" of Cincinnati, at
their head;— in they came all bowing and scraping to-
wards the long white sticks with the wTax ends — and all
dodging and capering like ducks in a thunderstorm. All
looked their prettiest, and at their head "my Lord Pur-
cell," as we have said, demure and prim, as his "prince-
ly grace" himself of Vienna, who about that very time
178 first Kentucky consecration^
got his cis-Atlantic brother, "successor" of the apostles
—into so sad a scrape, about those naughty Ohio free
schools. By the by, speaking of "successors"-— we in-
cline to think, "my Lord Pure ell*' has exhibited better
evidence of being Peter's successor, than most of the
popes of Rome ever did. We mean not hi-
as apostle, nor as preacher, nor as Christian; but
the fact, of being caught in a tremendous s<iy-oin-thin<j;-
to-day—and-another-to-morrow! That was a very ugly
affair, to praise the free schools to the people of Ohio,
and denounce them in his letters to Austria. Few po-
pish bishops show much resemblance to converted Peter;
"my Lord Purcell" seems very like Peter, when denying
with oaths, his own words and deeds!
But we wander. The house is full— and the scenes
are begun. The censers are lighted; the doll babies are
getting smoked; the incense is rising in clouds, as they
pass up and down the crowded aisles. A chap in the
gallery seeing the smoke, shouts fire!— A centinel fixed
aloft to sound the bell at the proper period, in hastening
up or down broke a round in a ladder at the very moment
—and fell heavily against a stove pipe in the gallery.
The gallery is falling! Fire! The gallery is falling! Fire!
Fire!
The scene that followed beggars all description. We
will only attempt to give an impression of some portions
of it.
The crowd rushed down the aisles-— down the gallery
steps— towards the outer doors— over each other— upon
each other— pell mell— man, woman and child, ---white
black and yeliow,— gentle and simple— rush, rush, rush.
Fire! The gallery is falling!
Bonnets are twisted awry— down shoulder pads and
mutton-leg-sleeves are mashed up— satin slippers are bad
protectors for toes under other people's heels— fine fa-
bricks that ircrc dresses, are hardly to be called so now.
"Skin for skin," saith Job, "all that a man hath" (yea,
and ladies too, even their finery) "will he give for his
life."
Mr. A. ran and jumped through a window. Mutt B.
mounted the window sill, and in the ecstacy of her terror
OF "MY LORD PURCELL." 179
patted juba. Mrs. C was thrown down and walked
over, in defiance both of prayers and other somewhat
different remonstrances. Mis. J), standing on the back
of a pew was knocked head foremost over two, into the
third. The Misses. E. F. and G. were shocked into
stupor, by the want of calmness of others. And Jake
Hostutter declared, that when he was squeezed through
the front door— "a pile of women five feet high, was lay-
ing before it."
But the reverend fathers, where were they? Their in-
stant and universal impression, seems to have been, that
it was all a premeditated affair-— and that a Protestant
mob was about to lynch the whole brotherhood. A
guilty conscience needs no accuser.
In this idea, the head shepherd, played the hireling
and put off. "Holy Virgin Mary"— -cried " my lord
Purcell" "pity and save us;" and suiting the action to
the word— he made himself scarce through a side door
—and was seen no more.
An assistant priest still more alarmed, escaped from the
house and was caught half deranged with fright, and
half dead with the unusual labour— puffing and running,
in full canonicals, in the suburbs of the city; and wTith
great difficulty was soothed, and broughtback.
The parish priest, the incumbent of the place, more
resolute, began a harangue to the Protestant spectators,
who composed at least nineteen twentieths of the audi-
ence— the purport of which was, to remind them, that
they at least, w^ere in no danger-— as dogs never eat dogs
-—and therefore Protestants would not mob Protestants.
We grieve to say, the inference did not commend itself
to the affrighted multitude. But Colonel S — , taking
the idea possibly from the priests' attempt,— came for-
ward into the chancel-— and would have mounted the
pulpit— -in order to speak to the people-— and restore or-
der. Sacrilegious attempt ! Vain thought ! It was a
consecrated pulpit ; that far the work was completed ;
and better let the whole perish, than permit a heretick to
set foot in that holy place. And boldly and successfully
did the father resist the unbelieving Protestant; and on-
ward raged the storm.
180 FIRST KENTUCKY CONSECRATION, &C
Impelled by a similar idea, a German musician in the
gallery— leaned over the rail and began to shout in a lin-
go which nobody comprehended— that there was no-
thing to be feared ; but his looks, gestures, and tones,
betokened that every tiling was to be feared. Where-
upon the fright only the more increased. And when as
a final and desperate resort, the orchestra struck up its
various and discordant tones— to sooth and quiet, or at
least disenchant the crowd of its terrible panic ; the un-
certain sounds, frightful and unlooked for, augmented a
confusion now trebly confounded.
At length however the terrible scene passed off. One
by one, through doors and windows— the gaily dressed
crowd sallied forth rumpled, agitated, and fatigued.—
And when the last had escaped, it was found, but appa-
rently not before, that the house was not burned— and
that the gallery had not fallen !
First came the hour of enquiries. And like the formal
report of a colonel when the army lay at Norfolk during
the last war— this contest, like his, resulted in their be-
ing, killed— none ; wounded— none ; missing— none!
Frightened to death, and befooled out of theii wits ; al-
most all !
The next hour — was one of convulsive laughter!
How wonderfully is man created !-— What a show was
this— what people these to be so moved by it— what a
scene— what a result !
But the poor priests after all their terror and mortifica-
tion, had this serious difficulty left. The consecration
of the house was only half finished. What questions
for the casuists spring therefrom ! Is it a half conse-
cration of the whole house; or is it a whole consecration
of half the house? If the former, is the last half of the
whole ceremony to be performed; or must the whole be
half performed? If the latter, must the remaining half
of the house, until it is also consecrated— be considered
sanctified by the part already finished, or only in expect-
ancy and capacity of consecration-— or as being still the
abode of the evil spirits who were so laboriously exer-
cised out of the other half?— These are serious and
weighty, as well as difficult questions. We shall there-
LENT ITS CURIOUS HISTORY, &C. 181
fore tranquilly await their solution; hoping that 'my lord
Purcell,' will soon disembarrass himself of the mistakes
about the quotation from Lauori, and the free schools of
Cincinnati, and turn his great and enlightened faculties
to them.
No one who remembers the grace and fervour with
which he publicly commended the system of popular
education in Ohio, to the good people of America, at the
very moment he was secretly and officially denouncing
the same system in his correspondence with the Leopold
Institution in Austria; nor any one who considers the
inimitable composure with which, in his debate wTith Mr.
Campbell, he pledged his veracity, his honour and his
character, that certain passages alledged out of Lagori,
wTere not in the book, saying all the while, that he was
perfectly familiar with its contents and had used it for
years as a text book---when lo ! the very passages were
verified after the debate was over, out of the very book,
by Mr. Smith (a converted priest;)— when these things
are considered, no one can doubt, that "my lord Pur-
cell," is the very man, for hard questions and difficult
cases. Let us therefore patiently await his decisions.
NUMBER XIX.
LENT ITS CURIOUS HISTORY AND PRESENT STATE.
We are in the midst of this joyous fast— which like
every thing else papal in modern times, says one thing,
and means another. The subject is worthy of a mo-
ment's consideration— if it were only because such mul-
titudes of our fellow beings deem it so. We have there-
fore taken the pains to examine Thomassin's Traitez
Hist, et Dogmat des Jeunes de PEglise—Baillet Fates
Mobiles j and the Grand Dictionaire of the Priest Moreri
16
182 LENT ITS CURIOUS HISTORY,
—in relation to the matter. The result of our investi-
gation follow*.
J^ent was originally a protracted fast immediately pre-
ceding east EB— which the reader is aware, answers to
the feast of the passover amongst the Jews. At first the
fast was voluntary, and rigid; but for no certain period:
ordinarily for a few days only. There is no trace that
any obligation to keep a stated fast was supposed to ex-
ist, in any part of the church, before the middle of tMe
third century. And even after such an observance was
supposed to be obligatory— it was for a long time un-
settled what number of days should be kept as a fast. —
When a fixed time was first introduced, it was the period
of thirty-six days; but even then there was no regularity
in its observance. For while the Latin chuich kept a
fast of six weeks before easter, the Greek church ob-
served one of seven weeks. Both however pretended to
keep the same number of days---as the Greeks did not
fast either on Saturdays or Sundays of lent, except holy-
Saturday; while the Latins fasted every Saturday-— and
thus equalised the number of days. The number ot
days seems to have been fixed at thirty six, upon the idea
of tything the year, and consecrating a tenth of our time
to God, by mortification and penance. The views of the
Greek church on the whole matter, and their reasons for
adhering to a practice different from that of the Latins,
wrere fully set forth in the council of Trullo A. D. 642. —
During that century (the seventh) the number of days
was increased to forty, in the Greek church, in imitation
of our Lord's fast; and the same change took place
amongst the Latins two centuries later. But still the
Greeks took nine weeks to obtain their complement of
days, and the Latins but seven wreeks for theirs, on the
{>rinciples already stated. But many particular churches
ong held to their more ancient customs, of various kinds;
as in Milan, for example, where as late as 1563, it re-
quired all the authority of St. Churles Boromio, backed
by the power of the Roman See, to enforce the uniform
observance of the Latin system.
The manner of keeping lent was at first, and for some
centuries, strict. In the western churches, meat, eggs,
AND PRESENT STATE. 183
milk and all preparations from it, and wine, were forbid-
den entirely; and but a single meal of any tiling, and that
towards night, was allowed each day. Fish were not
forbidden; though many voluntarily abstained from every
thing but fruits and vegetables. As to fowls — it was
pretty early contended, that they were created on the same
day as fish and like them, out of the water; and that
therefore they were admissible like them during lent. —
But this motion of the flesh, was not at first wrell received.
In the eastern church lent was always more rigorously
kept — and the people generally confined themselves to
bread and water wTith vegetables. Many of the monks,
however, (jolly fellows !) — revolted at this thin diet; and
those especially of Pontus and Capadocia insisted on
the duty of cooking a little salt meat with their vegeta-
bles. We condemn them not. But as the proverb says
it is not j a.-t, to make fish of one and flesh of another,
— it had been well perhaps, if they had stuck to salt fish
instead of salt meat. At least the proverb contains as
much reason, as they had who insisted on eating fish,
us a fast, because Peter was a fisherman. And for the
same reason why not eat men? For Christ told Peter he
should be a fisher of men. The council of Ancyra, in
substance allowed the meat. But St. Basil, in his con-
stitutions, denounces the monks as Eustathians. We
rather guess his saintly eyes would open wide, if he could
attend one of archbishop Eccleston's fast suppers.
In the progress of time the rigor of fasting insensibly
diminished; and as early as the beginning of the ninth
century — wine, eggs, milk, butter and cheese — were
permitted freely; first to the unwell, — then to all who had
not other proper food to support them under their neces-
sary labours. Give a priest one unknown quantity in an
equation, and he will bring out any desired result. But
with three such in one proposition, and his own bowels
the umpire, — "good night to Marmion." Still, how-
ever, the fast was thus far kept — that only one meal a
day, and that towards night — was allowed. Though
this is afasting — better than the feasting of half man-
kind; who during the whole period of the earth's dura-
tion have probably not enjoyed one hearty meal a day, of
nutritious and palatable food.
184 LENT—ITS CURIOUS HISTORY,
By and by another device was fallen on, to mitigate
still farther this pretended starvation of forty days. The
pope of Rome, made money from every thing else; why
not from a man's stomach? Why should his abdomen be
more sacred than his brains or his heart? The power of
dispensation had just as good a fulcrum in the duode-
num as in the jaws; and liberty to eat may be better
granted, than that to foreswpar one's-self. What was
begun, as an exception, soon became the rule. In 1475,
the pope's legate gave a dispensation, to Germany, Hun-
gary and Bohemia, to eat eggs, milk, butter and cheese,
for five years, during lent. At length even the bishops
in their Synods accorded such dispensations; and at pre-
sent it is an outrage never once thought of, that a papist
can keep such a fast as lent — for forty whole days —
without eggs, milk, butter, cream and cheese ! It is
well for them, that none of them are dispeptics, for such
fasts as these would kill them outright.
But as to the single meal per diem. Is there no re-
medy for such a serious affair as that? Let us see. Till
about the year 1200, the Latin church enforced the ne-
cessity of eating only once— and that after vespers-— in
other words, towards night. As to the Greeks, from the
sixth century, they had dined at mid-day, and taken a
collation of fruits and herbs at night. In the thirteenth
century the Latins began to indulge themselves in a few
conserves to strengthen the stomach during the day---and
to take a collation also at night. This word is borrowed
from the life of the cloister— -where the deceitful heart,
above all places, seems to learn the art of calling "evil,
good— and good, evil." After supper the religious pro-
fessed—had in many instances a rule to gather themselves
together, for the reading together in public of such things
as their superiors prescribed; and especially the Confer-
ences of the holy fathers, called in Latin Collationes.
After the reading— -came the drinking, on fast days, of a
little wine— -a very little;-. -and this was the real collation!
So far, so good. One meal per day-— and that very late
-—nominally stood, as the rule. But that from being
scant and coarse, had long become, as we have shown,
generous and immense. And now we find, how it be-
AND PRESENT STATE.
came gradually flanked before with cojiserves and behind
with collations. Sweet meats and wine, ire not general-
ly considered a very meagre dirt.
The next step, was if possible a still more cunning and
complete alleviation of all the horrors which habitual
self-indulgence would experience, under a forty days
period of temperance;---fasting being any longer out of
the question. This was a contrivance to put things for-
ward, so that the chief meal of the day should not be
near the close of it, and therefore so many previous hour*
of the morning not be lost on mere conserves. Yet the thing
was difficult because it was established like the immove-
able hills, that the meal must be after vespers— and vespers
after 7iones — which from time immemorial, were respec-
tively at sun-set and three hours after mid-day. The
matter came about thus: they who could not attend the
celebration of the udivine office" — nor observe the ca-
nonical hours, could hear the bells as they sounded for
them, and could regulate their meals during lent thereby.
And if men cannot fast with the church — it is nearly as
good to feast by its rule. Thus the hour of afternoon
service became the signal for eating; and the practice be-
came universal — not to eat dinner — that would be horri-
ble— but to advance supper three hours! That is, to
sound ■'jf the "divine office" at three o'clock in the af-
ternoon, being the regular hour for nones', to celebrate mass
immediately afterwards; and vespers directly after mass:
and supper directly after vespers. This process brough:
the supper on at four o'clock in the afternoon, instead
of at seven or eight.
This idea once struck out, smoothed all before it. The
emperor Charlemagne was a quick witted as well as a
strong fisted chap, and in his religious sentiments full
half a Protestant. He preferred three o'clock for his
dining hour; and therefore mass was said at two, and
vespers and supper came immediately after — still eating
after sunset, but advancing the hour of sunset! The
monkish historians excuse the emperor for this trespass
on the sun — by saying that as he was served at table by
the sovereigns whom he had subdued,— who afterwards
16*
186 LENT— ITS CURIOUS HISTORY,
sat clown and were served in their turn by counts and
earls — and they by inferior dignitaries — through a long
series; if the emperor had not eaten till after the regular
sunset— -the last of his serving-men could not have eaten
before midnight. It was far more reasonable that the
sun should set a few hours sooner than usual, during
lent, than that the emperor's household should change
either their hours or their habits.
If the matter had stopt here, the sun would probably
have put up with the arrangement; and all things con-
sidered, would have got off on better terms than any
other entity that ever had to do with her of Babylon
But things did not stop here, and requirements were made
and continue to be made of the sun, which are hardly
to be considered reasonable by any candid person. In
the tenth century the custom of eating after sun-down,
at the hour of three P. M. (nones)— was universal
throughout Italy; wdiere they commenced the "office of
none" during lent, about noon, following it with mass,
vespers and gluttony. It was not before the twelfth
century that this practice was fully established in France,
Before the year 1500— -the hour of supper had been in-
sensibly advanced to mid-day! And then nones, or three
P. M. came about nine o'clock in the forenoon, and res-
perSy or sunset, at least an hour before the sun reached
the meridian!! Thus stands the matter to the present
hour: and the world will be so good as to remember, that
during lent, the sun sets at eleven o'clock in the morning.
There can be no doubt of it, for the acts, reasonings,
and declarations of the infallible church, are express to
the point. Nor is the proposition, though rather start-
ling at first, at all harder to receive, than fifty others put
forth on the very same authority. As for example— that
the soul, body, blood and Divinity of Christ, whole and
entire, is contained in every particle of the consecrated
bread and wine. That is, that ihere are a thousand mil-
lions of Gods in an inch square of cake; that a priest by
saying uhoc est corpus" can create Gods, ad libitum; and
that every communicant eats them by myriads. — Down,
with the sun, for us; it is far more credible than most of
the capital doctrines of popery.
AND PRESENT STATE. 187
Now all things considered, lent is not so formidable an
affair. Here are co?iservcs to strengthen the stomach---
just at will: here are eggs, butter, cheese, milk, cream,
all kinds of fruits, all sorts of vegetables; and here are
all kinds of fish, embracing oysters, lobsters, terrapin<,
green turtles, and the innumerable tribes of things that
live wholly or chiefly in the water. These are the
undisputed property of the most rigid and abstemious
Papist during all lent, at least once every day, in quanti-
ties to be decided by his personal capacity. Then there
is a multitude of other things, about which the church is
not quite certain— -and which may be eaten or let alone;
and then other immense classes which are maigrt or not,
and so admitted or not according to circumstances — such
for example, as the time it takes the gravy to get cold —
&c. fee., which also, the operator must settle, or get his
confessor to settle for him, as the cases occur. Then to
finish the day — (as the main meal can betaken any time
after vespers, and vespers can be said at any time) —
—it is to be remembered---that the collation , as to length,
breadth, and thickness, is entirely an open question.
This is the state of the case for those who pretend to
keep lent regularly. But there are many alleviations
even to this abundant provision. The infirm are not ex-
pected to keep lent. Nurses and pregnant women are
not required to do it. No one under twenty-one years of
age, nor above sixty, is bound to keep lent; nor are any
of any age who live by their daily work. To all this
add, the annual and now stated dispensation of the
pope allowing to all the faithful, the privilege of meat
(which seems to be the only forbidden thing) two or three
days in the week; and the standing power to sell dispen-
sations from all parts of the fast, to all who will pay for
them; and the idea of the eating department— of a. Papal
fast will be fully before the mind.
It is not easy to decide whether it would be more ap-
propriate to mock or to weep over this exhibition of
hypocritical sensuality, and childish self-delusion. Why,
this fast is absolute luxury, compared with the habitual
state of nine-tenths of the human race, from the found-
ation of the world; and yet, it is held up before the world
as a period of deep mortification, and before God aa a
188 LENT— -IT! CURIOUS HISTORY, &C.
ground of justification and acceptance, on account of its
extreme severity. We verily believe, that any man of
temperate habits who would faithfully keep one lent, as
the papal monarch would not only allow but commend
him for keeping it, would encounter serious risk of a
surfeit; if not of radical derangement of his health, by
the excesses of the table. And this is precisely the way
in which most papists who can afford it, keep lent. It
is with them a period of excessive indulgence, far more
frequently than of any, the least, real abstinence; and
fasting, as applied to their lent, is mere mockery.
Formerly, says the father Thomas sin, continence,
abstinence from gaming, from public amusements, and
from litigation, were enjoined during lent. As the in
iunction had no effect, and they who gave it never
thought of obeying it — it was, perhaps, as well to omit
the repetition of it. But what a religion is that, in which
conformity to the world, mutual contentions, gambling,
and incontinence, were always allowed, except for forty
days of each year; and latterly are hardly rohibited, even
during lent !
It is extremely remarkable, that the Bible should have
designated with the most exact and unerring precision
— the apostate church of Rome, by every one of its char-
acteristics, down to the most minute. As in this case,
by the singular characteristic of its pretended fasts. —
These are the marks of the apostacy of the "latter times,"
recorded in \st Tim. iv. 1 — 6. A departure from the
faith; giving heed to seducing spirits, and doctrines of
devils; speaking lies in hypocrisy; (oh ! how illustrated
in the present subject;) having consciences seared; for-
bidding to marry; and commanding to abstain from
meats ! — Now we search in vain for any thing absolute-
ly forbidden to be eaten during lent, but meal! Fish is
permitted; fowl is disputed about; flesh alone is forbidden:
— it can be eaten only by dispensation ! And upon this
minute but fatal mark, the Eternal Spirit fixes its inefface-
able malediction ! Yea, he makes the putting of our
"brethren in remembrance" thereof, one evidence that
we ourselves, are "good ministers of Jesus Christ!" —
Beloved Christian brethren, we have in this, discharged
"the big beggar-man." 189
our conscience and our duty. Will you credit our re-
port— and help our labours ? Unhappy, deluded fellow-
men — we lay before you this necessary, though it may be
unpalatable evidence, that your hopes arc founded on
nothing better than sand ! Will you receive the admo-
nition— cast your idols to the moles and bats — and live
by faith in the Son of God?
NUMBER XX.
"the big beggar-man."
This appellation has been given to Daniel O'Con-
nell, by his political opponents in great Britain, and
like many other nick-names, it fit so exactly, that it has
stuck like a san bemto. For above twenty years, O'Cox-
nell has been in the receipt of a princely revenue,
wrung by the most inflammatory and exciting appeals,
from the poorest peasantry in Europe. Think of forty
thousand sterling a year, dragged out of the starving
population of Ireland, in sums varying from a half-pen-
ny, to a shilling, at a time ! — It presents in the strongest
light, a picture of national devotedness, — sported with
and abused by the vilest, most selfish, and most detesta-
ble individual baseness.-— Poor Ireland ! Is she doomed
forever, to fall into the hands of pitiless enemies, or faith-
less and unworthy friends?
Mr. O'Connell's position and enormous power, ren-
der him an object of curiosity at least,— -to all mankind ;
but when reference is had to his relations and feelings,
towards the United States, and his capacity to do us
damage, it becomes important to us to understand and
appreciate him distinctly. His influence over the Irish
members of parliament is such, and the parties in the
House of Commons are so nearly balanced,that this indi vi-
190
dual has had it absolutely in his power, since the passage
of the Reform Bill in 1831— to change the British Gov-
ernment at any moment he pleased; while, nothing but
his command has been wanting, for the last ten years, to
excite a civil and religious war in Ireland, and arm the
entire papal population of the three kingdoms in a death
struggle for supremacy. His influence upon the people
of this country is, first, indirect; that is his influence in
shaping the policy and giving tone to the feelings of the
British Cabinet, and in changing that cabinet at will; and
in modifying the relations and conduct of all papal states
to us, by his influence upon them, as the leading papist
of Britain. But secondly, his influence to do us damage is
direct; first, by its exercise upon the entire mass of our
papal population, secondly upon the Irish ecclesiastics
and papists settled in this country, and thirdly upon the
abolitionists of the U. S.; and all who have paid any at-
tention to the progress of affairs, know that he has all
these interests, either in humble subservency, or close
league with him.
Let us then, attend for a moment to some of the say-
ings and doings of the Big Beggar-Man, that we may
have a clear idea of what he is, how he feels towards us,
and by what means he proposes to act upon us.
The first extract which follows, is taken from the
London Patriot of Nov. 27, 1837. It is part of a speech
delivered by O'Connell in Exeter Hall, on the 23d of the
same month, at a great meeting of u anti-slavery dele-
gates from all parts of the United Kingdom." So much
only is quoted, as relates to this country, indeed not the
whole of that.
Remember you have only so cast your eyes beyond the American
waves, and see what is about to take place there. Behold those pre-
tended suns of freedom, those who declared that all persons were equal
in the presence of God, that every man had an inalienable right to liber-
ty— and proclaiming it, too, in the name of God — behold them assever-
ating it in the name of honour, their paltry honour. (Loud cheer6.) —
They are at this moment organising new slave states. Remember that
-another country has been committed to slave-holders. They have seized
upon the territory of Texas, taking it from the Mexicans, the Mexicans
having abolished slavery without apprenticeship. (Loud cheers.) Re-
member that they have stolen, cheated, swindled, robbed a country, for
the horrible purpose of continuing it in slavery. (Hear, hear, and criei
of "Shame.") Remember that there is a treaty now on foot, in coa-
"the big beggar-man. m 191
templation, at least, and only postponed between the President of the
United States and these cruel ruffians, till this robbery of Texas from
Mexico can be completed. Oh ! raise the voice of humanity against
these republicans, who have sentiments of pride and feelings of self-ex-
altation. (Cheers ) Let us tell these republicans, that inn; cad of stand-
ing the highest in the scale of humanity, they are the basest of the base,
and the vilest of the vile. (Immense cheers, waving of hats, and cries
of "Hurrah.") There is a community of sentiment all over the world,
and on the wings of the press, whatever so humble and insignificant an
individual as myself addresses to you will be borne across the waves of
the Atlantic-— it will go up the Missouri, it will be wafted along the banks
of the Mississippi, and it will reach the infernal Texas itself. (Immense
cheers.) And though the Pandemonium may seream at the sound, yet
they shall suffer from the lash of human indignation applied to their hor-
rible crimes. (Loud cheers ) If they be not arrested in their career of
guilt, four new slave-states will flow from it, and from Texas to the
Mississippi will be filled with slaves. (Cheers.) O hideous breeders of
human beings for slavery! (Cheers.) Such are the horrors of that
system in the American States, that it is impossible in this presence to de-
scribe them, and it almost pollutes the mind to think of them. Should
the measures now contemplated by the Americans be accomplished,
these horrors will be increased fourfold. Every commandment of the
living God is to be trampled underfoot by mammon, and the human soul
is to be degraded worse than the degradation of the human body. —
(Cheers.) Expect nothing from their generosity. I cannot restrain my-
self. (Cheers.) * * * * Oh, cry out shame, and let the cry be
heatd across the waves of the mighty ocean! We are the teachers of
humanity, the friends of humanity. What does it signify to us that the
crime is not committed on British soil? Wherever it is committed, we
are its execrators. (Cheers.) The American, it is true, boasts that he
was the first to abolish the slave trade carried on in foreign vessels. He
was. But what was the consequence? The man who abolished it, made
his slaves at home of more value to him, when he had stopped the sup-
ply from abroad. (Cheers.) It was a swindling humanity — it was
worse than our 20 millions scheme — it had the guise of humanity, but had
in reality the spirit of avarice and oppression. (Applause.) Perhaps I
ought to apologise. (Cries of "No, no ; go on.") *****
I thank you for having permitted this appeal, but I thank you more for
having joined in it. (Renewed cheers. ) Yours is not a selfish humanity,
confined to any climate You join with me, and I trust that the period
will come when, if America does not redress the wrongs done to her
slaves, no civilized man will feel himself justified in associating in private
life with an American. (Cheers.) You would not keep company with
a pick-pocket or a swindler, a murderer or a robber. (Laughter and
loud applause.) And what signifies it to me whether they have murder-
ed and robbed and swindled wholesale an entire people, a young and
rising generation, or in any other manner. — (Cheers.)
This veracious and gentleman-like tirade, was deliver-
ed from a platform usually consecrated to religious and
benevolent exercises and efforts; and from the midst of
an array of members of parliament, baronets, doctors of
192 tcTHE BIG BEGGAR-MAN."
divinity (nearly all doctored^ on this side of the Atlan-
tic)—-and a strong corps of the squirearchy of England,
—-of whom near a hundred are told by rote as a caption
to the account of the meeting.
The decided favour with which these vulgar falsehoods
concerning us were received, by the magnates of the
platform, and the "British audience" in the hall— -goes
farther than any testimony we could personally bring, to
establish the truth so little considered in this country,
namely, that a deep-rooted and rancorous hatred of Ameri-
ca and Americans, pervades the entire mass of the En-
glish nation;— mark us, of the English nation;— we do
not say of the better and more enlightened portions of the
Scotch and Irish. There is a party in the eastern section
of the United States, whose sentiments, feelings, and
opinions, are the mere reflections of this audacious spirit
of English society— just enough modified to take off the
foreign gloss. Nay there are parties-— not one, but seve-
ral. For there is one that sympathises so thoroughly with
the tory and high church pretensions of Anglicanism—-
as to make its members forget often-times, that they pre-
tend to be Americans and republicans, and cause them to
prate about "the church,,' and "dissent" as glibly as if
they already held tithes, church rates, and pluralities "as
by law established."— And there is a second whose
whole heart is so engrossed in Englishism, no matter what
or how distilled,-— whether theatrical with Miss Kemble
—or warlike with Capt. Basil Hall, or infidel wTith Miss
(?) Fanny Wright— or man-womanish with Mrs. Trolop
—or merely twaddling with Dr. Cox, D. D! L. L. D!!
—or abolitionist with George Thompson— -or speculative
(at three shillings per head per night) with the honorable
Mr. Buckingham M. P.— all else is immaterial, so that
English be the basis of the gruel, it is swallowed more
copiously than Dr. Sangrado's patients gulped hot water.
We pray all these worthies-— not to be choaked with the
present dose; remembering it is rale English— and that
they have swallowed the same before. We beseech our
"O'Connell guards"— and "O'Connell blues"— and all
that crew of patriots— -to take courage and open their
mouths wide. Patriotism is a small affair; national
193
honour and prick' are mere figmentt; and Sfl men owe
little to their native lanti — tliut little is well nigfa nothing
in the case of an adopted country. Hut above all, w<
to the country— -remember O'Connell is a big ipist;
remember he is the organ in Britain of the Papal monar-
chy; remember he is the mouth-piece of the British P -
pists; remember there are several hundred thousand
foreign Papists now dispersed throughout the United
States who are capable of bearing arms, and who are
absolutely subject to the foreign priesthood scatter-
ed amongst them, holding commissions from a foreign
potentate, and making periodical reports, as spies to
him of our condition; remember that the bulk of that
priesthood are the countrymen and tormer tools of
this very O'Connell— -and are thoroughly imbued with his
prejudices, his passions and his principles. Remember
these things; for verily there is a day of reckoning to come.
It would be well, if it were within the present design,
to direct the reader's attention to the braggart boastings,
of what England has done and must do; and to the tem-
per with which the crowd received these disgusting ebu-
litions of national vanity. Let America learn from this
how to believe what England says, respectively of her-
self and others. Let her learn to appreciate herself. Let
her recollect that England treats all the world on the same
principles here exhibited and rapturously applauded, as
regards us — and let her do justice to other people, under-
rated through a too easy credulity of such billingsgate.
Let her place the opinions and the influence, moral and
literary, of such a people, where they deserve to be
placed — that is the very lowest of all in the scale; and by
an enlightened public sentiment, frown down the Ameri-
can toad-eaters who regulate themselves after such a
model.
We fear it will hardly appear credible, that on the very
occasion and platform from which the foregoing extract
was bellowed forth against us and in praise of England;
the most conclusive proof was furnished that a state of
things far more horrible than ever did or ever could exist
in any part of the United States---at that very moment
existed, yea had been created, in immense portions of the
17
194 UTHE BIG BEGCAR-MAfl^?
British empire, by the policy of the government and
direct force of positive law. Proof for example thai
many of the British possessions, slaves confined in jail
were well nigh starved; that females were; whipped to
death — and false verdicts sworn to; that slaves when re-
gularly at work, were often put on half allowance of food;
that cruel, novel, and frightful punishments were indicted
publicly on the aged and the sick; that in every con-
ceiveable way, those called apprentices, (and of whose
liberation such lofty talk has gone out through all the
abolition press of this country,) were cheated, deceived,
defrauded, oppressed, starved, beaten, and killed out-
right. Yet to all these points the proof was complete —
at the very moment when the unblushing insolence we
have quoted was uttered by O'ConnelL Upon the single
subject of the flogging — by law observe, of unhappy
freemen liberated (!) in the British West Indies, we take
the following table, from a speech of Mr. Bowley, of
Gloucester, made a little while before O'Connell's.
"CORPORAL, PUNISHMENTS WHICH CAN BE INFLICTED ON AP-
PRENTICED LABOURERS UNDER THE EXISTING LAW IN THE
ISLAND OF JAMAICA.
Absence for two days in a fortnight - - - 20 Lashes.
Refusing or neglecting labour 20
Wilful negligence — damaging property - - - 20
Drunkenness — first offence - 20
Frivolous complaints ------ 20
Absence for three successive days 30
Wandering beyond plantation without leave - 30
Absence for one week - 39
Insolence --------39
Keeping fire arms, gunpowder, &c. 39
Insubordination -------39
Drunkenness, second offence in the same month - 49
Endangering property by careless use of fire - - 50
111 using of cattle ------ 50
Injuring property _-__-- 50
Destroying property ----- 50
Combined resistance ------ 50
Riotous assemblage - - - 60
Attempting to quit the island - - - - 50
Indolence ------- 50
Neglect of work ----- _ 50
Improper performance of work 50
Assisting apprentice to quit the island - - 50
Establishing a distinct sommunity 50
Tor inferior misdemeanours, whether against employ-
ers or any other persons - - - - - 50
l*frHE BIG BEGGAR-MAN ° 195
Under the slavery law there was no domestic offence punishable with
more than thirty-nine lasher, but under the apprenticeship s\.>tem here M a
list of thirteen distinct oile-nces punishable by fifty lashd
Letnoone imagine that this ample catalogue ofoffen-
slept in humane forgetfolness— in the hands ofth
who had already received twenty millions sterling —
(equal to about one hundred millions of dollars) — in lieu
of all the rights of property in their slaves; who w ■
thenceforth — as our abolitionists assert, freemen. Alas!
for such freedom! For says uBig Beggar Mem" in tin-
very speech already quoted from;
"I have had a melancholy account of the number who have been pun-
ished and flogged under the new system. In Jamaica, there are two hun-
dred and sixty thousand o{ these persons now called apprentices — it is a
wrong word, better call them slaves at once — it is a shorter word, it saves
time, an! it has another recommendation, it is more accurate. How
many of th^** have been punished under the law of liberty: Upwards of
thirty-live • >us md males, and upwards of twenty-two thousand females
— (Hear, hear) — making a total of fifty -eight thousand, four hundred and
seventeen, being one out of every five. (Hear, hear.) And that in what
period? In twenty-two months. No less than two hundred and forty
two thousand, three hundred and eleven lashes were bestowed under this
system of freedom.
"In point of law and of plain common sense, the females under the ap-
prenticeship system could not be flogged because white persons could net
be flogged under the apprenticeship law ; and it was only left open to flog
apprentices for the same crimes that white persons might commit. They
were intended to be put upon the same footing. True, the females are
not ordered to be flogged — they are sent to the treadmill, but there is a
man who flogs them there if they do not dance, as they call it, accord-
ing to his pleasure. The poor creatures there receive the most brutal
treatment There is only one case with which I will trouble you, A
letter has been received from a Baptist missionary at Falmouth, which
states that a respectable female, one of the members of his communion,
was sent to the workhouse for two weeks — for what do vou think? for
taking Morison's pills. (Laughter and cheers.) Really it seems ludi-
crous. The committal is dated in the present year, and was issued by
special justice Price. It was written upon it, "For rejecting medicine,
and taking nostrums." There was endorsed upon the committal, "Very
insubordinate.*' For taking Morison's pills she was to be put upon the
treadmill twenty minutes daily for a fortnight. There is no man in this
country brutal enough to place any female upon the treadmill — (Cheers)
— it is a punishment reserved for rurfians of the male sex. In Jamaica
it seems that an unfortunate woman, for imagining that she could be
cured by a quack medicine — an imagination which is entertained by
many respectable people in this country — is sent for a fortnight to the
work house, to be put on the treadmill twenty minutes daily. (Hear,
bear, hear.)"
\\ e know not how we could more appropriately con
elude this article,-- -or how convey to our readers more
19G
"the big begger-max."
vividly a picture of the recklessness, tergiversation, and
moral worthlessness of this prince of ruffians and black*
guards— than by laying before them the following brief
synopsis of O'Connell against O'Connell. It u taken
from the London Record, of December 7, 1837, where
it is credited to Frazer's Magazine.
OCONNELL HOT.
1. " Lord Brougham is the pride
of England." — Speech in Dublin,
Dec. 1830.
2. "My excellent friend, Mr.
Raphael •" — Address to the Elec-
tors of Carlow, 1835.
3. " Mr. Guinness is a liberal
Protestant of high character and res-
pectability." Mr. O'ConneWs
Speech concerning the Dublin
election of 1832.
4. " The consistent and liberal
Earl Grey."— June, 1830.
5. " Sir Charles Coote, one of the
best men and landlords in Ireland."
— Mr. O'Connell at the Catholic
Associatioji, 1825.
6. " I enclose you the ballot of
this morning. Nothing can be bet-
ter. Yours, &c, Dan. O'Con-
nell." Letter to Raphael,
June 18, 1835.
7. " Honest Jack Lawless." —
Speeches up to 1832 passi?n.
O'CONNELL COLD.
1. "Buggaboo Brougham."— Let-
ter, dated Aug. 24, 1833.
2. u The most incomprehensible
of all imaginable vagabonds, Alex-
ander Raphael." — Letter to the
Electors of Carlow, A or. 1835.
3. M Do not drink his beer," —
August, 1837.
8. "The straight forward Mar-
quis of Downshire." — Speech at
the Catholic Association, Jan.
1829.
9. " A former Duke of York, the
legitimate King of England, was de-
throned by the English Whigs, al-
though he could only be charged
with the crime of proclaiming per-
fect liberty of conscience.
A'or., 1826, at Dublin.
4, M There is another and a great-
er enemy to Ireland, Earl Grey."
—Letter, August 24, 1832.
5., " It is cruel that Queen's
county should be represented by that
petty curmudgeon, r^ir Charles
Coote."— Speech at Stradbally,
Jan., 1836.
6. M My opinion, from the mo-
ment the ballot was struck, was, that
it was hopeless to contest the mat-
ter further." — Letter to the Elec-
tors of Carlnw, Nov., 1835.
7. "Jack is in the dirt now.*' —
"He has made an attempt to get
out of a situation into which he had
got by his foul delinquency." —
Speech, Jan. 2, 1832.
8. " Downshire, famous at all
times for gross duplicity." — Aug.
25, 1834.
9. " The Restoration came next,
and the son of him they had be-
headed was guilty of most abomina-
ble treachery; so they made him ab-
dicate."— Speech in Manchester,
against the house of
-Speech \in 1835,
{Lords*
'Tilt: BIG BEGGAR-MAX.
197
10. " .Mr. Mahoaey i- up fof Kin-
s.ile: it could not have .1 batter ro-
tative,"— S Yatfan-
ri.it ion, hlfU , 1887.
10. M He (Mr. O'Connell) had
I lUOO 111 - :\ i riir. that, iofteed
of being Ireland's pride. Limerick
would be ber shame, if sin* returned
- I Mahoney. — Dectmb.
:;. 1-32.
11. " That dotard, Burd.tt: n
M that old madman, Burdett," fee
Sec" — Speeeket m U
" Burdett is a sort of incarnation
in our of the impenitent thief upon th*
1825 cross.*' Speech at Stockport,
11. "We never can be too grate-
ful to Sir Francis Burdett, for the
manner in which he introduced our
Bill, and for the unwearied exertions
he has made, and is maki
cause,"' — Letter, March
.v •. is, i-:;:
12. -The Roman Catholics are 12. "Hurrah for Repeal: Wild
to my certain knowledge, as much Irish cry " — Motto of O'Connell,
attached to the connexion between Letter to Lord Duncannon, 1834.
Great Britain and Ireland as the
Protestants can be'' — Evidence of
Mr. O'Connell, before a Commit-
tee of the House of Commons.
1325.
13. "A better family than the
Kenmares does not exist, and it *Vor
possesses a high claim to the praise
of Kerry." — Oct. 6, 1834.
14. " He was happy to say, that 14. " What a Luttrell that Gal-
Mr. Lamb and the Duke of Devon- way is! Don't mind such traitors as
shire would be opposed in Dungan- John Matthew Gal way! — Speech in
non, by a gentleman who had given, August, 1834.
in IS 26, the most powerful aid in
freeing Waterford from the Beres-
fords." M He took credit to himself
for inducing such a man as Mr. Gal-
way to come forward." — 0' Con-
nell's Speech, Dec. 2, 1832.
15. "The noble and high-spirit-
ed Lord Londonderry."— Jan. 1329. derrv
16. M The independent electors 16.
of Kerry." — Speeches passim.
13. — The tyrannical Kenmares."
1S34.
15.
" The frantic Lord London-
'-Jfl/i. 22, 1836.
"If anv man vote for the
Orange Knight of Kerry , let a death's
head and cross-bones be placed over
his door," &c. — Speech at Tralee,
during the election of 1834.
17. "Lord Anglesea is Ireland's 17. "Anglesea 's a Welshman;"
friend." — Speech at the Catholic " ten-gun brig Anglesea;" " Alge-
Association, Ann. 1828. rine Anglesea," &c. &c. — Speech-
es passim during 1831 and 1832.
IS. "The bone-grubber Cob- 18. "My excellent friend, Mr.
bett;" " the venal Cobbett."— Cobbett."— Speech at the O' Con-
Speeches during 1825. tnell dinner to Cobbett, in 1834.
What a detestable ruffian! What a graceless turncoat!
What a compound of fawning Tulgarity, braggart inso-
lence, and shameless lving!
17# : °
198 VOCATION AND PREACHING
This is, par excellence, the papal statesman of the day!
This is the grand mouth piece of the "great Irish na-
tion"! This is the champion of the only true church and
of universal civilization! Brother of the sun, father of the
moon, pet of John Bull, son of the pope, brother of the
priests, ally of the abolitionists!—
And whether shall we more deserve the pit v or the
scorn of all coming ages, if such an influence, originating
from such a source, propagated through such channels,
and exerted for such ends,— is allowed to have its vile
and audacious course, and to effect its horrible objects ?
NUMBER XXI.
VOCATION AND PREACHING OF ARCHBISHOP ECCLESTON.
The Roman ministers of religion, are not set apart to
preach, but to sacrifice. Their system proposes to save
men by ordinances, and not through the truth, taught of
God, and received in the enlightened love of it. This
is a characteristic and all-pervading distinction, between
the religion of God and that of the pope; and between
the ministers of one and the other. The ministers of
God teach the people ; this is their mission, their work,
their vocation:— "teach all nations" is our great and di-
vine warrant. The ministers of the pope, sacrifice for
the people; this is their faculty, their ordained office;
"receive power to sacrifice, for ilic living and the dead,"
is their word of induction.
It is most natural therefore, that we never offer any
sacrifices; above all, we never pretend to repeat the cru-
cifixion and to sacrifice again the Lord of life. It is
equally natural, that they should teach men nothing; and
least of all, that they should make public instruction in
vital godliness, the end of their ministrations.
OF ARCHBISHOP ECCLESTON'. 199
In countries truly papal, there is no regular preaching
of the priests. During most of the year3 none of the
priests, — not one, preaches at all: and during their period
of riot and excess, called lent, when they fast on the lux-
uries of the earth, a very few specially set off for this ser-
vice, deliver discourses to the public, about every thing
but grace and truth. In all countries the bulk of the pa-
pal priesthood, are utterly incapable of preaching; thou-
sands of them never attempted it in their lives; and very
few of those who do, are equal to the poorest preachers
in the poorest Protestant sects. In general, the higher
the dignitary the poorer the preacher, and the less he
pretends to speak in public.
A very strong confirmation of these remarks is to be
found in the condition of the papal clergy in the United
States. There is not one tolerable public speaker
amongst them; and of a dozen or fifteen bishops, hardly
above three ever attempt to preach. Of these, umy Lord
Purcell" and u f. John, Bishop" alone make any serious
pretensions. The former we apprehend, will be apt to
consider the laurels won in controversy with Mr. Camp-
bell, enough for one "servant of the servants of God:"
unless indeed he condescends to appear before the vulgar
crowd once more, to give them a new version of Lagori,
or a further exposition of his sentiments on the subject of
public schools. — Poor Bishop England, ought to keep in
practice somewhat more regularly — or he will forget how
to speak English, and spoil his attitudes by disuse. The
last time we heard him, — he could hardly lap his arms
over his chest, in his favourite mimickery of the posture
of Napoleon, (though he had this excuse for awkward-
ness and obesity, that lent was just over;) and his enun-
ciation was so thick, and so Milesian that we had diffi-
culty in following him.
We are happy to be informed that Mr. Eccleston, who
honours our good city with his habitual abode, has some
thoughts of turning out orator. The following letter
will be joyfully read by the archbishop's Protestant
friends; for we have generally heard him commended for
much better skill in a dinner than a sermon, and far
more elegant taste in fasting, than in discoursing to the
people.
200 VOCATION AND PREACHING
As to the sample of a sermon from him, furnished us
below, there is nothing to be said. The doctrine is ste-
reotype papal: you wiD hear it from all the draymen of
their party about town. We must make allowance,
however, for a beginner: and no doubt, when the weath-
er gets cooler and the worthy gentleman ventures a lew
more times, in the villages about, he maybe able to make
a pretty fair debut in his spacious cathedral. This IS
greatly to be desired; for really the people who pretend
to preach there, are a great scandal to holy mother, and
a terrible bore to the hearers.
We are the more encouraged about the archbishop, as
we happen to know, by report, on undeniable evidence
however, the nature of his vocation to the ministry. —
And by wray of encouraging his present efforts, we wil)
tell the story, to his praise. We had it from the mouth
of him who was actor in the scene.
The archbishop wras born and raised an Episcopalian;
as was his immed:ate predecessor. When just grown
up, his wish and purpose was to enter the army; and he
and the individual who told us this story, applied for ca-
dets' warrants, for the military academy at West Point.
"We stood," said our informant, "at the corner of Gay
and Baltimore streets, anxiously looking to see the carri-
age of Mr. Harper who was then in Congress drive up to
his door. It came. I was deputed to call on him, and
ascertain the success of our application; while Eccleston
waited my return at the street corner. The quota of ca-
dets for Maryland wras full; but we were told, we could
get midshipmen's warrants in the navy." — This was re-
ported to the embryo soldier; and the two young men con-
sulted a moment and pondered in deep thought in our
most public street. "Well," said he, breaking silence,
and ripping out an oath, — "good evening — I will turn
priest! !u
Here is the vocation of the vicar of Christ in North
America ! uGood evening, — I will turn priest!!"
This may be about twenty years ago. Behold the
fruits of that divine call to the holy ministry!
Alas! upon what slender threads do our destinies hang!
Upon what slight and accidental things do the tenor of
OF ARCHBISHOP ECCLESTOX. 201
our being here, and the issues ofoui ctt-rnal interests de-
pend! Here stands a Piolestant boV meditating a career
of honour and activity. He is bid from you for twenty
years; and when the curtain is drawn, you behold the
proofs only of apostacy, superstition, luxury and indo-
lence. Here is a moment's idle conference, at a street
corner; and it so unjoints the soul, that the loss of God's
favour here, and the deep risk of his endless curse, spring
therefrom! How true is that word of our Saviour, that
without him we can do nothing! How solemn is that
providence, which in a sense, alas, how opposite, leads
us, or permits us to wander, through unknown ways!
Romney, Va* August 7, 1838.
Rev'd Sir: — You are afar from being unknown to me by character,
though I am an entire stranger to you, yet as such I have no doubt you
will comply with the request which is the object of this letter. My re-
quest is, that you would be so good as to send me by mail, one copy of
the Pope's encyclical letter, which I think you had published sometime
ago in Baltimore.
One reason for troubling you to send me a copy, is, that the Jesuit
priests seem to have their eyes on this part of the country in which I re-
side, to establish one of their people traps, called by them seminaries of
learning. Along the river (the soath branch of the Potomac) lies a por-
tion of the richest land perhaps in the United States, though small in ex-
tent; but it has wealth enough to form the principal attraction for those
priests. They have frequently visited it, and have talked of such an es-
tablishment to be located in this section of country.
Their archbishop Eccleston has been here. I heard him preach; and
although in the course of my life, I have often been engaged in contro-
versy with infidels who denied the truth of the Bible; yet I never heard
one of them, I think, say more in disparagement of that book than
this archbishop did.
He said that the Roman Catholics took it as part of their rule of faith,
but not for their sole rule; that it was not sufficient to be the rule of any
man's faith; that no man by reading the Bible without other instructions,
could find out a system of religion on which to venture his soul's salva-
tion, or indeed any system at all. That the Bible was a compilation of
writings made at different times, for particular circumstances more suitable
for the occasion that called for them, but not suitable for Christians in all
ages of the world. That the authority of the Roman Catholic church
was superior to the Bible. That there was no evidence on which to be-
lieve the Bible but what that church gave it; without that no man could
have any evidence of its truth.
He defended many of their abominations to an extent which I had not
anticipated; such as auricular confession, absolution, indulgencies, &.c,
I was shocked and disgusted at the effrontery of the man.
You know that they are making great efforts to propagate their re-
ligion in this country, and flatter themselves that they will succeed. My
202 CONJUNCTION OF ST. BACCHUS
apprehensions are formed chiefly on that religion being so agreeable to
corrupt human nature. Itoflers salvation so cheaply through the labour-
saving machinery of the priesthood, and has so many attractions for the
bodily senses. I was for a long time anxious to see some Protestant, or
Protestants, have the courage and ability to meet that arrogant hierarchy
in their strong hold, Baltimore; and I am highly gratified to find that you
so sufficiently supply that desideratum. My heart is with you every blow
you strike.
Iiev'd Mr. Breckinridge , Wm Naylor.
Baltimore.
NUMBER XXII.
CONJUNCTION OF ST. BACCHUS AND ST. IGNATIUS.
We suppose our annual notice of the literary gluttony
of the corporation of Georgetown college, must be hence-
forward omitted; unless indeed we take special pains,
to get information and keep the run of their debaucheries
in honour of the muses and the Jesuits; strange conjunc-
tion and aptly celebrated in rude and coarse bacchanals !
For since we began to pay our respects to this annual
glorification at the capitol of the nation, of the principles
of those wrhom all nations abhor,— -either the public press
is getting shy, or the revellers are getting ashamed of
day ; and what was once blazoned in all the glory of
capital letters and lead lines, in the entire daily press
round about, is now hid in thin minion, in the form of
an anonymous letter, in one corner of an humble month-
ly, hardly more pretending than our own, in its outer
man. In short, what took place on the 24th of July,
(lcS38) at Georgetown, creeps tardily out in the Septem-
ber No. of the Southern Literary Messenger: and except
this notice by us, has received no additional observance,
that we have seen or heard of, from the American pn
One single step more, half as long as many already
taken-— will (any back these annual wine-bibbers to St.
Ignatius and St. Bacchus, into the darkness most eon-
genial to both saints and all the worshippers of each.
AND ST. IGNATIUS. 203
11 Commencement Jhmiverfary Georgetown college.
The dinner, §*c." Such is the caption of the article
commencing "My dear WkUe" and written by a hand
lull of affection for the college, the dinner, the music and
for aught that appears, the drink ; as well as for the res-
pectable editor whom he thus fervently addresses. We
have no doubt the writer of the article, is every inch a
gentleman ; albeit, the company was none of the best :
and we are equally sure he was perfectly composed; al-
beit, men are sometimes singularly affectionate, at the
close of a regular set to, even more humble and meagre
than this undoubtedly was. ---Nay, he says the treat wTas
in a high degree " interesting, intellectual and social."
If it were the two last, the first manifestly follows. And
that it was social, wTho can doubt, who knows the powTers
of a full stomach and a light head? And as intellectual
may be defined that which pertains to the inward or spir-
itual parts, ---we presume this feast wras intellectual in
both respects ; although, not perhaps, in the strict sense
a feast upon any man's intellect in the proper notion of
a meal, as the wrords naturally imply. A truce to this,
howrever ; for writh all respect for the author and the ar-
ticle, we concern ourselves only with the feast.
It is rather difficult, always to keep things in perfectly
good taste and proportion. We have admitted that a
revel was a suitable mode to celebrate the conjunction of
Bacchus and Loyola ; but we submit that a very large
feast was out of taste, to celebrate the exit of a very small
class from the college. As there were but four graduates,
we are inclined to think that a lunch, or a breakfast, or
a tea drinking would have been more in keeping. It is
a strong exemplification of the low state of morals in the
country, and the indifference of the people for letters,
that this venerable and noble college, where boys may
learn to read, but must learn to feast, should be so ne-
glected; and that these pure, abstemious and patriotic Je-
suits, wTho inculcate a taste and judgment in drinking as
wrell as in studying, should be left wTith a patronage so
shamefully inadequate !
We shall pass by the criticisms of the author onthe
performances of these four graduates, so far as they are
204 CONJUNCTION OF ST. BACCHUS
personal ; remarking only, that they seem to us rather
harsh than otherwise, towards the young gentlemen.
Those criticisms, however] relate in a secondary sense to
the teachers in the institution; and deserve a moment's
consideration in that regard. It is said, for example,
that G. and not D. who received it, was entitled, accord-
ing to general belief, to the first place amongst the lour
graduates. A hard insinuation this ; hut one that the
gentlemen who preside with so much impartiality over
St. Joseph's college, at Bardstown, in Kentucky, and
write such superlative English — will comprehend with-
out an explanatory note, beyond the name of — Howell.
— Again, G. though thus distinguished and deserving,
was allowed to deliver an oration remarkable for being
" strongly imbued with sectional feeling." A sad fault,
we suppose, in men charged with the education of youth.
Another young gentleman (F.) delivered himself of a
very " common place" oration. And a fourth (L.)
though very clever, is said to have spoken indistinctly
and too fast, and to have pronounced shockingly; in
which last excellence, G. who was the best of all, largely
partook. The sum of the criticisms on these four per-
formers, leaves us at a loss how to express our admira-
tion of a college faculty, which teaches its pupils to speak
too fast and indistinctly, to pronounce badly, to write in
a common place manner, and to entertain improper sec-
tional feelings ; and which itself, out of four such alumni,
confers the hrst appointment on the wrrong person! To
make this part of the treat "interesting, intellectual and
social" — required, manifestly, neither meat nor drink.
This part of the ceremony, was moreover, presided over
by the archbishop himself, in great style ; and the whole
enlivened by a good band of music. So that on the
whole, when Mr. Eccleston came to award the prizes and
premiums,which he did "with much imposing ceremony"
— the people retired about noon — all wide awake ; a sig-
nal proof of the deep interest excited in all.
This finished the literary or pretence part of the affair.
The real performance was yet to come off; and the real
actors therefore remained behind. They sauntered about
the college, — for the dinner was not quite ready. They
AND ST. IGNATIUS. 205
admired the fine prospects — examined one thing and an-
other, in dalliance with languid time — till tin- signal — the
joyful signal was struck; and kWI had the honour of Sit-
ting down, with Other invited guests, at (to, sir, if yoU
please) one of the most sumptuous and social banquets,
it was ever my happiness to partake of."
So to work they went; man and boy, priest and lay-
man, from the archbishop down to the most timid fresh-
man; at it they went, eating and drinking; drinking and
eating; toasting and spouting; spouting and toasting; "the
venerable (11 ) archbishop of Baltimore presiding, with
much dignity and urbanity over the festive board."
Well, what of all that? — will some reader say. Not
much perhaps. But in these temperance times, the table
feats of ecclesiastics, are not perhaps their most honour-
able ones; nor the capacity to teach children how to
urevel in the day time" — the highest recommendation of
a college. Still more; it is hardly decorous for those who
despise all the dainties of life — to manifest such an un-
becoming publicity in their greediness to enjoy them
upon every tolerable and some intolerable pretexts.
It is not, however, chiefly because we can amuse our-
selves or our readers, with the fooleries of these vile
hypocrites — and in doing so turn the public ridicule and
contempt upon their doings and pretensions — that we
condescend to notice them. It is a small matter, that
priest Mulledy, even though lately principal of the college,
should make a fool of himself in his cups, and give silly
sentiments with his wine. It is nothing to us if he
should, at a hint from Mr. Custis, (whose misfortune it
seems to be, to be ever ready with a speech) — bring in a
pantomime to amuse the reverend company, and sweeten
the intervals of drink, with Punch and Jean, or any other
vain trifling. Xor do we care for the poor scamps who
are ever ready as hangers on, to make one in a dumb
show, or degrade themselves for good meat, or sing rib-
ald songs as the price of good drink, or smerk in ap-
proval of the infamy of a host, in repayment for the good
cheer had and expected. These things move us not, ex-
cept to deep pity — or strong sorrow, or merited contempt.
But at these dabauches, ever and anon, things of high
18
206 CONJUNCTION OF ST. BACCHUS , &C.
import leak out, things which challenge the public no-
tice, which confirm the warnings of the people's friends,
and reveal the true character and wicked designs, of the
pope's minions in this country. Take for « the
following:
Wm. B. Lewis, Lsq., being called on for a toast, gave the health of
the archbishop of Baltimore, the president of the day, — who happily re-
plied,— and offered a sentiment in honor of the Order who had founded
and reared the Institution, in whose halls the company were partaking of
the pleasures of cordial hospitality. To this the ex-rector of the college
responded appropriately, and gave the health of
William Joseph Walter, Esq., of England — one of the guests present,
a literary friend and brother, who, in his turn, gave "The sons of ^t.
Ignatius; the great promoters of enlightened education, and the firm up-
holders of truly liberal opinions, throughout the world."
So then, it stands confessed before all mankind, that
archbishop Eccleston is the patron of the Jesuits; and
that even in his moments of most complete relaxation,
his mind never wavers in its purpose to honor them! —
Still farther; a company of American citizens are so far
lost to all sense of shame, all love of liberty, and all re-
verence for God, as to drink repeated toasts in honour ot
the Jesuits! And further still, a vagabond Englishman
dares to insult the country by propounding anew such
sentiments!
Here then, is the final settlement of this most import-
ant question. Archbishop Eccleston is a Jesuit. The
Jesuits direct all the affairs, and shape all the principles
of the papal church in the United States.
These are startling facts. Though we have long-
known them — we are shocked at the contemplation of
those approaching evils, which this new proof brings so
clearly before our minds. Yes, we repeat it; the nation
cannot avoid the most dreadful calamities — from this fa-
tal and corrupt society, unless prompt and vigorous
measures can be taken to deliver it from the impending
curse.
The society of Jesus is the enemy of man. The
whole human race should unite for its overthrow. Earth
and heaven should rejoice together over its tomb. — For
there is no alternative between its total extirpation, and
the absolute corruption and degradation of mankind.
207
NUMBER XXIII.
PAPAL UNITY ITS NATURE, CERTAINTY, AND ADVAN-
TAGE.
One of the most common arguments of Papists against
the reformed churches, is our want of unity, of a com-
mon visible head, and of a judge and rule by which to
le and terminate all controversies. With this argu-
ment is always united one in favour of papism, because
it has a rule of faith, a jud^e of controversies, a visible
head, and absolute unity.
It is c ■ . I i determine whether the word of God or the
word of man, is the better rule of faith; whether our own
judgment, reason, and conscience, or those of other men,
be the safer guide; whether a spiritual or a temporal
unity be preferable; and whether Christ in heaven or the
pope in Rome, be the more glorious head. All this is
clear enough — and the two cases supposed, are, relative-
ly, papism and Christianity.
But let no one suppose that the superiority of papism
ends even here. How extremely difficult it must always
be for Christians to know who is really their Christ, and
how he was so constituted — all can tell. But how very
easy it is to ascertain who is pope, and what prodigious
certainty has resulted from the various changes in the
mode of making him — and what immense advantages
have thus, in many ways accrued to papism, — all do not
know; and therefore we will aid them a little.
The Jesuit Maimbourg in his Histoire du Grand
Schisme D^Ocident, which constitutes the viii. vol. of
his Histories, and was dedicated by him to that cruel bigot
Louis XIV. of France; informs us that the popes have
been elected at different times, in very different ways.
And then he proceeds to narrate briefly and comprehen-
sively some of these, in historical order. We translate
pages 11 — 15 on this particular subject; after perusing
which, the reader will be better able to comprehend how
remarkably certain and fixed the mode of creating the
208 PAPAL UNITY ITS NATURE,
centre of unity, the judge of controversies, and the head
of the church — is, and has always been.
"It is certain," says the Jesuit, "that Jesus Christ made the first pope,
in the person of Saint Prttr, whom ho directed to take care of his lambs,
who are scattered over the earth; that this saint declared J^inus his first
successor; and that since that time all the other popes have been elected
after the death of their predecessors, — but in modes very different The
people and the clergy jointly, and sometimes trie clergy alone with the
consent of the people, freely made this election by a plurality of \oices,
for the first five centuries, until after the death of pope Simjtlif.ii/>*
Odoacer K'ing of the Ileruli and of Italy made, a law by which under the pre-
text of wishing to remedy the troubles and disorders which had sometimes
occurred at the election of pope, he forbade any election in future, until
the will of the prince should be known concerning the subject who ought
to be chosen* This law, so contrary to the liberty of elections, was
abolished about twenty years after, at the iv. council of Rome, under
pope Symmachus, with the consent of kingTheodoric who reigned then
with much wisdom and equity. But this Arian prince became bigoted
and ferocious towards the close of life, and having murdered pope Saint
John, in prison, he tyrannically usurped the right to create the pope him-
self, and nominated, Felix IV. , to the pontificate. The Gothic kings
who succeeded him, followed his example, except, however, that they
contented themselves at last, with confirming him whom the clergy might
elect, but who could not take possession of the pontificate, without the
consent of the prince. Justinian, who received the empire of the Goths
in Italy, and after him the other emperors, retained this usurped right, and
even reduced the church to a servitude so disgraceful, that the popo elect
was obliged to pay them a fixed sum of silver, to obtain the confirmation
which he was obliged to ask, before he was permitted to exercise any
function of his office. Constantine Pogonatus delivered the church from
this infamous servitude, by abolishing this base exaction; but still the
emperors always retained some authority in the election of popes, who
could not be consecrated without their consent and approbation. It was
the French to whom the church of Rome owed all her temporal gran-
deur, and they also resorted to her to full liberty, when the emperors
Louis le Debonnaire, Lothaire I. and Louis II. declared by their im-
perial constitutions, that the election of popes should be free and canoni-
cal, according to the ancient customs.
"During the horrible disorders of the tenth century, and in the de-
plorable estate to which the Holy See was reduced during that period of
its extreme desolation, by the tyranny of the Marquis of Ftruria, and the
counts of Tuscany — these tyrants and the Roman grandees, oppressed
anew the liberty of the church, by creating and deposing popes at their
pleasure, and according as they were more or less suitable instruments of
their passions. Otho the Great, and after him the two other Othos, Ins
son and grand son, after having destroyed the tyranny of those who
treated the church so unworthily, retained her themselves in a kind of
slavery, by subjocting to their authority the election of popes, who de-
pended on them. The emperor Saint Henry, duke of Bavaria, their suc-
cessor, restored her to full liberty, by leaving this election to the clergy
and people of Rome, after the example of the French emperors, whose
donation he solemnly confirmed, when he received the imperial crown
CERTAINTY, AND ADVANTAGE 209
at Rome. Conrad the Saliqoe, changed do thing; l>ut Henry III., his
son, and Henry IV., his grand son, with the consent of the Romatu, and
of JWcholas II. 9 at the councils of Hutri and of Rome, usurped the
power to choose, or to make others elect, whom thry would have for
pope; which, by their abuse, caused horrible troubles in the church, and
in the end produced the war between the popes and the emperors, on the
subject of investitures.
Finally, the church having been still farther troubled during almost a
century, by the anti-popes, whom the emperors and schismatics on one
side, and the factions amongst the people and clergy of Rome on the
other, opposed to the pontiffs legitimately elected, peace and the liberty
of election was restored by Innocent II. For after the famous schism
of Pierre de Leon, called Anacletus, and of Victor IV., had been entire-
ly suppressed, chiefly by the labours of Saint Bernard, all the cardinals
re-united under the authority of Innocent^ and strengthened by the
principal clergy of Rome, whom this pope with great address united
with them in the sacred college, acquired so much authority, that after
his death they alone elected pope Celistine II., and from that time they
have always maintained themselves in the possession of this high privi-
lege, the senate, the people, and the rest of the clergy having finally
ceased to take any part in it. At the death of Gregory XI , two hun-
dred and thirty five years had elapsed since the cardinals had possessed
the sole power to elect the pope; which since Honorius III., or, accord-
ing to some, since Gregory X., they did, shut up in conclave; and the
election to be legitimate and canonical, was obliged to be free, and by a
majority of two-thirds. Gregory XI., nevertheless foreseeing the disorders
which must arise, if a successor was notpromply elected to him, issued a
Bull three days before his death, by which he permitted the cardinals,
for that time only, to elect a pope by a majority of voices, and wherever
they chose to make it."
So far Monsieur Maimbourg. His brief and compre-
hensive sketch comes down to the latter part of the four-
teenth century; his particular purpose requiring him to
terminate upon the inception of the great schism whose
history he was about to trace. As we have translated
the passage, we noted with our pen, the successive
changes in principles and facts, regarding the mode of
electing and constituting this great substitute of the Pa-
pists for our judge of controversies and centre of unity;
and we find that only thirty-one times, have fundamental
variations occured during the first fourteen centuries! —
Surely that is a happy church which is blessed with thirty-
one tried methods by which to constitute its visible head!
Surely that man must be unreasonable in demanding a
mode of arriving at certainty on this important subject —
who cannot find what will please him, in thirty-one dif-
ferent ways! Surely there is a certainty of papal, as
18*
210 PAPAL UNITY ITS NATl i
much greater than there is of Christian unity, as then
are more ways to make a pope, and therefore more chan-
ces that a man maybe true pope — than there are mode*
of access to one only Mediator, who is the exchlS
head of all Christian churches!
Itcannot be denied that the election ofa | ope i> the
most important affair about which Christ end ( m can be
concerned. It i.> [jo less than the choice of the corns
father of all the faithful, the successor of the prince of the
apostles, the vicar of Christ himself ! It is therefore de-
lightful to contemplate the certainty, the antiquity, and
the divine appointment of that right, by virtue of which
they who have for some centuries last past exercised this
high function, were originally invested with it; and to re-
call the harmony, peace, spirituality, and disinterested-
ness, which they have so long and so constantly display-
ed in its exercise. The Histoire des Conclaves, which
lies before us, has suggested this additional argument in
favour of the superior certainty and excellence of papal
over Christian unity. The power of appointment, so
often varied, and subject to such immense changes, was
about the middle of the twelfth century, under the ponti-
ficate of Innocent II., engrossed exclusively by the car-
dinals and clergy of Rome. In 1160, under Alexander
III., these same cardinals, who had been at first simple
cures of Rome, having become the counsellors and then
the assistants of the pope — in their turn assumed the ex-
clusive power of election. For eleven centuries after
Christ, these cardinals had no voice whatever in the
election of pope ; and yet for above five centuries last
past, their voice has been the only one canonically allow-
ed to be heard in the same election ! Remarkable revo-
lution ! For eleven centuries those whom Christ ap-
pointed to elect his vicar were absolutely excluded from
any voice in that election; or else for five centuries and
more, those whom Christ never called to this awful au-
thority, have intruded into it and thrust out the true
electors ! Solemn manifestation of the certainty and
scripturalness of the papal succession and unity!
But the absolute blessings which papal unity has
ferred on mankind, arc even greater than these e\
CERTAINTY, AND ADVANTAGE'. S] i
dinary facts would lead us to expect Maimbc j
still our authority (p. -,) for asserting, that "Since the
damnable enterprise of the ambitious Novation, who re-
volted against pope Saint Cornelius, and by the cabal of
the heretic African Bishop Novatus was sacrilegiously or-
dained bishop of Rome, and formed the first schism," —
the great schism of the west, which commenced under
Urban VI. — "was the twenty-ninth which separated the
Catholic communion, and divided between different heads,
the same church, to which by all laws human and divine,
there should have been but one, and that in one person!"
So that in eleven centuries, this simple question, where
is unity, who is pope1) has, only twenty-nine times
rent the papacy! What an illustration of the value of
unity! What a proof that a visible head produces it!—-
What an evidence of the necessity of a judge of contro-
versies! What a demonstration that he settles them ! —
Only one schism every forty years, for eleven centuries,
upon the simple and single question, who is our judge?
who is our visible head? Alas! poor Christians; ibr our
parts, we have never been able to raise one single schism
in eighteen centuries, as to who, what, and where was
our invisible head; nor to produce the quarter of twenty-
nine fundamental divisions amongst us upon all the capi-
tal points of religion put together!
Nor let it be supposed, for a moment, that these great
blessings to the papacy, have been only incidental; nor
that only a few have partaken of them; nor that they have
been of short duration. By no means. They have
flowed from the very nature of the case; they have ex-
tended through successive generations; they have en-
grossed the wThole papal world; they have been so deep
seated as to be incapable of solution even by universal
councils inspired, as they said, by the Holy Spirit and
guided by infallible wisdom. Maimbourg again shall be
our authority. He asserts (p. 3 and 4) that in the great
schism, whose history he writes, "It was morally impos-
sible to decide who were true popes and who anti-popes. —
In-somuch that even a universal council which had the
infallible assistance of the Holy Spirit for every thing
which appertained to the faith, did not consider itself
212 PAPAL UNTTY ITS NATURE,
sufficiently enlightened lo dissipate the darkness, and
pronounce on the rights of the parties. And it finally
judged, that to take a sure course in this uncertainty it
was better to act by authority than by knowledge ^ and to
exert its sovereign power in deposing the two pretended
popes, that it might givfe to the church, by a lawful and
incontestable election, a head, in whom no one could
(•oiliest the august quality, without manifest revolt." —
He adds, "This furious schism extended over all Christ-
endom— without there being any visible heretics. For
it is indubitable, that there were in the opposite parties,
great men, celebrated jurisconsults, most learned theolo-
gians, entire universities, and even saints, yea saints who
had revelations and wrought miracles! There were also
on both sides, the strongest presumptions and conjectures
and the most plausible reasons." — After all this, and
much more like it, he proceeds to declare (p. 6), "That
the primacy of the pope had never been better established
than during the schism of the Greeks; * * * and the
unity of the Holy See, to which all the churches of
Christendom ought to tend as lines to their common cen-
tre, was never better preserved than during the great
schism of the west."
Glorious unity — which is not hurt by being destroyed;
which constantly exists though recognised by no one ;
which is indispensable to the very being of the church,
and yet morally impossible to be ascertained; which is es-
tablished to maintain peace, and has created the most ex-
tensive, furious, complicated, and repeated schisms; nay,
whose existence is a sure mark that the church which
has been tiventy-nine times convulsed by it, is the only
united church on earth! Know you not, said a peace-
maker, to a loving couple in the midst of their contention,
— know you not, that being man and wife, ye are one1/
Sir, was the simple response, if you heard us sometimes,
you would think we were twenty! True illustration of
the source of our mistakes about papal unity. It is a
real unity, such as it is; and what it is, we have now
shown by their own testimony.
These observations are confined to the question of
unity ) as it relates to the head of the papal church, and
CEKTAINTY, AND ADVANTAGE. 213
its uncommon advair d remarkable eertaint\ afl
compared with the Aecd of the Christum church* There
pother yiew of the subject, equally striking and
inarkable, which W€ will at present merely — It
will be found by a careful consideration of the sub
that even supposing the centre of unity to be exactly-
agreed on, and the real head of the church fixed: then
other questions which arise from the complex nature of
the pope's character and offices, render it most admira-
bly impossible to determine, whether be alone, or he with
the church; whether he as bishop of Rome, or as uni-
versal pastor; whether he as temporal head of the Roman
church, or universal Roman head of all churches, &c.
&r. fee. — is t i be heard when he does speak — or is to be
judged to have actually spoken. A sUghl glance at the
remarkable work of the ^Ibbe Vamiurndj of the univer-
sity of Pavia, entitled, True Idea of the Holy See — will
give a clear notion of this part of the subject.
But there is another difficulty still more excellent than
this. Who — what — where is the church of Rome? —
What is that — of whose unity we speak? Do you mean
all the faithful? Or only all the ecclesiastics? Or only
the priests? Or only the prelates? Or only the cardinals
and the pope? Or only the pope? If any one will ex-
amine the great Latin work of the celebrated Peter de
Marca, entitled Concord of the Empire and the Priest-
hood— he will see reason enough to be satisfied, that the
very body which boasts of its unity, is itself not only in-
capable of establishing its personal identity, by any rules
of judgment established and admitted by itself; but that
in truth, taking its own principles as the guide of our
judgment, we cannot avoid concluding it entirely out of
existence!
How clear and admirable then is papal unity! — A uni-
ty predicated, first of a church, which is in fact no church
at all — but merely a religious state; secondly, of the sin-
gle head de facto of that supposed church, which twenty
nine times has had two and often three heads at the same
time; thirdly of that single head de jure, — when, they
themselves have been morally incapable of deciding as to
the mere right, twenty nine different times; fourthly, as
214 CREED OF THE CHURCH OF ROME;
to the capacity , in which that single head is to decide, —
who occupying five separate conditions, viz. bishop 01
Rome, universal pastor, successor of St. Peter and so
chief of the bishops, vicar of Christ, and temporal head
of the Roman state— and speaking in all, is to be held
the centre of unity, no one knows in which; fifthly as to
the subjective nature of the matter he utters, and of
course of the required unity— whether as to matter of fact,
or matter of faith, or matter of morals, or matter of dis-
ciple,—or whether as to all; for if of all, then it is a
unity in error, as for example, about matter of fact in the
case of Galileo where the unity said the sun revolved
round the earth, —but if not binding even in matter of
fact, then useless and nugatory, as for example in the case
of the JansenistSy whose great defence was, that the
pope erred in saying, that the propositions condemned,
were in fact, taught in the books condemned!
Admirable unity;— certain, practical, available, advan-
tageous, beyond conception.— How incomparably pre-
ferable to that Christian unity which finds in Christ its
only head, in spiritual bonds its only mode of enforce-
ment, in the graces of religion the great evidence of its
existence, in universal peace and brotherhood its grand
result, and in the w7ord of God its only rule and instru-
ment !
NUMBER XXIV.
CREED OF THE CHURCH OF ROME; HER DILEMMA AND
IMPOSTURE.
All who are but tolerably conversant with the papal
controversy—and would to God that all wrere even tolerably
conversant with it — know that the antiquity o( their faith,
is one of the standard arguments of the Papists. Their
faith, they Bay, is unalterable, the same every-where, and
always; wdiile ours is variable, novel and uncertain.
HER DILEMMA AND IMPOSTURE. 2l5
The object of this urti< point out, in tin* indu-
bitable facts of the case, two things I impoftan
in the argument, neither of which has been strongly pre-
sented in the books ; and which, seem to show \
clearly, 1. Thai Rome, upon her own -statement of the
involved in an inextricable dilemma ; and, II.
That on the basis of her present profession, she is, as an
ecclesiastical organization with a fixed creed, younger
than she herself admits Protestantism to be.
First of all — what is the creed of the church of Rome?
Of course the creed of Pius IV., at present, and for some-
what less than three centuries last past. But that creed,
had no existence before the council of Trent ; nor the
decrees of that council, out of which it is composed, any
authority before their confirmation by the Pope Pius IV.,
in full consistory on the 26th day of January, 1564;
which is declared on the face of the Bull itself and the
consistorial act, printed with the decrees. But the creed
itself was not prepared till nearly a year afterwards. Of
this, however, more particularly hereafter.
But what was the creed of Rome before this creed of
Pius IV. was issued ? What, before the council of Trent
assembled ? This is a most important question, and we
will answer it with precision and on the highest authority.
Father Paul, in his History of the Council of Trent, in-
forms us, that amongst the various points of difficulty
which embarrassed the good fathers in their early con-
gregations, one was as to the proper order of proceeding
in condemning the Lutheran heresy, as it was then called;
and another, still more grave, was, whether in regard to
the estate of holy mother church herself, it was best to
begin with reformation, or with doctrine, or to carry for-
ward both together. In regard to the former subject,
the major part considered that the proper way to proceed,
was to take up the creed of the heretics, and condemn
their errors point by point : a natural course, from which
they were diverted by considering that as the first two
heads of the Augustan (or Augsburg) confession treated
of the Trinity and the Incarnation, and expressed sub-
stantially the doctrine held by the council itself; it would
be impossible to condemn them, impolitic to approve
216 CREED OF THE CHURCH OF ROME;
them, and dangerous to pass them over in silence. In
this state of perplexity, the legates of the pope being also
without instructions from the pope, and the whole object
being to spin out the time and do as little as possible;
cardinal Pole suggested that aa all the ancient councils
had made a profession of their faith, this Ought to do the
same in the beginning of its sessions, by publishing that
of the church of Koine; and it w;is accordingly resolved
in a congregation held between the second and third
sessions of the council, to make a decree With a simple
title, and to make mention therein that they ought to
treat of religion and reformation ; but in such general
terms, that the creed might be recited, and passed over,
making another decree to defer the principal points until
another session, &c.
When this decree was formed, adds the historian, they
(the legates) imparted it to the prelates they trusted most,
amongst whom the bishop of Bitonto put to their con-
sideration, that to make a session to establish a creed made
1200 years before, and continually believed, and now abso-
lutely accepted by all, might be laughed at by those that
were captious, and ill expounded by others. Again,
continued the same prelate, to recall it (the creed) into
memory, in regard it was repeated every week in all church-
es, and ivas in the fresh memory of every one, was a thing
superfluous and affected. That the heretics should be
convinced by the confession, was true of those who erred
against it; but it was not so of the Lutherans, who believ-
ed it as the Catholics.
To all this, another prelate, the bishop of Chioza,
added some pregnant words : for, said he, the reasons
alleged might serve the heretics' turns, by saying, that
if the confession can serve to convert infidels, overcome
heretics, and confirm the faithful, they could not enforce
t'nem to believe any thing besides.
These reasons, strong as they were, failed to convince
the legates. Wherefore, on the 4th day of February,
1546, the council celebrated its third session, and after
Peter Tragliariu, archbishop of Palermo, had sung mafife,
.Ambrose Cntcrin, of Siena, a Dominican Friar and arch-
bishop of Torre, read the decree. The substance where-
HER DILEMMA AND IMPOSTURE. 217
of, says Father Paul, was, that the Synod considering
the importance of the two points to be treated of, that is.
the extirpation of heresies, and reformation of manners,
exhorteth all to trust in God and arm themselves with
spiritual weapons; and that their diligence maj have both
beginning- and progress from the grace of God, U deter*
mineth to begin from the Confession of Faith, imitating
the examples of the fathers, who in the principal councils
in the beginning of the actions have opposed that buck-
ler against the heresies, and sometimes have converted
the infidels and overcome heretics with that alone; in
WHICH ALL THAT PROFESS CHRISTIANITY DO AGREE.
And here the whole was repeated word by word, without
adding any other conclusion. And the archbishop asked
the fathers, whether the decrees pleased them. Jill an-
steered affirmatively, fyc. (See Upere di F. Paolo Sarpi,
Tom. I, lstoria del Concilio Tridentino Lilro II. This great
work has been published separately in several languages,
under the name of Pietro Soave Polano, which is an
anagram of the author's real name.)
It is, then, absolutely certain, that until the council of
Trent, some one or other of the ancient and universally
received formularies of the church of Christ, was used
and professed, as that of the church of Rome; and it
might seem from the foregoing statements that the one
used at Trent, may have been the Apostles' Greed itself.
At the very least, we are authorized to say, that from the
council of Nice, in 324, to the third session of that of
Trent, in 1546, there existed in the papal church no sepa-
rate, authorized, published, general standard of faith,
besides those common to the church of God. This seems
irresistibly established ; and her professed faith from her
origin up to the middle of the sixteenth century after
Christ, that is for the first ten a half centuries of her
apostacy, however it might differ from her real belief,
wras such as every Christian might, yea such as nearly
all Christians do, and always did, adopt. This fact es-
tablishes at once, the perfidy and hypocrisy of Rome, as
well as her comparatively modern origin; and it showrs at
the same time, how it was, that through ages of practical
corruption and apostacy, it was possible for true Christians
19
218 CKEED OF THE CHURCH OF ROME;
to remain lawfully in her bosom; a possibility which
apprehend no longer existed after they were forced to
profess the new, false, and corrupt cited oi' Trent.
It cannot in the least vary the argument, as il regi
the church of Rome, to flee for refuge to the general coun-
cils following thai af Nice; nor to tin rthodox
creeds tolerated by her, and allowed to be professed by
her subjects. For, 1, all the early creeds called orthodox,
and all the early councils really general, treated of p<
in regard to which the church of Rome has never pro-
Jessed to differ from that of Christ. This is notoriously
true of the council of Nice and its creed; of the council
of Chalcedon and its creed, which was levelled chiefly
against the errors of the Eutichians; of the first council
of Constantinople and its creed, which differed from that
of Nice chiefly in being more full and minute as to the
procession of the Holy Ghost; of the council of Ephesus,
and its decisions (rather than creed) against the Nesto-
rians. The general fact is the same in regard to the
creed of Irenceus, and equally so in regard to the famous
one of Athanasius.* 2. Because these creeds were never
of public and specific authority in the church of Rome.
3. They are irreconcileable with that of Pius IV. 4.
They are held by the great body of the church of Christ
to this day; and are even publicly professed by large por-
tions of it; standing m this respect, on the same footing
with that of Nice — as we shall presently show.
Let it however, be borne in mind that there is an era,
before the creed of Nice; during which, the creed com-
monly called the apostles'' creed, was the only one which
could have been in existence in the church of God. And
to this hour there is not a true Christian on earth, who
does not adopt this venerable standard, as expressing the
analogy of faith. For as God himself, in the OldTes-
•The reader will find all the five creeds mentioned in the text, on
pages 28 — 31 of the Catholicus Veterum Consensus, &e., in the end
of the Corpus ei Syntagma Confessionum, Geneva, l i> 5 4 . This no-
ble work, lor which the world is indebted to (Jasper Laursntius
ia out of print; and ought to be re-printed in an English dress, or Latin
and English, and possessed by every educated Protestant. What a merc\
to the world it would have been, if all modern theologians had studied it!
REB DILEMMA AND IMPOSTURE. 219
tament, has given in the ten commandments, a perfi
Summary of the rule of duty; and Christ our Saviour,
in the New, has provided us in what is commonly called
the Lord's prayer, with a perfect rule of supplication; so
the early church of God, possibly even while the spirit of
inspiration still lingered in it, has given to us this true
model of the analogy, and summary of our belief; and
all ages have consented that it is good, true, and profit-
able.
Here then, are distinct and repeated eras, in which the
church of Rome has, on her own showing, distinctly al-
tered her rule of action, but towards her own children
and towards the wTorld at large. There was an era near-
ly three centuries long, during which if her story is true,
her demauds were satisfied if her children believed the
apostles' creed; and all in her communion secured eternal
rest on that ancient platform. Then came another era,
even from Nice to Trent, wThen besides the apostles'
creed, that of Nice also was obliged to be knowTn and
believed. How then shall w<e get on? Shall we say that
men wTere saved for three centuries before Nice; and must
all be damned, in exactly the same circumstances, for
twelve centuries between Nice and Trent? And yet all
the while — the faith of the church unalterable? Or shall
we say, all before Nice are damned for want of an ex-
plicit knowledge and adoption of the faith contained in
its symbol? And still the faith of the church unalter-
able? Or must wTe confess there is no difference between
the two creeds; and so accuse the church of sending
people to hell, for not knowing, or for refusing a thing
purely indifferent or superfluous^
The reader will see at once, that instead of helping the
case of Rome it only aggravates it, to make new eras
between Nice and Trent; and that it multiplies the diffi-
culties to allowT any of the creeds, whether public or pri-
vate, promulged during the ages between those two coun-
cils— to have been authorised creeds of that church, and
to have contained points of difference between it and the
reformed churches. So also it will be perceived that the
argument pressed above, as between the apostles' creed
and that of Nice; applies with far greater force as be-
220 (REED OF THE CHURCH OF ROME;
tween the creed of Trent, and all the others. And it is
this last difficulty, which seems perfectly insuperable as
a practical one, in the controversy of Rome with Pro-
testants. .1 [ere we stand — asserting our belief, ex <ntimo,
in the apostles' creed, and in those of the councils of
Nice, Chalcedon, Constantinople, and Bphesus; on the
first of these, Koine, by her own showing, admitted all
the world to her communion and to heaven, for three cen-
turies ; andlor twelve additional centuries she demand-
ed, nothing more, than the belief of them all — if indeed
so much. But now, for nearly three hundred years, she
sends all the world to hell, just on the same terms she
sent them to heaven for fifteen centuries; and requires us
to believe a new creed, made at Trent, utterly different
from all that went before it. Different in points fui
mental; and therefore they who were saved without them,
were saved in ignorance or rejection of fundamental
points; and so, why not we? Or different in points not
fundamental; and so why pressed on us, at the risk of
our perdition, against our consciences?
This argument seems to us conclusive; the dilemma
inextricable. Is the faith of Rome invariable? Then
why do her creeds vary so shockingly? Or why have
more than one? — Is the apostles' creed identical with
that of Pius IV.? If not, they cannot both contain the
faith of Rome and that faith be at the same time, invari-
able through all time. If Rome considers them identi-
cal, why create schism by pressing that of Pius, on those
who cannot adopt it, but can joyfully adopt that of the
apostles? — But if Rome considers them, not identical —
as in truth they are not, — then the creed of Rome has
fundamentally varied — as her own standards attest: and
her faith, instead of being uniform, is more absolutely
variant from itself — nay inreconcileahle with itself — than
that of any other church true or false that Las had a
creed. —
We wait an answer; commending the subject to our
learned ecclesiastics, as being more worthy of their
thoughts than the innumerable trifles of diet, raiment,
chanting, and ail the littlenesses that makeup the round
of their empty and tawdry superstition.
HER DILEMMA AND IMPOSTURE* 22]
Let us, in the mean time, turn the other edge of the
subject; which if we mistake not, is as hard and as sharp
as the one that has been jusl laid over for trial by the
priests. We come now to speak ofthe posture ofR<
as exhibited by her present creed.
In point of historic truth, the Roman Catholic churcfi
never had any authorised confession of faith except the
creed of Pius IV. The ancient, particular churches
the city of Rome, doubtless received, like the rest of
Christendom, the apostles' creed as the symbol of their
faith; and like the rest, may have adopted the creeds of
the first four general councils named above. But the
early councils were not called by, nor out ofthe Latin
church — which indeed hardly existed, as an organized
body. They were essentially Greek councils, made up of
eastern bishops, and they set forth the creed, not of the pa-
pal, but of the Christian church of those ages. The
bodies which formed those early creeds, were no more
papal than those were which formed the creeds of the
reformation. The Synod of Dort was just about as
much a papal Synod, as the Synod of Nice was, in any
proper or historical statement of the facts of the two ca-
ses; one being a council of the reformed churches, about
things not specially relating to the papacy; the other of
Christian churches before the origin ofthe apostacy. —
The creeds ofthe early councils were intended to settle
the doctrine of the church of God, principally in regard
to the person of Christ; those of the modern reformed bo-
dies first issued, settled the creed ofthe church of God
in regard chiefly, to the work of Christ. In the former
creeds the oriental churches took the lead — and the pa-
pacy had no other part but to substitute glosses, and cor-
rupt the spirit of the doctrine, from the moment of her
apostacy. In the latter, the western churches acted; and
in regard to them, the papacy participated only so far as
she had power to kill the saints, to resist the truth, and
to fill the earth with darkness and blood. Standing at
an immeasurable distance from the real spirit of both sets
of confessions, and of all the churches wThich produced
them; she holds forth in her clenched andpolluted hands,
the creed of Trent — which is her only authorised and
19*
222 CREED OF THE CHURCH OF ROME;
veritable confession of faith; and which, like herself
amongst nominal churches, is the most unreasonable, un-
scriplural, erroneous, and corrupt, of all that ever exist-
ed under the name of Christian. This is the recorded
evidence and summary at once, of her absolute and final
apostacy from God; and the more she urges it upon the
church of Christ, the greater is its conviction thai she is
the synagogue of Satan; and the stronger are her denun-
ciations against the saints of the Most High, tor their
steadfast refusal to sell God's truth for the most absurd
and profitless of all lies, the clearer is the evidence, that
she is guided by the spirit of Antichrist, and hastening in
the footsteps of the son of perdition!
It is hardly possible to suppose a human creed, as be-
ing first perfectly made, and after that a church to match
it. Systems of opinion are of slow growth, when great
masses of men are to concur in them. But this is equal-
ly true of the church of Christ as of the church of Rome;
equally of the western as of the oriental churches. So
that whatever advantage of this kind may be demanded
and allowed to the church which holds the creed of Pius
IV., and which we admit existed and believed portions
of that creed, for above a thousand years before it was
pujt into form; the very same advantage, on the very same
principles, must be allowed to all the reformed churches
— which we trace with perfect clearness, in their memo-
rials, their fidelity, their sufferings, and their blood shed
by Rome — even from the days of the apostles of the
Lord. It is readily admitted, for example, that the pa-
pal sect may have worshipped the consecrated wafer — for
a considerable period before we find the public and set-
tled proof that this gross departure from primitive Chris-
tianity, was generally received amongst them. But the
same mode of investigation obliges us to allow, that the
churches of Christ which protested against this foolish
and brutal idolatry, had also, and for a period at least
equally extended, been firmly settled in their better and
purer faith. When Rome has found occasion to add a
chapter to her creed, enforcing some horrible dogma; the
church of God has also had occasion to add to the pub-
lic evidences of her mode of understanding divine truth,
HER DILEMMA AND IMPOSTURE. 223
some formal testimony; and in all such cases, the force
of such proof would he precisely equal — if it were not
that as the great starting point of both, \ix: the Lord
Jesus, his apostles and his word, arc all with us and
against Rome; so every conclusion must be for our anti-
quity and against hers, for our purity and for her corrup-
tion. Thus, to illustrate by the example already used;
as there is nothing in the word of God allowing the
worship of the consecrated wafer, the inference is irrest-
ible that they who refuse to worship it, are more likely
to agree with the Bible than those who worship it; that is,
they are pure and the others corrupt in faith. And for
the very same reason, — when we find that in the twelfth,
tenth, or eighth century after Christ, the Romanists wor-
shipped the consecrated wafer and the Christians refused
to do it,— the Bible being silent on the subject; the con-
clusion cannot be resisted, that the Christians had always
refused to worship it, and that the Papists had lately, or
at least long since the Bible was given, commenced the
practice. And if the Bible, instead of being silent, is
positive and clear for us, and against Rome — as in fact
it is; then that which was violently probable before — be-
comes certain; and the purity and antiquity of our faith,
and the novelty and corruption of that of Rome-— are abso-
lutely established.
In our present proof that the authorised creed of Rome
is amongst the very youngest of all existing creeds, true
or false, we shall omit the three first eras of the church of
God, in that great compass of centuries which follow the
last of the true general councils; and confine ourselves to
the fourth and last era only. We will bring nothing
from the era that preceded the great Celtic attempt at re-
formation in the south of Europe; nothing from the era
between that glorious but unfortunate attempt and the
Sclavonic effort at reformation in the east of Europe;
nothing from the era between that and the reformation of
the sixteenth century, in central Europe. It is from the
fourth era only, the era following the reformation of Lu-
ther, that we at present draw our proofs. And recent
in comparison, as this event is, when put in contrast with
the arrogant pretensions of Rome; we will show beyond
224 (REED OF THE CHURCH OF ROME;
die possibility of cavil, that the authorised creeds of Pro-
testantism, arc older than the authorised creed of Rome!
The Corpus et Syntagma Confessionum, of which we
have spoken before, contains thirteen creeds, issued by
the reformed churches, in the midst of their contentions
with Rome, in the sixteenth century. We will briefly
set down the names and dates of these ( reeds; altering
the method of the learned and accurate Gaspar Laui
tins, for one more nearly chronological. We have con-
sulted a multitude of authors, embracing nearly all the
original authorities; and believe every material statement
may be considered inexpugnable.
I. The Confession of Augsburg; presented to the Em-
peror Charles V., at the Diet of Augsburg, in 1530,
by John, duke and elector of Saxony, George, mar-
quis of Brandenburg, Earnest, duke of Lunenburg,
Philip, landrave of Hesse, John Frederick, duke of
Saxony, Francis, duke of Lunenburg, Wolfgang,
prince of Anhalt, the Senate and Magistrates of
Nurenburg, and the Senate of Reutlengen; whose
names are subscribed to the copy before us. This con-
fession was originally drawn up by Philip .Melancthon;
but, de improviso, as he expresses himself, in his apolo-
gy. It was presented to the emperor Ferdinand, in
Diets of the Empire, in 1558 and 1561. It is the creed
of the Lutheran body generally.
II. The Confession of the Four Cities, viz., of Stras-
burg (anciently called Argentina — whence the Confes-
sion Argentine,) Constance, Memmengen, and Lindeau;
whose ambassadors presented it to the emperor Charles
V., at the same diet, as the Augsburg Confession; viz.,
in 1530. It embraces twenty-three chapters, besides a
preface, introduction, and peroration.
III. The Confession of Basle, or Mullhau sen; publish-
ed in 1532, by the former city, and embraced by the
latter, in 1561.
IV. The Bohemian Confession; compiled from the
ancient confessions of the Waldenses, and submitted to
Luther, Melancthon, and the University of Wittemburg,
in 1532; afterwards approved by Vergerius, by Bucer,
by Musculus, fcc.J presented by the barons and nobles
HER DI1.I.MMA AM) IMPOSTURE. 225
of Bohemia, to king Ferdinand at Vienna, in 1535.
This is the creed of thai church which has for so many
- before, and so dreadfully even since this creed was
Composed, Suffered under the cruel persecutions of Koine.
Y. The Helvetic Confession; this ancient and remark-
able confession was drawn up by a convention from the
evangelical cities and churches of Switzerland, in lfj.'JG ;
Henry Bullinger, Oswald Myconius, Simon Gryneeus,
together with Capito and Bucer, were its original com-
pilers. It was adopted by all the churches of Switzerland;
it was sent by the hands of Capito and Bucer to Wittem-
burg, and there approved; as it was afterwards by the Pro-
testant princes at Sinalcald ; it was formally approved
by the churches of England, Scotland, France, and Hol-
land ; and by many of those of Poland, Hungary, and
Germany. It is the combined work of Zuinglians and
Calvinists ; and may perhaps be considered as having
the same relation to the former, as the Augsburg Confes-
sion has to the Lutherans.
VI. The Saxon Confession; drawn up in the year 1551,
at the Synod of Wittemburg ; and sent to the council of
Trent, then in session. The copy before us is subscribed
by John Bugexhagen, Martin Wolfius, Joachim
Camerarius, Philip Melancthon, and twenty-seven
others, pastors, professors and doctors ; after whose
names follow acts of adhesion by divers princes and
churches. This confession may be considered a more
mature reiteration, by different persons in part, and under
different circumstances, of the general sentiments of that
of Augsburg.
VII. The Confession of Wirtemburg; this also was
sent to the council of Trent, before whom it was laid on
the 24th of January, 1552, by order of Christopher, duke
of Wirtemburg ; as containing the creed of the reformed
churches in his dominions.
VIII. The French Confession; drawn up in the synod
of Paris, in the year 1559, in the midst of persecution
and affliction. It was presented by Theodore Beza to
king Charles IX., at the Colloquy of Poissy, in 1561,
in the name of the churches of France. Three originals
of it were at first made, on account of the violence of the
2'2() CREED OF THE CHURCH OF ROME,
times, and the fear of its destruction ; of which one was
sent to Geneva, and perhaps is still preserved in its
archives, one of the grandest monuments of the glory
of that city; for the confession was the work of her own
illustrious Calvin, It was signed by the queen of Na-
varre; by her Bon5 afterwards Henry IV., king of
France; by the prince of Condi;: by Louis, counl of
Nassau; by Caspar Coligxy, admiral of France; and
by the pastors and elders, who sat in that synod.
Amongst the famous signatures to the exemplar before
us, (added, we presume at the synod of Rochelle, in
1561) are those of Beza, Chandieu, du Moulin, Arnaud,
Banc, and others ; to the number, in all, of twenty-seven
representatives of the churches and departments. This
creed still continues to be the symbol of the reformed
church of France. The reader who has any taste for
such studies, is particularly referred to Quick's Synodicon,
in which the developement of this interesting creed and
church, is traced through the original memorials ; a work
which every student of ecclesiastical history ought to be
ashamed to confess he had not studied.
IX. The Belgic Confession; prepared and published
in French, in L561, as an exposition of the faith of the
persecuted churches of Flanders, Artois, and Hainault ;
confirmed and published in Dutch, by the Belgic Synod
of 1579; and then in Latin in 1581. Five articles of
this creed, viz., 1. Divine Predestination. 2. The
death of Christ and the redemption of man. 3. Man's
corruption. 4. The method of conversion to God. 5.
The perseverance of the saints ; were the subjects of the
great doctrinal controversy in Holland in the early part
of the seventeenth century, and of the decrees of the famous
synod of Dort held in 16 IS and 1619. The canons of
that illustrious synod, in the copy before us, are signed
by representatives from the churches, provinces and free
cities of Holland, and by those from eight foreign com-
monwealths, members of the synod. These names,
amounting to above eighty, to which are added a num-
ber of others of the rulers of the provinces — embrace
many of the most illustrious divines and scholars of that
age, throughout Europe ; who, after the most careful ami
HER DILEMMA AND IMPOSTURE. 227
deliberate investigation, and aftei solemnly sweaiing to
deeide only a< to what they should judge to be
taught in the word oi God ; unanimousl) approved and
scribed these clear, moderate, evangelical, but m
ibullv misrepresented decisions. We recommend to the
reader, a small volume published at Utica, L831, con-
taining Di\ Thomas Scott's translation and observations
on the articles and events of this synod ; to which is
added by the anonymous editor, A Harmony of the Can*
fessions, «Sv., in which Jive of the confessions mentioned
in tins list, and seven more modern, are collated on a
number of the leading doctrines of Christianity. The
Belgic Confession) is to this day the symbol of the Dutch
rmed churches in all quarters of the earth.
X. The English Confession; in 15-17, Cranmer set
forth twelve homilies) the liturgy was compiled in 1548,
by Cranmer, Somerset, Ridly, and Peter Martyr, from the
Missals of Sarum, Bangor, York, Hereford and Lincoln,
and revised and corrected by Bucer, in 1551; but before
this, in 1536, the Convocation had agreed on five articles
concerning faith, and five concerning ceremonies; the
'articles of faith ,' were composed in 1552, and the Cate-
chism in 1553. But in 1562, under Elizabeth, the work
was completed, by the adoption and publication, by the
convocation, called the Synod of London; when the
Thirty Nine Articles, JeicelVs Apology, and NoweWs
Catechism, were aproved and published; the first to pre-
serve the internal union of the church in doctrine and
worship; the second against the calumnies of the Papists:
and the third to imbue the minds of youth with pure
principles. Humphrey, in Vita Jeicelli, p. 177. says the
Jipology was "approved by the Queen, published by the
counsel of all the bishops and other clergy, as it was also
composed and written by the author, as the public con-
fession of the Catholic and Christian faith of the En-
glish church, in which is taught our agreement with the
German, Helvetic, French, Scotch, Genevese and other
pure churches." This is important to remember, a^ the
English was the only thoroughly Prelatical church of the
reformation; and as these venerable standards thus com-
pletely imbued with the spirit of that glorious era, still
228 CREED 01 THE CHURCH OF ROME;
remain the symbols of that church, and substantially oi
all those affiliated to her. Divine right goes hack only
to that bloody bigot Archbishop Laid; and Puscyism
is but of yesterdaj .
XL Confession of the Peletinate; published by John
Casimiii, Count Palatine of the Rhine and Duke of Ba-
varia, as containing the faith of the churches in his do-
minions; but was drawn up under the eye, if not by the
hand of his illustrious lather Frederick 111., Elector
Palatine, &c; and by him avouched and proclaimed in
the Diet of the German Empire, in 1566.
XII. The Scottish Confession; the Protestant church
in Scotland began to assume a regular form about the
year 1560, by the labours chiefly of John Knox, the
friend and disciple of Calvin; during that year the re-
formers sent a petition and confession to the Scotch Par-
liament, containing a statement of their doctrines, with a
protestation against the errors of Rome. The first Gen-
eral Assembly of the kirk in Scotland met on the 20th of
December, 1561; and the same year, the First Book of
Discipline, composed by Knox, was presented to the Con-
vention of Estates. The received Confession of Faith,
was published in the vulgar tongue in 1568; and was
solemnly adopted in Parliament, as the national faith, in
the year 1580. The Covenant was adopted by the Scot-
tish king, nobles, clergy, church and nation, in 1588;
wras revived in 1638; and was accepted by the English
Parliament, church and people, in 1643. In June of this
last named year, the famous Assembly of Divines met at
Westminster; it was called by the Long Parliament of
England, equally out of all the counties of that kingdom,
and consisted of one hundred and twenty divines— to
whom ten peers and twenty commoners were added by
Parliament; and afterwards a few commissioners from
Scotland wrere incorporated with the body. The stand-
ards of doctrine, church order, and discipline agreed on
by this illustrious Assembly, were approved by the civil
and ecclesiastical authorities of England and Scotland;
and remain to this day the professed standards of all the
Presbyterian churches throughout the world, that speak
the English language; and which unitedly constitute,
HER DILEMMA AND IMPOSTURE. 229
perhaps, the most extended, united, and efficient portion
of the Protestant churches.
XI I T. The Polish Confession; agreed to with unani-
mous consent, in the Synod of Ozenger ; to which was
added the Conciliafo on the Lord's Supper, agreed on in
the General Synod of Sendomir in the year 1570, by the
evangelical ministers of the Helvetic Confession, of the
Augsburg Confession, and of the ancient Waldenses,
scattered through Great and Little Poland, Lituania and
Samagitia; and at the same time, and by the same au-
thority, a brief Confession of the Mediator. These con-
fessions and acts were confirmed, and embraced by vari-
ous general synods, as those of Wladislau, Cracow, Xan-
sen, Petercau, Torunen, &c. &c; in the subscriptions to
which are found the names of all the great lights of the
early Polish churches.
We offer no apology to the reader for this long and
minute array of facts. Indeed we rather suppose, that
unless his knowledge is far greater, or his curiosity far
less than is common, he will thank us for the labour and
time bestowed in gathering and setting them in order.
Looking at this phalanx of churches and nations, there
are three points of very great interest, and of some im-
portance in the present argument to which we call atten-
tion for a moment. The first is, the agreement of these
creeds amongst themselves; the second, their accordance
with, or at least their estimate of the ancient creeds of
which we have spoken in the forepart of this paper; and
the third, their repugnance to the creed of Pius IV. — the
creed of Rome. In regard to the first of these points,
we need only say, every scholar knows that all the re-
formed churches considered their general agreement in
fundamental truth not only real, but indispensable; while
every true child of God has sweet and indwelling expe-
rience, that there is, of a truth, allowred to us here below,
a fellowship one with another, as long as we walk in
light. — (1 John i. 7.) To any wrho may have neither
this knowledge nor experience, we add, that a Harmony
and Concordance of these thirteen Confessions, digested
into articles embracing the principal heads of religion,
have been actually and long ago formed; of which one,
20
230 CREED OF THE CHURCH OF ROME;
Containing thirteen articles, thus digested, is printed in
the beginning of the Corpus et Syntagma^ several I •
referred to. On the second head of the three above stat-
ed, we cite as examples only, that the Confession and
Exposition of the Swiss churches, towards the end of the
xi. chapter, adopts the symbols of Nice, Constantinople,
Ephesus and Chalcedott, with that of Athanasius, all bj
name, and again still more expressly, towards tie- close
of the xvii. chap., the apostles' creed; that the French
Confession, in its v. section, names and approves the
apostles', the Nicene, and the Athanasian creed; that tht
English Confession does the same thing in its viii. arti-
cle; and that the Confession of the Palatinate, after doing
the same thing, repeats and largely paraphrases the apos-
tles5 creed, as the particular expression of its own faith.
And as to the third point, a fair and minute comparison
of the Protestant confessions with that of Rome, will
show that they differ from it irreconcileably, 1. As to the
object of religious worship; 2. As to what is the word oi
God; 3. As to the authority of Scripture; 4. As to the na-
ture, constitution, authority, and objects of the church of
Christ; 5. As to the nature, the penalty, and the remis-
sion of sin; 6. As to the mode of access to God; 7. As to
the nature and means of regeneration, sanctification, and
practical holiness of heart and life; 8. As to the future
state of the dead. These are samples only; and it must
be confessed, every one of the points stated is fundamen-
tal in all religion, and vital in the Christian system.
Now for this venerable standard of Rome, — this creed
of Pins IV. We have before our eyes, the Canons and
Decrees, in Latin, of the most holy and cecuminical tri-
dentine council. The edition is that of Brussels 1688,
in 24rno.; published summa privilegii. From this we
find that the first session of the council was held on the
L3th of December, 1545; and father Paid tells us this
session was principally taken up with singing a mass
to the Holy Ghost. We find that the creed repeated in
the third session] celebrated on the 4th of February, 1546,
was word lor word the creed of the first council of Con-
stantinople, which was the third general council; a creed
nearly identical with that of Nice. We find that the
RER DILEMMA AND IMPOSTURE. 2 1
twenty- fifth and last session of the council was held on
the third and fourth days of December, 1563 — about
eighteen years after the first session; and that the council
broke up cursing all heretics in the gross, and by accla-
mation: a work which father Paul tells us the cardinal of
Lorraine of the bloody house of Guise, was the loudest and
heartiest of all the lathers, in performing. We have be-
fore said that the Bull of confirmation of the council was
<d on the 26th of January, 1564; that Bull, occupy-
ing seven pages, is printed at the end of the Decrees and
Canons, and is signed by Pius IV., and by twenty six
cardinals, making the consistory in which the approval
Was recorded.
But let the reader remark, that although the canons and
ent form the basis of the Roman creed; they
are not that very creed itself. On the night of December
24th, 1559, John Angelo de Medici was elected pope;
and afterwards took the name of Pius IV. This man,
says John Jewell, bishop of Sarum, one of the best and
most learned men of his day — became pope by corrupt-
ing the cardinals, purchasing votes, and undermining
his rivals; and when pope, imprisoned and murdered
cardinal Caraffa, who had been his tool in rising; in
short, that he was a simoniacal pope, a heretic, and a
man of blood. This John Jkngelo de .Medici, drew up and
recorded in the apostolic chancery, on the 9th of Decem-
ber, 1564, a Bull, entitled Super forma juramenta profes-
sions fidei, and beginning, Injunctum nobis, »S*c.; which
contains and sets forth the present true, real and only dis-
tinctive public and authorised creed of the holy Catholic,
Roman and apostolic church — the mother and mistress of
churches! A creed as enormous in substance, as it is
unauthorised in its origin; a creed at once novel, schis-
matical and corrupt, proving the fact and establishing the
period of the complete and final apostacy of the church
of Rome; but whether true or false, much later than most
of the creeds of the reformation — younger than man]
them by at least a generation!
This argument, like the one that preceded it, seems to us
perfectly conclusive. And if we are capable of apprecia-
ting the force of truth, the two together irresistibly es-
233 ELIZA ANN O'NEAL, AND HER RESCUED CHILD.
tablish; 1. That if Rome gives a true account of herself,
she is involved in an inextricable dilemma with respect
to her creed: 2. That the true state of the case establish-
es upon her, the most gross and insolent imposture in
regard to the whole subject.
We commend the ease to the consideration of Protest-
ants, that they may see how strong and noble a cause
is theirs; and to rapists, that they may discover how-
idle and unfounded are the delusions to which the] trust,
and how just is the scorn with which right reason and
true learning, never cease to regard the impudent char-
latanism of their priests.
NUMBER XXV.
ELIZA ANN O'NEAL, AND HER RESCUED CHILD.
The statement published below, appeared in the Sun
newspaper, of the 27th of July (1839.) That paper i>
the most extensively circulated, of any published in Bal-
timore; and being a penny paper circulates amongst those
portions of our population from which our more pretend-
ing six pennies, are excluded. The reader will observe
also, that the statement is sworn to, and the signature of
a city magistrate added. It is impossible therefore, but
that the knowledge of the transaction thus made public,
must have reached all directly interested in it; if not the
entire Baltimore community. After the lapse of a month,
no denial is published on the part of the Papists; whence
we conclude the statement is true.
No notice whatever is taken of the audacious conduct
of the Papists, by any of our city papers; nor by papers
published elsewhere, so far as we have observed or heard;
and the statement appeared in the Sun, as an adrer/ise-
ment! What free, independent, disinterested, vigilant,
and Christian-like guardians of public virtue, order and
ELIZA ANN O'NEAL, AND HER RESCUED CHILD.
freedom, our newspaper conductors are! A public insti-
tution attempts by fraud and violence to retain the ille-
gal possession of a child, against its own and only pa-
rent; and this avowedly upon principles of religions pro-
selytism and intolerance, alike insulting to the public
faith, and contemptuous to the public authorities; and not
a voice is raised to vindicate religion, to uphold the ma-
jesty of the law, or to enforce the sacred claims of nature
herself! Oh! land to be pited, where vice no longer
fears either punishment or exposure; where the friends of
virtue regard with indifference or at least in silerlce, the
most atrocious violations of her firmest safeguards.
This is the fifth or sixth case in which some of the Pa-
pists of Baltimore have attempted to possess themselves
of the female children of Protestants — by fraud, force, or
seduction, within six years. The one immediately pre-
ceding this, — the case of Eliza Burns, was foiled by
the great diligence and promptitude of the child's friends.
Our readers will remember the case, as we published sev-
eral articles about it; and we are not likely to forget it, as
General Williamson and young Mr. Tiernan threatened
to put us to death, for our share in rescuing the orphan;
even although it was done by due process of law. (See
pp. 137--59 of this vol.) Here again the benevolence of
the priests and nuns, and the most pious intentions of
their male and female coadjutors in society, have been
rendered abortive; and now by rather a shorter process.
The mother very properly went and took her child.
And must we constantly remind the Papists, that the
reformed in Baltimore are four to their one; and that
while it is unreasonable to expect four men to be fright-
ened by one, it is still more absurd in the weaker party to
provoke a just indignation by ceaseless outrages, and to
put to naught their own best safeguard, namely strict
obedience to law? The newspapers may be muzzled by
their patronage, or the fear of losing it; politicians by
their votes, or the danger of not getting them. But the
mass of men seek no offices, own no newspapers, have
no favors to ask, and dispise all attempts at intimidation.
This great mass of Protestant men, and as the present
case showrs, women too — has borne already more than
20*
234 ELIZA ANN O'NEAL, ANT) HER RESCUED CHILD-
ever was borne before in any other land, with an insult-
ing, domineering, superstitious minority; who under the
dictation of corrupt and insolent ecclesiastics, lose no
occasion of doing acts, which are intolerable; and which
indicate what is to be expected, as they get more
and more foothold amongst us. We advocate the
strictest obedience to law; therefore we are for obliging
those who thus dispise and violate it, to keep it towa
Others, while they enjoy its protec Hon the m sel \ I ■>. And
therefore, cordially rejoice, at every proof that the com-
munity will no longer tolerate the audacious transgres-
sions, to which the priests and nuns have been accus-
tomed.
TO THE CITIZENS OF BALTIMORE.
The following statement of facts is respectfully submitted to the citizens
of Baltimore, for their consideration: —
Tn the spring of 1829, I resided in Buren street, near the jail, at that
time I was dreadfully afflicted with the inflammatory rheumatism, to so
deplorable an extent that I had but little hope of recovery — was obliged
to break up housekeeping, and, by the advice of a physician, remove
into the country. I had two children at that time, who are still livins:
one of them I determined to take with me, and a lady of the Protestant
profession hearing of my severe afflicted state, came to my residence, and
kindly offered to take the other child, (a little girl,) educate and raise her
as her own, to which I consented. A Catholic lady of my acquaintance,
hearing this, came to my house, and insisted positively that the lady
should not have the child; that she valued her soul more than ten thous-
and worlds, and said that she could and would get her into the Female
Orphan Asylum as a boarder, and that she would pay her board. She
promised me faithfully that I should have my child again, in case of my
recovery, (of this fact I have witness,) statmg at the same time that the
child should never be bound out from that institution. I finally consent-
ed to resign my child to the Catholic lady, in consideration of this pro-
mise, and she was accordingly entered as a boarder in that institution.
After several years of severe affliction, I fortunately partially recover-
ed my health, and believing myself to be capable of taking care of mv
child again, I determined to take her with me to Virginia. J made ap-
plication for my daughter at the institution, to the Sister Superior, in the
month of June, 1838. The Sister informed me that they were not per-
mitted to leave the institution until they had made their first communion,
and that my daughter would make it in 1839, at which time I could have
her. With this statement 1 was perfectly satisfied, and returned to the
country.
Last May, I again came to Baltimore, for the purpose of taking my
daughter home with me. On applying this second time, a similar state-
ment was made, with the additional information that my daughter had
not made her first Communion, was net at preseut pious enough to do so,
and that it was postponed until another year.
ESCAPE OF A NUN, &C. 235
My daughter hearing this fftl much grieved, and requested me to wait
On the ladies who constitute the Board of Directors. In accordance with
my child's wish, I waited on Mrs. i iernao9and ihe tdvited me to wait
on the Board, stating thai there «ras no doubt that they would give me my
ehUd, and treating mo with irreat Kindness and politeness. I DCZt waited
on the Hoard, (the 1st Monday in July, I think it was,) I stated my wish
to them; thev questioned me as to who was my father confessor; I told
them that I did not confess to any person. Tie \ m \t enquired w ho was
my teacher; I answered that God was my teacher. The President of the
Board then remarked, that I was a pretty woman to raise a child, and
that I was not tit to have her — in which sentiments the other ladies
thought proper to express their concurrence. I told them that 1 had been
several times on this errand, and had not gained any satisfaction. The
President then thought proper to inform me — "You have got satisfaction
now; you had better go home, goto the priest, read your book, and then
you will be better satisfied." I then observed that I would have my
child; to which the answer was — "If you get her, )ou get her by force."
On Thursday last, July 25th, 1S39, I hired a hack, and, in company
with two female friends, who went to protect me, took my child, assist-
ed her in the carriage, and brought her away. A person there in the ap-
pearance of a gentleman, attempted to take her from the arms of her
mother. I regret I do nol know who this valiant individual is; because
if I did, his name should be published through the papers of this city:
but thanks to my female protectors, we conquered him.
ELIZA ANN O'NEAL.
Personally appeared before me, one of the Justices of the Peace, in and
for the city of Baltimore, Eliza Ann O'Neal, and made oath that
the above statement is a true account of the occurrence as above detailed.
Sworn before JEREMIAH STORM.
NUMBER XXVI.
ESCAPE OF A NUN FROM THE CARMELITE PRISON IN
AISQUITH STREET.
On the 18th of August, (1839) being the sabbath day,
about noon, a nun, who proved to be Olevia Neal, for-
merly of Charles Co. Md., but for the last nineteen
years, a prisoner called sister Isabella; succeeded in
getting out of the Carmelite nunnery in Aisquith street,
and after being repulsed by several families, was received
23P) ESCAPE OF A NUN FROM THE
and protected by a worthy citizen, living a few doors
from the convent.
The scene of operations lying not many squares from
the church of which the writer of these lines is pastor, a
member of his congregation on his return home from
church in the forenoon, w;is at the spot just in thru* to
see and know the real state of affairs; and hastening
back, took us, and several influential citizens directly to
the poor nun. We found on our arrival a crowd collect-
ing; a prodigious excitement getting up, in consequence
of an attempt to force back the nun into the convent; and
no body disposed to take the direction of affairs. In
this crisis, we assumed the responsibility of directing the
mayor to be sent for — and the woman to be protected, if
necessary by force On the arrival of that officer, the
family who had protected the nun turned her over to his
care; and he took her to the hospital of the Washington
Medical University, for present protection and care.
The nun stated that she had entered the convent at a
very early age; that she had long desired to escape; that
on one occasion before, she had gotten out, and was met
and carrried back by priest Gildea. And she demanded
in the most earnest and piteous manner the protection of the
people. Many rumours soon got afloat, — which aided in
exasperating the public mind; but whether they were
true or not, we shall not now enquire.
The natural consequence of such an event happening
in open day, in the midst of a large city, and on the sab-
bath day — was a tremendous agitation in the public mind.
During the sabbath afternoon and night, and Mondaj
and Tuesday — many thousands visited the scene of the
escape; and for hours together blocked up the streets ad-
joining the convent. A feeling of intense interest and
settled indignation amongst the Protestants, and of sullen
fury and deep shame amongst the Papists — was widely
prevalent, and strongly expressed in many ways. And
there was some real or feigned apprehension that a mob
might tear down the convent. To prevent which, some
hundreds of troops were kept under arms, part of Sun-
day, Monday and 'Tuesday nights.
The Papists have industriously circulated the report,
that the nun is deranged. This maybe true; but if it is,
CARMELITE PRTSON IN AISQUITH STREET. 237
it does not justify the Papists in keeping a prison in
Aisquith street. But we may observe, (1) Thai it' it is
deemed needful to the popish cause to provr her insane,
there is a lawful, usual and fair mode of trying that ques-
tion; let a writ dc lunatico inquirendo he issued, and
twelve men find the fact on their corporal oaths. (2.)
This is the universal charge made in all such cases;
Milly McPhersQfl was mad, .Maria Monk was mad, &.c.
&c. (3.) We had a personal interview with the woman,
and she seemed to us sane enough; so she did also, to
other disinterested gentlemen, competent to decide, both
professionally and otherwise, in such a case.
Much pains have been taken to heap odium on us for
our agency — which was very small — in this affair, and to
misrepresent our course, feelings and principles. We
have not space now to rebuke such pestilent slanderers.
But we must say we have done just what we think every
honest man, who loves liberty, virtue, and God, ought to
do for any poor female who falls in his way in great tribu-
lation, and demands his aid. We shall do the same or
more, every time we have the opportunity; and thank
God for the honor thus put on us.
Our mind is clear that people have in view of the law,
as much right to be Papists as to be any thing else; and
if they choose, they have the right to shut up their doors
and stay in their houses, and call themselves nuns. But
we positively deny, that any priest or other man, has a
right to keep a prison on his own private account or on
the account of any foreign prince, or potentate whether
he be called pope or king ; and in that prison lock up
free American citizens and keep them there, subject to
stripes and chains; the laws, meanwhile, having no power
or access therein. And we assert and maintain, that the
civil authorities are bound to examine into such cases,
and to abate such prisons, like any other nuisance; and to
punish their vile keepers like any other public criminals;
yea and to use, if need be, the power of the state for
that end. And still farther, we contend that if the rulers
will not do it, society ought to reject such rulers as un-
worthy— and as accessaries to all the villany they con-
nive at. And finally, if there remains no other mode of
238 ESCAPE OF A NUN, &C
redress against intolerable evils, society en masse is di-
vinely commissioned to rise and correct them. The right
of revolution itself i*> a sacred and an inalienable right;
much more the right, to protect the weak, the oppressed,
the suffering, — when in God's Dame they demand it at
our hands.
It is perfectly true that every law oughl to be exactly
obeyed; but there is no law tor the priests to keep a
prison tor women. It is also true that the public security
depends entirely on universal obedience to law; but se-
curity of person, is as sacred and as precious a right as
security of property; and ought to be as rigidly en-
forced. Let the laws be supreme; this is what we de-
mand. But let it be every law, all the laws: the laws
which protect the personal rights of Olevia Neal, as real-
ly as those which protect the property of priest Gildea; the
laws which make the law itself supreme, as fully as any
other portion of the law.
Thank God, the stupor which rested on the public
mind is dissipated. Discussion is no longer considered
sedition. The people see that we have told them only
the truth. The public mind is turned to this great and
growing danger, and the press and the public authorities
of this Protestant city and country — must at last discover
that we are free and Protestant; and that we intend to
continue both, at all hazards. If a crisis must come to
decide these questions; as well now, as at another time.
We shall resume this subject — when we have more
space and leisure.
N u M b i: B xxvii.
THE OLE via VEAL THE UABMEL1TJ ;.L-
ED SI8TEB ISABELLA.
The article which immediately precedes this, contains
a rapid sketch of the principal facts connected with the
escape of the poor Carmelite, whose case excited such a
profound sensation. According to our promise we now
.:ne the subject, which is indeed altogether too mo-
mentous to be allowed to pass by without a deliberate and
thorough consideration; and which we are all the better
prepared to discuss and to decide, after the delay which
occurred, and in the exercise of that tranquillity to
which the public mind is again restored.
We consider it not amiss to say, that our whole aims
in the treatment of this sad affair, are public; and that we
shall not willingly or needlessly intrude upon private mat-
ters, or wound private feelings. At the same time we
have a great public duty to perform; and we shall dis-
charge it, in the fear of God, and in utter disregard of the
wrath of man. The poor Carmelite, will doubtless never
see these lines; and therefore any expression of our pro-
found compassion for her misfortunes and our deep in-
dignation against the treachery and wiles which have
brought her to ruin, and as they say to madness — would
be alas! but idle words. How consoling is the assurance
that there is a land where the weary are at rest; where
the victim is at last set free; and where the rod and the
snare of the wicked and the oppressor, are broken in
pieces! In that bright world, we hope to meet this poor,
oppressed, deluded, broken-hearted child of sorrow, face
to face, once more; and to find, that indeed, while the
strong ones of earth derided her, and the cunning ones en-
trapped her past deliverance ; God her Saviour, gently
guided her along her thorny path, and bore her safely
through the fire, and through the deep waters, in the
bosom of his love!
But we have much to say that requires a firmer mood
than this. Let us say it all, even in the solemn consci-
240 THE CASE OF OLEVIA NEAL
ousness that it cannot aid her, who is the chief actor in
the scene. It may at least, turn aside some other victim
from the path of sorrow; or it may arouse the sleeping
justice of society; or at the least, it will abide, as a testi-
mony— a deliberate, conscientious, Uftterrified testimony
— for liberty and truth— against hypocrisy and crying
wrong.
On the 18th day of August, (1S39) which was the
Lord's day, wre had preached as usual at 10 o'clock in
the forenoon, to the congregation which for nearly seven
years we have ministered to in spiritual things — in Balti-
more. About noon, and immediately after the public
worship of God was concluded, a very valued friend, who
is (as his father before him was) one of the most respect-
able men in the city, called upon us, at the house of
another esteemed friend, who is also one of our most res~
spected citizens; and briefly informed us, that a nun had
just rr*ade her escape from the Convent in Aisquith street;
that she was as yet protected by a worthy citizen, whose
house she had entered; that a crowd was collecting; that
there were rumors of an immediate attempt to carry her
back by force to the convent; that no one seemed to
know what was best to be done; and that our presence
was desired on the spot. Without a moment's hesita-
tion, we all three went to the scene of the affair, which
appeared to threaten such instant and serious results. —
As we went, the writer of this article called on a gentle-
man, who is on all accounts one of the most influential in
the city, and who is a member and class-leader in the
Methodist Episcopal church; both those before named
being members of our own church. We called here for
two purposes — (I.) to learn the name of the nearest ma-
gistrate; (2) to carry with us, the weight of the presence
of the principal citizens in the immediate neighborhood
of the commotion. A similar call was made by the other
gentlemen, on one or two individuals; and in a few mo-
ments we arrived at the corner of Aisquith and Douglass
streets — accompanied by men, above all suspicion — and
accustomed to be looked to, as the very patterns of civic
and social propriety, When we arrived on the ground,
we found a mob of just the same kind of men in great
THE CARMELITE NUN. 241
part, already there! It is needless to add, that in such
hand- jood cause, was not onljf sale but sacred.
After a l>i u f exchange of sentiments with a few groups
of friends — we entered the house adjoining that in which
the nun was; which was occupied by a personal friend
and member of our church, a widow, who was also the
proprietor of the house into which the fugitive had been
received. At our request the master of the other house
came in to us, and at our suggestion sent immediately
for the mayor of the city; while we passed into his house
with the Rev. Mr. Poisal, of the Methodist Episcopal
church, and the friend who came first for us. Here we
suggested that a few resolute men who could be relied
on for prudence and courage, should be let into the house;
and that all force should be resisted by force, till the
mayor should arrive. This was immediately done.
We take leave to say that after mature consideration,
we see nothing better than what was suggested on the
instant. If the woman had been carried back by force,
no human power could have prevented a bloody and
most fearful riot; which in its progress would have in-
volved the whole city, and covered it with mourning.
Besides this, the nun was free and of full age — and there-
fore, without warrant of law, no one had a right to mo-
lest her; and common humanity, honour and religion re-
quired that she should have the protection she piteously
demanded. Still further, the glorious axiom of the
common law holds with us, — that even the humblest and
poorest man's house is his castle — and may be defended
lawfully, against the whole world; and especially against
lawless attempts to break into it. And finally, the mayor
as chief executive officer of the city — was the proper
person to take charge of the whole affair.
It has been said that no one had any thought of using
force; or of taking back the nun without her free consent.
Such statements are false; they were never thought of,
till it was found wrhat would be the certain effect of an
appeal to force; and they can be disproved by hundreds
of men, of unimpeached and unimpeachable veracity.
When the nun's escape was discovered in the convent,
men and women issued from it, and ran in all directions
21
242 THE CASE OF OLEVIA NEAL
up and down the streets in pursuit and anxious search for
her, after she had luckily found shelter. Priest GlLDEA,
who is confessor to the convent, was very soon on the
ground — and repeatedly attempted and positively insisted,
again and again, on having an interview with the nun.
And not only Papists, but even Protestants, vociferous-
ly demanded the instant restoration of the nun to the
convent, with or against her will; — until the decided in-
dications of public indignation awed down such audacious
and mad projects. These facts are all perfectly notorious;
and the names of leading persons, who urged and favored
such a disposal of the nun, are in everybody's mouth. —
So perfectly wrell established was the fact of a contempla-
ted rescue, and so fatal did such an attempt appear to us
to be; that while we were in the same house wTith the nun,
and while the matter was undergoing a vociferous discus-
sion out of doors, we proposed, and all within approved
the idea — that while we defended the house to the last ex-
tremity, the nun should change her dress and be privately
removed, if the mayor did not speedily arrive; so as at
once to defeat the attempted rescue, and keep matters in
statu quo; and the execution of the project was prevent-
ed only by the prompt appearance of that officer. — The
truth is, the Papists wTere by no means prepared for the
intense feeling which was so suddenly manifested through-
out the city; and when they saw the real state of things,
they became satisfied that a change of plan was indis-
pensable; and then without hesitation denied their former
intentions and ate their former wrords.
What it takes us many words to relate, passed very
quickly. While it wras passing, wre had, at the Carme-
lite's request, a personal interview with her, in the pres-
ence of the two gentlemen who entered the house in
which she was, with us; and also of several members of
the family residing in the house. This interview was
brief, but decisive. On its own account, as well as on
account of the public attempts to prove madness on her;
or as Dr. Miller has not hesitated to call her, a u perfect
maniac;" wre will try to give the reader an accurate im-
pression of the scene.
We were ushered by a narrow winding stair-way, into
a small upper chamber of a house only one room deep,
THE CARMELITE NUN. 243
and of very low pitch. The front windows of this room,
were immediately on the street, about ten or twelve feel
above the pavement; and under them were hundreds of
men violently excited about the poor sufferer, who could
see and hear every thing, if it so pleased her. At a hack
window, seated on a low chest — in a posture of meek
and quiet sorrow, was the unhappy Carmelite. She ap-
peared to be a female somewhat above thirty — with a full
and rather pleasant face, and large black eyes. Her ap-
pearance was that of a person in ordinary health; and her
dress the peculiar and shocking costume of her order. She
held in her hand a white handkerchief of very fine tex-
ture; and with becoming modesty instinctively hid her feet
under her dress — so that the imperfect and barbarous pro-
tection for them, required as we knew, by her order, might
not be visible. Her arms were bare to the elbow — and
exhibited such an aspect of exposure and hardship, as to
excite some suspicion in our mind, as to her condition
in the convent. Indeed we expressed these doubts as
kindly as we could, during the conversation, by a ques-
tion as to her quality; whether, namely, she had been a
sister or a domestic? She replied humbly but firmly, a
sister. We repeat these things, because they give the
reader a just idea of what we wish to convey; and be-
cause they show what was our own state of mind, at the
time. We were indeed deeply interested in all that tran-
spired, but never more perfectly qualified to see, to hear,
and to decide, on the things of which we speak.
We took a seat at the side of the nun. Mr. Poisal
sat on the edge of a bed, on the other side of her. He
had gone up stairs a minute or two before us; and as we
entered the room he said to her, this is Mr. B., naming
us. Her reply went to our heart; she extended her hands
towards us, and repeating our name, said almost convul-
sively— " I claim your protection!" May God do so, and
more, to every man's soul, who shall dare to outrage na-
ture and heaven, by resisting such an appeal in such a
case! We told her we had come to her, for no other
purpose.
A rapid conversation, in which several took part, im-
mediately ensued, from which we learned in substance;
244 THE CASE OF OLEVIA NEAL
that her name was Olevia Neal, originally from Charles
Co. Md., but now called sister Isabella; that she had
been put into the convent very young, (the precise age
not stated by her; but as some have said at six, or as
others say at sixteen years of age,) and been in it nine-
teen years; that she had been long anxiously Irving to
get out, and had once succeeded in making her escape
into the street, when she was met and forcibly carried
back and subjected to severe penances; that having again
escaped, her anxious desire was for present protection, a
desire she repeatedly expressed; that however, she wished
all to understand that she did not desire to change her re-
ligion, but only her condition as a nun; that she did not
wish any violence offered either to the nuns or priests on
her account, against w7hom indeed, she said she was not
disposed to make any accusation; that she felt agitated
and unlit for any extended conversation on the subject
of her past trials, and asked only for security, repose and
tranquillity till she could collect her faculties and decide
more maturely on her future line of conduct; which was
the more necessary, she said, as they had told her that
her mind was weak; and that having no friends in ichom
she could confide, she ivas obliged to throw herself on the
public for protection.
Much more was said, which we do not think it worth
while to repeat at present. But as a sample of the gene-
ral style of conversation, and as a proof that she is a
"perfect maniac " we will detail one item more minutely.
She was asked if a nun had not escaped some months
ago?
Yes, it was I: — was her reply.
How happens it that you were back again?
I was met by a gentleman, immediately after getting
out, and carried back.
Who was that gentleman?
No answer.
Was it Priest Gildea?
Yes sir.
What was done to you, when you were carried back?
There are penances to undergo. I was subjected to
1hem.
THE CARMELITK NUN. 245
Did they whip your
No answer; but amournful smile.
Did they imprison you?
I have said I endured the usual penance.
She was not pressed farther on this painful subject; be-
ing evidently unwilling to speak fully of it. We must
say in explanation, that we had known for some time the
fact of the former escape of a nun; and also Mr. Gil-
dea's agency in her re-capture. And we shall show be-
fore we conclude this article, that the questions as to the
stripes and chains, were not idle or unsuitable; but most
pertinent, and most natural The priests must not sup-
pose that we neglect their affairs; nor that we tell always
all we know of their matters. We have indeed no spies,
and no secret machinations. But there are in Baltimore
eighty thousand pairs of Protestant eyes and ears; and the
Papists have taken so much pains to make us odious,
that others in revenge, unduly honour us. So few pro-
minent men are willing to stand boldly on the Lord?s
side in this great controversy; that the thousands of pri-
vate persons who are meditating it and turning it in their
thoughts — do not forget even the humble instruments,
whom God condescends to employ in his controversy
with the beast and the false prophet.
The poor Carmelite, we have admitted, said more than
we think it necessary now to repeat. She is reported to
have said much which wTe did not hear; and cannot there-
fore avouch as true. Enough was known for undisput-
able truth, to produce the most intense excitement in the
public mind. When to this was added the many dread-
ful things reported to have been stated by her, and those
natural exaggerations to which all rumors seem liable in
their progress from man to man, it is not to be wander-
ed at, that the whole city was moved: nor bv consequence
that the intervention of the mayor, first rendered neces-
sary by the violent pretensions of the Papists, was after-
wards considered not less so by the excessive agitation
of the whole community. When he arrived on the
ground he found the larger portion of the crowd so de-
cidedly Protestant, that the proposal to take the nun to
the Maryland hospital, which though a public institution
21*
246 THE CASE OF OLEVIA NEAL
is under the care of another set of nuns, was positively
rejected by the crowd; and she was taken by general con-
sent, for present protection to the Washington Medical
College, where there is an infirmary under Protestant
influence.
Our personal agency in this affair has now been fully
stated. It was throughout unpremeditated, and obvious-
ly called for by Divine Providence. We do not regret it;
our only regret is that we were not able to do more avail-
able service, than we fear was done, to an unfortunate
fellow being who has been placed by untoward circum-
stances in such a position as to render it difficult, if not
impossible to serve her effectually. We earnestly hope
that the day is near at hand, when every honest man will
feel it a duty and an honour, to do more than we have
been able to do; and which would not be worth the nam-
ing, but for the threats of personal violence; the placards
inviting the Papists to pull down our house and church;
the newspaper inuendos, and the papal clamour that the
whole of this excitement is traceable to our anti-papal la-
bours— with more of alike description; w^hich have unit-
edly induced us to record with some minuteness, our real
agency in the affairs of the nun. And now in dismissing
this portion of the subject, we have merely to say, that
our mind and heart are fully settled on this whole sub-
ject; and reproach, danger, and death itself are to us,
lighter than chaff, in comparison with keeping a good con-
science, doing our Master's work, and finishing our course
with joy. Neither do we forget, that they who bound
themselves by a great curse to eat nothing till they had
slain Paul; swore and plotted only to their own hurt and
shame.
Upon any view of this subject it must certainly be al-
lowed, that the public have no sort of interest in its min-
ute personal relations. But on the other hand it is equal-
ly clear, that the most insignificant of these individual
details may involve principles and interests of the largest
and most weighty kind. Such we feel confident is the
case; and having that impression we shall now proceed
to make such observations as appear necessary.
It would be a profitable and striking exhibition, if some
one would take the trouble to collect the sentiments oi
THE CARMELITE NUN. 247
the most profound thinkers, fend tin- most active pieniot-
ers of the good of mankind; in regard to the danger of tol-
erating the popish religion in any free state. John Wes-
ley openly declared that he considered it dangerous and
uncalled for, to allow of such a system in any Protestant
community, for this reason chiefly — that as it was of faith
amongst Papists that no faith need be kept with heretics
— therefore heretics so called could have no faith in them;
in short, that no adequate guarantee could be given by
such persons, for loyalty to the state, or fidelity to men,
and therefore neither men nor states could safely trust
them. John Howe, in the most trying and impressive
circumstances, and when under the strongest temptation
to conceal or modify his principles, or at least to be pas-
sive; publicly and boldly declared, that he considered the
papal religion so corrupt that no Christian government
could allow of it, without offending God. John Milton
in his majestic work, Pro Populo Jinglicano Defensio, —
towards the close of the preface, has these words; "There-
fore we do not admit of the popish sect, so as to tolerate
Papists at all, for we do not look upon that as a religion,
but rather as ahierarchical tyranny, under a cloak of re-
ligion, clothed with the spoils of the civil power, which it
has usurped to itself, contrary to our Saviour's own doc-
trine."
Similar to these, have been the conclusions of the ablest
of mankind in all countries but our own, until within a
period comparatively recent. We have taken a different
view of the subject, from an early period of our history;
and universal religious liberty, or at least a very enlarged
toleration has been generally established in the United
States. For our part, we cordially and ex animo, em-
brace the principles of the largest liberty, in all possible
cases. But we incline seriously to doubt whether the
community at large, or our tribunals in particular, have
as yet really examined this important subject in all its
practical bearings; and we apprehend that many and un-
foreseen difficulties will yet occur, in carrying out princi-
ples precious to us all. Let us illustrate by a case. The
Universalist is rejected from the stand as an incompe-
tent witne* - because he does not believe in a future state
248 THE CASE OF OLEVIA NEAL
of rewards and punishments; and the Atheist, because he
doubts even, concerning the existence of a moral Gover-
nor of the Universe. But the oath of a Papist is taken
unquestioned, although it is part of his faith that if hebe
a priest, he is not bound to tell the truth on oath before a
heretical tribunal — which is to him as a nullity, and his
oath therefore, no oath; while any popish layman, may
commit deliberate perjury, and be absolved by the next
priest; — yea absolved for a trifle in ready money, at a rate
set down in the tax book of the pope's chancery!
The truth is, however, that Papists in the United States
so far from being satisfied with the same religious liberty
which we all enjoy — require us to allow them the exer-
cise of peculiar and most iniquitous privileges, which
are hostile alike to our principles, our feelings, and our
patriotism. Papists, who never tolerate any other reli-
gion when they can by force suppress all dissent; Papists
who in Spain, Italy, Portugal, Mexico, Guatimala, and
all South America, at this moment forbid the free exer-
cise of any religion but their own; these same Papists
come here amongst us, and not content to enjoy all we
enjoy, require, yea and exercise special privileges grant-
ed to none else!
Is there any Episcopalian prison in Baltimore? Is
there any Methodist jail where women are kept under
lock and key, bars and walls — for private tuition by sin-
gle gentlemen? Is there any Presbyterian confession,,
council or tribunal which has required the erection of pri-
sons, and provided laws for the whipping, chaining, and
putting to death of women confined therein? And then
set up in practice their vile principles, in open day in our
streets? No man believes, no man insinuates, that such
things are. No Protestant asks, desires, or exercises
such exclusive and outrageous pretensions. — But ninety-
nine out of every hundred Protestants in this city, strong-
ly suspect, if they do not firmly believe, that the so call-
ed Carmelite Nunnery in Aisquith street, is a prison Jor
women; who are there kept against their will, and with-
out warrant of law; and who under the pretence of reli-
gion, are subjected to the absolute and private control of
unmarried men!
THE CARMELITE NUN. 249
We protest in the name of God and of a free people,
that these unmarried nun have HO right to keep a prison
for women in our city. We claim it as the sacred right
of these poor women, — aright for whose free exercise,
virtue as well as liberty pleads in tears, to have free
egress from that prison, at their own choice — yea at their
mere caprice, yea whether they be umono-maniac" or
"perfect maniac." We solemnly demand of the public
authorities that they see into this prison, and thoroughly
inspect it from the garret to its darkest subterranean cell.
We call upon our legislators, to invest the guardians of
the public freedom and morality-, with all needful author-
ity, to examine, decide, and act in this matter. We in-
voke the sovereign people, the virtuous men of every
party, to lay aside their unworthy animosities and cast
their votes for men, who in whatever public trust, will
enforce equality before the law; who will put away all
exclusive privileges, and especially all execrable preten-
sions to imprison the free, without a lawful warrant
Six hundred and twenty-four years ago, on the 20th
•day of last June, our heroic ancestors recovered from
king John at Runny Mead their ancient liberties. The
forty- third article of Magna Charta forbids that any
freeman shall be imprisoned^ but by the lawful judgment
of his peers, or by the laic of the land. This glorious
enactment is the foundation of all personal liberty. —
Against that Magna Charta, the then reigning pontiff
Innocent III. issued his Bull, disannulling it forever,
and condemning with anathema, it and all who upheld,
enforced or contended for it During these intervening
six hundred years, liberty and popery have been eternal-
ly at war; and will be to the end.
Will any say, that the Convent in Aisquith street is
not a prison? Our answer is prompt and simple. Satis-
fy the public mind on that head, and our argument on
this point is at an end. Prove to us, by competent per-
sons, freely admitted to inspect the house, to examine
every part, to see their mode of life, and rules and vows,
to converse in private with each nun; prove to us, in an
honest, fair mode, that the inmates have free and full op-
portunity and permission to leave it at their d^retion;
250 THE CASE OF OLEVIA NEAL
and then we say, — let all stay and welcome, who choose
to stay of their own accord. Against nunneries as
schools, we have no legal objection. Against nunneries
as proselyting houses, our objections are not legal ones.
Against nunneries as sinks of moral pollution, our ob-
jections still, are not technically legal. But against nun-
neries as prisons, our objection is strictly and directly,
that the laws and constitution, the liberties and customs,
the peace and dignity, the security and order of society
utterly forbid them. Let that argument be met, or let
the fact be disproved, or let the prison be abated.
The fact never can be disproved. They are prisons.
The canon law proves it. The history of their suppres-
sion every wThere proves it. The testimony of all eye
witnesses; the revelations of all escaping nuns; the struc-
ture of all convents; the sensation produced by every
escape; — every fact connected with the subject conspires
to prove irrefragibly, that they are prisons. And we
boldly assert, and appeal to the constitution and laws of
the country, and to the whole legal profession, and to the
learned bench every where; that being prisons, they are
public nuisances, and may be, and ought to be, abated
by due process of law.
Will any say this cannot be; that public violence would
be the result; bloodshed the necesary consequence? We
indeed know that an armed conspiracy has been formed
in this city, composed chiefly of foreign ruffians; and its
avowed end is to defend at all hazards, these prisons for
women. Two thousand men, it was boasted, were pre-
pared, armed, and waiting for the signal to be given, by
a certain toll of the great bell of the cathedral; and would
have rushed — not on any mob, but as is unblushingly
avowed on private citizens and designated property. We
remember the events of St. Bartholomew: those of 1641
in Ireland; and others of the like description in all lands.
But we remember also our ancestors, our liberties, our
God. If the laws are not supreme and cannot be en-
forced, the sooner this is known the better for all. If
there be a party in the state stronger than the state itself,
let us abolish the pretended state, and construct society
anew.
THE CARMELITE MJN. 251
But such fears are absurd and childish; they are as silly
as they are base There is & spirit in the law, before
which all other spirits habitually give way. And there
is a spirit in the American breast, which will enforce the
law — oppose what will. The men who passed night
after night under arms to protect the prison in Aisquith
street were nine-tenths of them, staunch Protestants; and
cordially detest the institution they would have lost their
lives in defending. Of nineteen men, who at the call of
the mayor moved with fixed bayonets upon the stern and
tumultuous mass, at the most critical hour of the late ex-
citement; of these, nineteen men, who in fact by their ga-
lantry decided the whole affair at its very crisis — it is
doubtful if one was a decided Papist; and two were ac-
tive members, (one of them an elder) in our own church! —
And yet we and such as they, are the putative authors of
all the commotion; the marked objects of organized ven-
geance; the butt of the sneers of scribblers, who are far
better disposed to slander their fellow Protestants than to
meet an enraged mob-
Some however, and amongst them one of the city
newspapers, have set up this defence alike of convents
and of the conduct of the Papists in the present case,
viz: that as females enter them voluntarily no one has a
right to interfere; and as they freely bind themselves by
solemn oaths, those oaths oblige them, and the public
should not interfere. It is truly astonishing that any one,
but especially one presumed to be fit to conduct a news-
paper, should be found capable of advocating such atroci-
ous principles. — If a man binds himself by contract how-
ever solemn, to any duty small or great, or any interest
however minute or immense; the power of the state,
through its chancellors, will interpose for his relief, — if
fraud, collusion, deceit, false pretences, failure of consid-
eration, or even honest mistake can be substantiated. —
But a poor female may be morally influenced by friends,
deluded by proselyting nuns, seduced by cunning priests,
betrayed by the workings of her own fancy, misled by
the irregular exercise of some of the best feelings of the
heart, or in a thousand ways induced to take a step which
she supposed would lead to peace, innocence and bless-
252 THE CASE OF OLEVIA NEAL
edness here and hereafter, but which she discovers after-
wards has brought her nothing but sorrow and shame;
and after nineteen years of anguish, when she seeks de-
liverance is calmly toldT the fraud, the fatal mistake, the
infernal deception, is irremediable on earth!— Yea the
strong man, shall need only to show that he acted before
mature age, and the act in many cases is void per se, and
in every case is voidable; but the poor girl, shall be tre-
panned by the law itself, which under the vile influence
of papism and to the infamy of the state, allows her at
the tender age of sixteen, to bind herself in defiance even
of paternal tears, — to irrevocable perdition, — The stout
man, shall be allowed to treat as a mere nullity all pre-
tended oaths administered without the authority of law,
and shall be delivered by the whole public force from
oaths which are contrary to morality and lawT, even though
put to him by corrupt officers of the law itself; but a
weak girl under strong delusion, shall swear oaths alike
forbidden by the law of God, and the good of society;
she shall swear these oaths, to men and women having,
no sort of right, power or warrant, to administer any oath
whatever, and who are themselves the party alone bene-
fited by the ruin of the poor victim; and yet these oaths,
are so sacred that no deliverance is to be hoped from their
frightful obligation! — And this is what men advocate as
religious liberty, public virtue, social duty, and sound
law!
A far more common turn which is given to the wrhole
affair is, that the nun is deranged. This seems to be the
grand fact on which the Papists seek to rest the case; and
the pains taken to prove it have been to a great degree
effectual in diverting public attention from the true issue
in the case. The only tangible proof on this subject, is
contained in the following certificates, which were pub-
lished in the city newspapers.
The Carmelite sister who left the convent yesterday, Sunday, and
whose name is Isabella Neal, has been to my knowledge, afflicted with
this monomania for upwards of five months: she thinks that she can live
without eating and drinking. As I have not seen her since April last, she
may now be better on that point, but for all, my opinion is she never will
be in her right senses.
Baltimore* August 19,1839. P. Chatard.M.D.
THE CARMELITE M \.
Having read in yesterday 'a Evening Poet, "that il was the opinion
of the faculty of the Washington college, that ftfui Isabella N
"the apparent cause of the present excitement," was "fane,'1 I deem it
my duty to the faculty to state, that thrv have expressed no opinion on
the case. As regards m\ own individual opinion, I am free t'> say that I
consider her a perfect maniac,
J. M. Miller, M. I).
President of Faculty of Washington University, I5a.lt.
Baltimore, August 20, 1839.
We the undersigned, members of the Faculty of Medicine of thj
Washington University of Baltimore, having been applied to by Col. Wm.
Brent for our opinion in reference to the case of sister Isabella, who
was placed in this institution by the mayor of the city, on Sunday last,
state as follows:
That we have visited her several times, and from the general tenor of
her conversation, wc are clearly of opinion, that she is not of sane mind ;
there is general feebleness of intellect, and we are unanimous in the be-
lief that she is a monomaniac. We also feel it an act of justice to
state that she made no complaint of her treatment while in the convent,
other than having been compelled to take food and medicine.
Sam. K. Jennings, M. D.
Wm. W. Handy, M. D.
John C. S. Monkur, M. D.
Edward Foreman, M. D.
John R. W. Dunbar, M. D.
August 21, 1839.
We call the reader's attention to the remarkable dis-
crepancy between the statement of Dr. Miller, and that of
all the other gentlemen. One of the best settled princi-
ples of evidence is, that a party shall not be allowed to
contradict his own proof; and unless the Papists can show
that "perfect-maniac" and "mono-maniac" are one and
the same thing, they can hardly expect the public to be-
lieve that the nun could be both at once. Or if she could,
then perhaps she might be a third thing at the same time,
viz: sane enough to know that a convent was not a fit
place either for a lady or a Christian, — sane enough to get
out, — and sane enough to refuse positively to go back
again into it.
The certificate of Dr. Miller, however, is utterly incor-
rect, in point of fact. There is not one person of the
hundreds who have seen this nun, who does not perfectly
know that she is not a "perfect maniac;" and the profes-
sional testimony of his brethren cannot possibly establish
any thing more decisive against the nun; than it does
against him, either professional incompetency or extraor-
22
254 THE CASE OF OLEVIA NEAL
dinary carelessness in tbe use of terms. In regard to the
statements of the Other gentlemen, we will not pretend
to call in question the exact accuracy of what they s
and still less their own firm conviction of the propriety ot'
their course. It is, as it appears to us, rather remaitt-
able however that Dr. Chatard should have felt at lib(
to give a statement intended to prove the pi edi-
tion of a patient, whom he had not seen for f "hs.
And we respectfully submit to all the gentienea ^
signed the third certificate, whether it is not calculated
and used to produce an impression on the public mind
entirely aside from any which they themselves would
consider true and just? Indeed we might go to Dr. Cha-
tard himself, and ask if he would assert professionally
that a person who is of unsound mind in regard to food
and drink; is therefore necessarily incapable of f<
true and sane conclusion against being further confined
in a convent? We respectfully enquire of the signers of
the last certificate — whether they are willing that their
names and influence should be used to prove, that be-
cause a woman "is not of sane mind" — therefore she
should stay in a nunnery, or therefore is acting as a mad-
woman in trying to get out? It is perfectly manifest that
all these certificates were got and used, to justify the Pa-
pists, and to rob the poor nun of public sympathy; and
the point of our present observations is, that the certifi-
cates create the impression that the woman was incapa-
ble of acting rationally, in the particular act which it was
alone necessary to explain; while in fact it is notorious
to all who saw her, that although she might be weak of
intellect and unsettled on particular subjects, yet she was
perfectly rational and clear in regard to the desire and pur-
pose to quit the convent. We deeply regret that profes-
sional gentlemen should allow themselves to make gen-
eral statements, which they ought to have seen would be
used for purposes of particular wrong and injustice. —
For with all respect far the medical and personal charac-
ters of these gentlemen, we unhesitatingly assert our I
viction on personal knowledge, that no twelve men on
their oaths will ever say alter hearing the proof, that this
nun was insane when she escaped from the nunnery. —
TI1K CARMKLITi; NUN. 255
That is the point — the whole point The woman was
not "maniac" not "mono-maniac^" xkOtuperfect maniac"
She did tha '//, — and we
defy the whole world to establish the contrary, by any
method known to the laws ofaoy civilized people; and
we are confident of our ability to prove I to the
^faction of any jury, if the opportunity is given. If
it is important to the papa] cause to prove this woman
mad when she escaped, let the attempt be fairly made;
let a writ be issued; let a jury come; let witnesses be call-
ed and sworn; let the cause he heard and issued: and we
ict she will be found of sound mind and memory, in
that act, and on that eventful d;
But her to have been "perfect maniac" it is
first intimation the public has had, that the Aisquith
fct convent was a hospital forthe insane. It appears
too, that she was not the only maniac there. On Mon-
night after her escape, a carriage load of refractory-
nuns was privately removed under the cover of darkness;
and on the following Wednesday night the most frightful
screams, which appeared to come from the convent, were
explained by a priest next morning, by coolly saying,
there was another deranged nun in the convent; and that
event was followed by another secret removal of inmates!
Perhaps all the deranged and all the refractory will be
pretty soon removed, and the secret places be sufficient-
ly hidden to offer another examination of the premises by
a packed committee. We shall see. It required many
months to arrange the Canadian convents, for a sham
examination after the disclosures in regard to them. It
may be done sooner here.
We say, suppose sister Isabella tc have been really
"perfect maniac" — or generally umono maniac" — or only
a mono-maniac "for upwards of Jive months" — or least of
all to have been merely afflicted with "general feebleness
of intellect " Suppose it true, is it any defence of nun-
neries, either in a moral or legal point of view? Really
nothing appears to us more natural, than that a long
course of monotonous imprisonment should enfeeble the
intellect; and if it be attended with rigor and unkind ness,
and given up to filth and crimes, that the moral faculties
256 THE CASE OF OLEVIA NEAL
should perish, and reason herself stagger and fall. The
question which interests society i^> this — by what author-
ity, for what ends, and with what effects arc these prt-
vate prisons established? The answer, so far as the pa-
pal exposition of sister Isabella^ joes is this; — they
are in order to run women mad, and then on account of
that madness claim the forcible custody of their persons!
There is one aspect of this subject which we n
think of hut with pain and the deepest solicitude. One
of the great evils of our times is the general destruction of
all personal influences, and the substitution of general
and organized control in the stead of the more healthy
action of the old fashioned condition of society. No man
has any personal influence derived merely from his virtues
and abilities; no name is sacred, no authority is revered.
The boy in the place of public resort will deride the coun-
sel of the hoary head; and the neophyte will openly mock
the wisdom of experience, however amply fortified. For
a time the public press arrested this terrible declension,
and presented a bulwark around wrhich the better ele-
ments of society might have gathered for defence. At
length the press itself has fallen in the same struggle, in
which all personal influences had fallen before it. There
was a time when the press directed public sentiment;
now ihe press as such does not exist as a separate inter-
est. Every newspaper belongs to some opinion,
some particular interest, some determinate object. Its
whole end is to promote its own end; and all society so
deeply feels this, that no man regards what the bulk of
our papers say, as true or fair; any farther than he can
otherwise ascertain the facts. Office, power, patronage,
money; these are their ends. And to gain these ends,
they speak or are silent, praise or blame, blowT hot and
blow7 cold, be all things or be nothing — upon all other sub-
jects but the one, they are sold, or committed to. As a
necessary consequence of this condition of the press,
Strong men and good men fail, or avoid connexion with
it; because they will not "turn about and wheel about,"
at party dictation; nor substitute party ends for those of
virtue, liberty and truth. An inferior class of men be-
come the conductors of the press; men who influence no
THE CARMELITE M N. ;2o7
party; but wh i are t6e mere echoes of their i^patrcns;JJ
who in their turn dismiss them, or set other papers the
moment theii mere party interests require it. The ne
paper press thus becomes morselled out — and entirely
loses all elevated, united and general character; while par-
ties and interests buy their advocacy, or absolute!]
them up as their notorious property, and make them the
simple vehicle of their interests, instead of the real organs
of public sentiment, the real advocates of public inter-
This is a most deplorable state of affairs; and
while truth obliges us to make the statement, we do it
with grief and shame. That it is true, — that the news-
paper press is to a pitiable degree destitute of real
strength, independence, public confidence, and settled
influence — no man can doubt who has paid any attention
to the subject.
Never was this fact more apparent than during the re-
cent excitement in this city. Never wTas any truth more
manifest than that the real, settled, intense feeling of this
community — was neither felt nor uttered by the newspa-
pers. One good has resulted from this great evil. The
Protestants of this city have been obliged to see, that there
is no Protestant newspaper here, in any true sense of
that term; and the day we predict is not remote, when
this mighty interest will be forced to have its organ also.*
There is wealth enough and there is interest enough, and
there would be patronage enough, to support a first class
daily newspaper in Baltimore — which should be the can-
did but fearless advocate of Protestant sentiments, and
Protestant principles. Who will move forward in this
indispensable undertaking?
We cannot close this paper without expressing our
conviction that a great revolution has commenced in pub-
lic sentiment, — and that mighty events are brewing in
the hearts of the people. Men feel that religion is an af-
fair of daily life, and that they who corrupt it are the
enemies of God and man. They perceive that while
they slept the enemy has sowed tares thickly amongst us,
*Within a year from the first publication of this paragraph — its predic-
tion was fully verified; and that in very peculiar and unexpected manner.
22*
258 REVIEW OF THE CORRESPONDENCE BETWEEN TIi£
and they are resolved now that they arc fully awake, to
redress if possible their former inattention andunl
ness. The time is gone when papal mobs may rush into
our churches and drive out the worshippers; or terrify
our citizens so that they dare not meet to hear the sub-
ject discussed. There is no Longer anj terror of papal
violence. There is no longer any public indifference
even towards papal fooleries; for the people have looked
under the apron of the ecclesiastic, and to their horror,
see the blood basin and the sacrificial knife! Our ene-
mies say it was we who awakened this community to the
sense of their true condition and duty. They do us over
much honor. The hand of God is in the whole progress
of this controversy between the corruptions of the past,
and the light of the advancing day. For three hundred
years it has not ceased to agitate Christendom; nor will
it, till the pope of Rome ceases to assert and exercise the
power and authority of God on earth, or at least till the
countless array of his subjects cease to reverence that
power, and to obey that authority. The price of liberty-
is perpetual vigilance.
NUMBER XXVIII.
REVIEW OF THE CORRESPONDENCE BETWEEN THE ARCH-
BISHOP AND THE MAYOR OF BALTIMORE.
The following letters of Mr. Eccleston and Gexl.
Leakin appeared in the papers of Baltimore almost co-
incidently with the publication in pamphlet form of the
preceding number of this volume. There appeared with
them a letter to the mayorfrom Will* Geo, Ready Timothy
Kelly, Basil S. Elder, Thos. Meredith, and Edwyd Boyle,
calling themselves iLa committee" (but of whom, con
constat;) asking that the correspondence might be publish-
ed: and the mayor's reply consenting thereto. We will
ARCHBISHOI1 AND THE MAYOR OF BALTIMORE.
259
not trouble our readers with Ha tommittee" at present;
but content ourselves with recording and commenting on
so much of the correspondence as is official and import-
ant.
Baltimore, August SI, L839.
Sir — We have lately passed through scenes which caused me no little
solicitude for the religious society under my spiritual jurisdiction, and a9
their ecclesiastical organ, I take the earliest opportunity, since my return
1mm New York, to express to you, and those who so nobly co-operated
with \ou, my thanks for the protection afforded to the Carmelite convent.
This duty we owe perhaps more to ourselves than to you. For in the
consciousness oC having faithfully and fearlessly discharged a high official
obligation and in the helpless sex •/ those who claimed your protection,
you must find the proud and ample recompense of a generous heart.
It is with the deepest grief that I have witnessed those scenes of violence
which you were called on to repel — scenes but little in accordance with
the spirit of the Catholic pilgrims who first landed on our shores, and
offered the open hand of fellowship to the persecuted of every creed and
clime. In Baltimore, especially, I was not prepared to expect them,
where the very name of our city reminds us of the Catholic founder of
Maryland, one of the earliest and truest friends of civil and religious
liberty. Yet it is in this city that we have witnessed a cruel and unmanly
attack upon the reputation and peaceful abode of inoffensive women,
many of whom are descended from the first colonists t)f Maryland, and
who, holding still the faith of their fathers, have chosen to enter a re-
ligious community and divide their time between the practices of prayer,
self-denial, and the instruction of youth. Connected, as they are, for the
most part, with the oldest and most respectable Catholic families of the
State, and being unrestrained in their communications with their friends
and relatives, they have protectors out of the convent and out of the
priesthood, able and willing to guard their rights and to invoke for them,
if necessary, the protection of the laws of the state. But compassion
for the inmates of the nunnery was not the motive of the assailants of the
premises. The escape of an insane member of their community whom
her companions had watched over with the affection of sisters, and who
every body will now admit, would have been far happier with such friends
than elsewhere, was made the pretext for directing upon them the most
ruthless and terrible violence, from which, under Providence, they have
been rescued mainly by your promptness and energy. I rejoice to add
that every distinction of party and creed was lost in the general determi-
nation to maintain the rights of conscience and the supremacy of the
laws. And I should be ungrateful, if I did not publicly acknowledge the
obligations which we owe to the liberal and just course pursued general-
ly by the press in the midst of those exciting events. I am persuaded
that the manly and upright efforts of a portion of it had a powerful in-
fluence in resisting the spirit of persecution and repelling the calumnies
which were industriously circulated in order to influence the public mind
and to urge on the reckless to deeds of violence.
It would extend this communication unreasonably, if I attempted to
enumerate the many persons whose generous exertions came under my
own observation. I must therefore beg you to convey my thanks to the
260 review of Tin: correspondence between the
citizens generally, and 10 1 1 1 o s <3 more especially who were personally en-
! in the defence of the convent, lor the protection so eliiciently af-
forded in the hour of danger.
I hare the honor to be, sir, very respectfully and gratefully, your
obedient servant,
Samuel I . .ebtoit,
Archbishop of Baltimore.
Genera] S. C. LbAKI n .
Mayor of the City of Baltimore.
Mayor's Office, vSept. 7th, 1
.Most Reverend Sir: — I have received and read with much satisfac-
tion your letter approving of the measures pursued for protecting the Car-
melite convent in this city and its respectable inhabitants, from threaten-
ed outrage; and feel grateful on behalf of those fellow citizens who so
cheerfully united in rendering those measures effectual, for the kind ex-
pression of your thanks. It is but just, however, for me to state that
we only performed, on that occasion, a duty which every citizen of Balti-
more, and especially every officer and member of the city police is bound
at all times to perform to the best of his judgment and ability.
The constitution and laws of our state entitle to protection from un-
lawful violence, persons of every description, without distinction as to
sex, age, condition, religious denomination or political party; and, in like
manner, every owner of property without exception, is entitled to have
it protected from destruction or injury. It is both my duty and my in-
clination, as chief officer of this city, impartially, and with all necessary
promptness to obey, support and enforce the constitution and the laws,
to the utmost extent of the powers and the means entrusted to me, which
I believe to be amply sufficient, while I am supported, as I feel confident
I shall be on all such occasions, by the efficient aid of a very large ma-
jority of my fellow citizens of every sect and of every party.
During the recent scenes which you witnessed and 90 deeply and justly
regret, the disposition to commit acts of violence was so strongly and
openly manifested, it was obvious that nothing but the conviction of a
powerful resistance, dangerous to the persons and even to the lives of the
assailants, could have restrained them from proceeding to the commission
of actual outrage on persons and property. Happily the result on that
occasion was such as I hope and trust will satisfy you and the religious
society under your spiritual jurisdiction, that they may feel assured
of enjoying, in Baltimore, that protection and security as to their persons
and property, and the free exercise of their religion, which in common
and equally with all others they have a lawful and just right to expect.
The result will also have given a gratifying proof to the friends of humani-
ty that such protection can be surely etVected under most alarming cir-
cumstances, without serious injury to the most reckless of the criminal as-
sailants, and that it may not often be necessary for the supporters of the
law to be the punishers of those who wantonly disobey them,
I am sincerely and respectfully
Your obedient servant,
S. C. Leakin, Mayor.
To the Most Reverend Archbishop of Baltimore.
The reader will not Tail to observe that these letters re-
veal a stale of public feeling as confessedly existing in
ARCHBISHOP AND THE MAYOR OF BALTIMORE. 261
Baltimore — which those who have been observant of the
course of events must have noticed before. There was
a time in this good city, when the Papists could rush into
a Protestant church in Kutaw street and drive out the
worshippers, and even forbid and defy the Ke\ . Mr. Smith
(once a Papal priest) to preach in this city. There was
a time when Priest Gildea could boldly intrude into
another Protestant assembly, worshipping in East Balti-
more street — and during the exercises, publicly revile and
insult the officiating minister. There was along period
of time — during which no man was safe, who ventured
to call in question the doctrines of Papism, even in the
exercise of official duty; and within a few years, a member
of the Baltimore bar, refused to appear for a child, kid-
napped and secreted by certain Papists, because, as he
said — his house would be burned over his head. Now,
we have a high official expression of thanks, by the "ec-
clesiastical organ" of the Papists in all this wide empire,
— "for protection" — afforded to a portion of that religious
society.
While we confidently assert our conviction that this
whole matter proceeds on a totally false assumption;
while we are ready to risk the assertion that no Protestant
in this city has any desire to molest any Papist in the
lawful exercise of his equal and sacred religious rights;
yet we can:, t avoid noticing the salutary change, which
has been so recently and so obviously produced on the
minds of the Papists themselves. It is good for them to
feel at length, that the Protestants knowr and will main-
tain their own rights and privileges; that they are weary
of insult and dictation; that they see the necessity of re-
pressing an insolence too long endured from an intolerant
and bigoted minority; and that equality before the law is
imperatively demanded by the general voice of society.
We rejoice to know that Papists are as certain of protec-
tion, as we are ourselves, in every lawful act; but we re-
joice also that they have discovered, that like us, they
are entitled to no more. That society is safe, when every
citizen confides in the law; and where every law is so
administered as to justify that confidence.
It must however be conceded that many things which
may be strictly lawful — may also be deeply offensive to
:2o:2 RE\ IEW OF THE CORRESPONDENCE BETWEEN THE
and that no rule of private morality or public
virtue is better settled, than thai such things become im-
proper when they become i - of public scandal and
injury. The laws omit all mention o£ many things, and
provide no pmi'hliincni for man;* others — which
could not endure; and he is a bad citiz* -ill per-
sisi in such acts when their obvious ?ulse
—without any adequate necessity i
corresponding advantage. Now supposing Mr.
ton to be so deeply grieved as he says, by l rente
in our city; why does he persist in setting up new and
extensive establishments, which have every where pro-
duced popular excitements, and will continually do it? No
sentiment is more firmly fixed in the minds of men, than
that nunneries are sinks of moral pollution; and that nuns
are victims of priestly licentiousness and cruelty. And
yet no part of the papal operations in Baltimore is more
sedulously cultivated and enlarged, than these nunneries;
while nothing is more certain than that the same feeling
of deep hostility to those establishments which has per-
vaded every portion of the civilized earth, and which so
strongly and so justly pervades this community; will be
liable an every emergency to manifest itself on the part
of certain portions of society, in what Mr. Eccleston calls
"ruthless and terrible violence, cruel and unmanly at-
tacks."— Cannot the priesthood do without nunneries? If
they can — why persist, to the manifest jeopardy oi public
order, in that which society rejects and abhors, even sup-
posing the laws have not provided a remedy against them?
If they cannot, — what a perfidious lie is the pretence of
priestly chastity?
If we were not liable to misrepresentation, we would
not consider it necessary to say that we utterly oppose all
irregular movements of society — for any purpose what-
ever. The law as it is, honestly administered; the law
changed by the medium of the ballot box; the ballot box,
law and all, subjected to fundamental changes, when
needful, only in a sober and well ordered way, this is our
political creed. Fl is the creed of liberty, of the revolu-
tion, of the Bible. We say thus much also, that we may
the more distinctly and emphatically add the expression
ARCHBISHOP AND THE MAYOR OF BALTIMORE. 263
of an honest indignation against the Jesuitical attei
of Mr. EccleSton — to crealtethe i nj por-
tion of the Protestants of this pit) erer intended to pef>-
petrate the least personal i gainst the nuns them-
selves, lie speaks of "the helpless m\ rt flu 51 who
claimed" the mayor's protect ion; as if he did not per-
fectly well know, that the most violent of the people a>ked
nothing more, than that legal and svjlicicnt protection
might be given to the nuns. He says, "we have wit-
sed a cruel and unmanly attack upon the reputation
and peaceful abode of unoffending women;'' when he is
as certain, as he is of his own existence, that it was not
against these unhappy women, but against their supposed
seducers and jailers that the public indignation was
roused; and that "their peaceful abode3' was in danger,
only because and so far as, it was believed to be their
prison. No Protestant in Baltimore ever had a thought
of injury to any nun — because she chose "to enter a re-
ligious community"---or because she chose to stay there;
and it is a gratuitous calumny for Mr. Eccleston to say
that any Protestant directed "the most ruthless and ter-
rible violence,' or any violence at all, against any nun.
We were amazed to find the mayor in his reply to this
deliberate perversion of notorious facts, countenancing
instead of rebuking the falsehood. Does General
Leakin believe — and will he venture to tell his fellowT-
citizens, when he again solicits those suffrages, for which
this billing and cooing with the archbishop is — we ven-
ture to suggest — a bad bate;* that out of the thousands
*If it was a bate, it utterly and wofully failed. Less than a year after
the first publication of this article — and at the first municipal election in
Baltimore, after the Olevia JVeal case and correspondence; there was a
total revolution in the politics of the city. The facts of the case justify
us in making three reflections, which, we venture to predict, the future
will fully verify; as we think the past has already proved their truth. —
]. The Papists of this country as a body, have no fixed political princi-
ples,— but are ready to bargain and sell their political support, to any
man or party, who will do most for papism 2. They are, as a body,
utterly unworthy of confidence; and have neither sagacity, fidelity, nor
truth, as political allies. 3. The Protestant feeling and principles of the
country, will, first or last, bring to political ruin, every man and party,
That manifests the east treachery to the glorious principles of Protestant
truth, liberty, and right, upon which all our institutions rest.
264 REVIEW OF THE CORRESPONDENCE BETWEEN THE
and tens of thousands in this city who were deeply in*
terested in the fate of Isabella Neal — any single man,
or at least any number sufficient to justify a general and
unqualified charge, meditated, much less "threatened out-
rage" on the "respectable inhabitants" of "the Carmelite
Convent?" That many enraged persons may have medi-
tated the destruction of the convent itself, we will not
deny; though we do not know the fact. And that the
conduct of the mayor in preventing such an act was pro-
per and most commendable — we readily admit. But the
mayor has taken a serious task upon his hands, in en-
dorsing the statements of the archbishop. The truth is,
as the whole city knows, that the universal feeling
amongst all true Protestants, was profound sympathy for
the poor nuns; and that one great cause of the intense ex-
citement, was the rumor, said to have originated with the
escaped nun, that several others were detained against
their wishes. It is a pretty story indeed, for these pure
and holy priests to outrage society by their treatment of
their nuns; and when public sympathy explodes upon the
priests, for them to have the audacity to say, the indigna-
tion is levelled against the nuns!
Mr. Eccleston shows clearly by the course of his re-
marks, that he did not himself believe the statements we
have been exposing; else why take so much pains to
prove that the nuns have other protectors besides the mob,
which as he argues, was only prevented by force, from
doing violence to them? This is a very curious argu-
ment to use against meditated violence, — the victim doc3
not need your protection! Fie Mr. Eccleston; a Jesuit,
not to say an archbishop, ought to reason better.
But let us examine a little, this new defence; for the
statement, if true, is really important. These nuns, says
the person under whose "jurisdiction" they are, "being
unrestrained in their communications with their friends
and relatives, they have protectors out of the convent a?id
out of the priesthood, able and ivilling to guard their rights
and to invoke for them, if necessary, the protection of the
laws of the state.1' In the foregoing part of the same
sentence, he had said "they are connected for the most
party with the oldest and most respectable Catholic families
ARCHBISHOP AND THE MA YOB OJ P>ALrlMOI{l-:.
in the state." Now tteomit all notice of the fact that
the archbishop himself, being i ite from the Pro-
ant faith, furnishes in his own person thfc strongest
possible proof, that families not Catholic, nor ye1 "the
oldest and most respectable;'5 have a direct personal in-
terest in all the affairs of a body, cue of whose chief ob-
jects is to proselyte Protestant children. We omit also,
all comment on the suspicious anxiety manifested by the
archbishop, whose "jurisdiction" is despotic over the
"religions society" — committed to his hands, not by
their own free choice — but by the mere dictation of a
foreign tyrant; that all other authorities should stand
aloof — and all profane apprehensions that his sway may
not be immaculate, be rebuked and silenced. We come
directly to the point, and assert that the statement of Mr.
Eccleston is deceptious and untrue, and can, we think, be
clearly shown to be both.
It is deceptious: for contrary to the assertion of the
archbishop, it is impossible for any effectual protection to
be extended to these nuns — by friends "out of the con-
vent and out of the priesthood" — even if they were so
disposed; and unhappily, the priests take effectual care,
that if such friends be Papists, they shall never be so dis-
posed. What protection has been extended to Olevia
Jfeal) by friends "out of the convent and out of the priest-
hood?" Where is she now? Answer to that Mr. Ec-
cleston. Where is she? And how came she where she
is? Her "protector" Col. Brent, posted up to Balti-
more; got ex parte certificates contradictory of each other,
insufficient in law and in reason, none of them sworn to,
and no cross examination permitted; on which certificates
he took his "perfect maniac" kinswoman, and placed her
precisely where she had most earnestly desired never to
go again, viz: under the power of nuns and priests. —
And where she may be now^ who can tell? If he had
taken any other course, he would have subjected himself
to the whole vengeance of the priesthood; besides abet-
ting at least indirectly, the exposure of his church. As
a good Papist he did not dare to do either; nor will any-
good Papist ever act otherwise. This, let it be remem-
bered, is the treatment which nuns receive from their na-
23
2GiJ REVIEW OF THE CORRESPONDENCE BETW Ll.N THE
iural protectors "out of the convent and out of the priest-
hood;'3 when they have succeeded, aftei nineteen years of
horrible sufferings, in effecting their escape. They are
proved to be insane— withdrawn from public observation
—secreted— -and probably sent back. Things have trans-
pired in the convent, which it would degrade the priest-
hood and the sect to have revealed; therefore the pri<
dare not permit a witness to testify; nor th< 3 of
that witness, if they be Papists, to allow her the Ddeaas
and opportunity of so doing. Every eloped nun is always
insane; and always will be. And their friends uout of
the convent and oat of the priesthood" will always treat
them as "perfect maniac" or lt mono -maniac"— -or any
other sort of maniac, that the security of their priests and
their sect may be supposed to require.
But we repeat, the statement of the archbishop is de-
ceptions; for there is no adequate mode in which protec-
tion can be extended to the inmates of his convents, either
by their friends, or by the laws of the country. One of
the vows of all the orders of professed, is obedience; ab-
solute, unquestioning, unqualified obedience. Here is
an irresistible moral barrier. But suppose it removed.
To whom is the nun, who becomes dissatisfied, to com-
plain? To her confessor? Surely it is most natural to
expect that her seducer and accomplice-- -or if she has re-
sisted his vile solicitations, her oppressor and persecutor;
surely it is most clear, that he will be her messenger to
an indignant relative, who at the first motion will cut his
ears off, — or to some generous advocate, who will forth-
with arraign him. How natural and simple is this me-
thod of getting redress in a convent! Let her then com-
plain to her sister nuns, or to the mother abbess. Yes,
they will be likely to aid her no doubt; and are fully em-
powered to do so; as we shall see directly! Did Mr. Ec-
cleston ever try topcrsuade a tiger to let go a lamb? It
is a very simple and successful effort of eloquence, is it
not? Eurydice was charmed nearly out of hell by the
lyre oi Orpheus; but we protest we never heard of a nun,
whose sorrows and woes so prevailed, as to cause the
Pluto and Proserpine of her dark prison house, to send
her forth smiling towards the realms of day. — Let her
ARCHBISHOP AND THE MAYOR OF HALTIMOUE. 2G7
then complain to some casual visitor, through the grate!
Surely: and be told on by the sister spy, constantly at her
elbow, and sent to do "usual pena pooi Olevia
JYeal3 was! ( )r suppose two agree and complain togethr
er, to some idle visitor accidentally thrown in conv<
With them. If the visitor b i a Papist, as is most likely —
protection, redress, and escape, are of course certain! It
a Protestant, and unlike too many Protestants, one who
has bowels to feel tor human woes; one who has no fear
of losing votes, subscribers, or custom; one who is not
afraid of public reproach, nor private assassination; if by
it should chance to be such a Protestant — what,
we ask could he or she do? Nothing: we solemnly aver
— nothing. He may return with a writ, if he can get
one, whit most probable he cannot. But can he
identify the woman? who has been already secreted or
substituted by another — or privately carried to Einmits-
burg or Georgetown — or made "perfect maniac" — or
even "mono-maniac." He may tell the facts publicly by
word of mouth, or in print if any paper will publish them,
— which probably they will not. And then for his pains,
he shall be called by Protestants, a seditious, uncharita-
ble, persecuting bigot; and be marked as an object of pa-
pal vengeance.
We do then manifestly see, that the archbishop's state-
ments in regard to the protection which may be extend-
ed to these nuns , are deceptions; wholly and .totally de-
ceptions. We will now proceed to show that they are
untrue, simply and specifically untrue. They are untrue;
(1) In saying that these nuns are "unrestrained in their
communications with their friends and relatives;" (2) In
saying that they are considered by the Papal church, or
their own friends being Papists, as subject to or placed
under "the protection of the laws of the State"— in any
such sense, that their superiors can be compelled to treat
them as free Americans.
It is quite useless to debate about a matter of fact; and
there is no necessity for even an apparent contest about
veracity between Mr. Eccleston and ourself. That pre-
late has solemnly sworn, as one of the conditions on
which he received and holds his present dignity from the
268 REVIEW OF THE CORRESPONDENCE BETWEEN THE
pope ( i Rome, uthat lie trill render absolute obedience to
the constitutions and precepts of hohj mother church." —
(Polano p. 733, folio edition "of 1129.) Now if he will
examine the decrees of the council of Trent — he will find
in the xxv. Session, J)e Regularibus et Monialibus, two
and twenty chapters expressly settling the subject matter
of the present question. Some of the things determined
(statue n da) by the council in these terrible chapters —
the following. In Chap. i. there is a m< large
that the institutions for the regular orders be not allowed
to lose their importance and activity; a rule well kept by
Mr. Eccleston. In Chap. hi. it is determined that no
house for the professed shall be erected in any diocese,
without the license of the bishop, first had; which makes
the archbishop responsible for the erection of the new
prison near the Monument, with its dungeon deep enough
for two rows of cells, one above the other; and for priest
Gildea's monastery, in Front street, so located as to be
able to carry offby boats on Joneses Falls, all the dirt from
all his excavations, — even if he should have so odd a
fancy as to run a communication over to Aisquith street.
Chap. iv. settles that no regular under any pretext shall
go to any other place, or submit to any other person,
whether prelate, prince, university, or community, nor
use any privilege or faculty bestowed by others, — with-
out the superior's consent. That if any shall do so, they
shall be severely punished, at the discretion of the supe-
rior, as disobedient. That they shall not leave their con-
vents, even on the pretext of going to their superiors, un-
less they shall have been sent or called by them. That
if they be found without such a mandate, in writing —
they shall be punished by the bishop of the place, as de-
serters of their institutions. Chap. v. orders, with a
solemn appeal to the divine judgment, and a threat of
eternal damnation— that the inclosures around the con-
vents shall be restored and kept in order; and that dis-
obedient and refractory nuns shall be kept in by eccle-
siastical censures, and oilier punishments (aliasque
pffiNAs,) according to the necessity of the case, the aid of
the secular aim being invoked it necessary, to this end.
And all Christian princes are exhorted, and secular ma-
ARCHBISHOP AND TH I BALTIMORE.
d, under
pain oi' ( to incurrei . d the
That do nun after her pr< shall
go out oilier con
text™ unl< lawful cause approved bj
bishop. That no one, of whatever ranh\ condition) ><
age, shall enter the inctosure of a convent^ without a li-
cense in writingfrom tlie bishojj or superior, under pat
excommunication. red. And such licen-
ses should be given only in cases of necessity; and can-
not be granted, by any but the superioi or bishop, in any
manner or for any purpose. Chap. xiv. points out cer-
tain cases in which all _ rs (monks and nuns) si
be severely punished, (severe puniatur.) Chap. xv.
fixes the age of profession at sixteen years; a papal sta-
tute contrary to the law of God and of nature, which our
state, to its lasting infamy, has copied into its statute
book. Chap, xviii. admits that there are cases, in
which it is expressly lawful to coerce virgins and widows,
to enter monasteries and take the vow against their will.
Chap. xix. provides that if any regular shall pretend
that he or she took the vows through force or fraud, or
shall even say that it was done before the proper age, or
any thing of the kind; or shall wish to lay aside their dress
for any cause, or even to depart with it on, without the
permission of the superior; they shall not be heard---ex-
cept within five years next after the day of their profes-
sion; nor even then, but upon the regular bringing of the
alledged causes before the superior and bishop. But if
they shall have beforehand laid aside their habit, they
shall not be permitted to alledge any cause; but shall be
forced to return to the monastery, and be punished as an
apostate; being denied in the mean time every privilege of
their religion.
It may seem needless to add any thing to such and so
decisive testimony--- and yet we will refer to the only re-
maining written authority in the papal church, which is
equally venerated with that of the council of Trent. —
We mean the Canon Laic — the great repository of papal
jurisprudence. If Mr. Eccleston will consult the Cor-
pus Juris Canonici, Vol. n., of the Lyons edition of
■23*
270 REVIEW OF THE CORRESPONDENCE BETWEEN TliL
17^7, in the Tractatus de Ecclesia, Tilulus XXII, he will
find 107 folio pages of Latin, from page 403 to 5099 treat-
ing upon the general subject "De Religiosis." In those
107 pages there are more than one hundred and seven
flat contradictions of what he has Bald, in the matter now
Under discussion. We make at present a Single Citation.
On folio 421, Txtulus xxn. Caput in. Sectio m. § xi.
line Constitutio, 8fC.; it is declared to he the mind of the
church "that no professed person, however disobedient
to his superiors, can be left to himself so as to become
his own master, and be free to go where he pleases, and
serve his own depraved desires, to the disgrace of the re-
ligious state, especially of his own order, and to the pub-
lic scandal; nay rather this is the desire of holy mother,
that places may be provided into which the incorrigible
may be received, or forcibly shut up (coacti includantur,)
and that as far as possible she may provide for their safe-
ty and for that of others, by removing the sick sheep
from the midst of the faithful, lest the well be infected."
If our space allowed, or it was at all necessary, we
could multiply citations without limit, from the Canon
Law, which Mr. Eccleston has sworn he receives and
will execute to his uttermost power; which should dis-
prove in the most positive manner, his assertions and in-
sinuations, as to the free agency of nuns, or other profess-
ed, or indeed any of his "subjects;" as all persons in his
diocese who have embraced the ecclesiastical state are
considered, by himself, by them, and by the pope to be.
We will cite one or two places, which must till the sim-
ple hearts of American readers with amazement; and
ought to cover every priest with dismay. In Vol. iii. of
the Corpus Juris Canonici — Pars quinta, de Judiciis, —
Titulus vi. of Pars ii. Sec. vi. p. 561; this is the sub-
stance of the section: "That ecclesiastical judges have
power to commit accused persons to prison; yea to condemn
them to perpetual imprisonment." The V. head of this
section is in these words, "In crimes proceeding from in-
continmce, and in atrocious offences requiring deposition
or degradation, when the avoiding of justice by flight is
to be apprehended, andso the necessity for personal deten-
tion arises, the Bishop may proceed to summary reforma-
ARCHBISHOP AND THE MAYOR < K I ALTIMORE. 271
tion and // detention. Concil Trid. Sess. xxv.
Sec. £, Ete Reform, Cap 6, raed." ruder the \ii. head
of the same section in the second paragraph cited i
Glossa, "In (5. J)e Piuris Capy Quamms, Id). \ . Tit (J,
Cap 3," are these words, 4< The ecclesiastical judgi >
condemn his subjects to do penance, on the bread of sorrow
and the tcater of affliction, in temporary or jj< rpetual im-
prisonment." The last paragraph of the viii. head of the
section, which is also the end of the diabolical section it-
self, is in these words, "Perpetual imprisonment is in the
place of the ancient practice of confinement in a monaste-
ry, and was introduced for the very same end, viz: that
the accused person, might be removed from all occasions
of crime and of public scandal"
Now in the venerable names of honour, integrity and
truth, — by which courtesy obliges us, as far as possible,
to suppose a Jesuit to be governed, — religion being out
of the question; we demand, how was it possible for
archbishop Eccleston to make the statements he did, after
swearing to enforce the enactments we have now cited,
and hundreds like them? It grieves us to be obliged to
expose such shallow and unblushing perfidiousness. But
we confidently expect the verdict of every honest man —
that it is deceptions and false to say these poor nuns have
"unrestrained communications" — with friends out of the
convent; and that in the contemplation of the Papal
church, its decrees, or its prelates, they can claim "the
protection of the laics of the state"— against their vows,
their superior, their bishop, or their church.
Indeed the " archbishop of Baltimore" as he arrogant-
ly calls himself, shows by his very manner of speaking
on this as on the former subject; that he was conscious
of "paltering in a double sense." He talks of a "re-
ligious society" under his "jurisdiction;" and the mayor
of the city in his reply reiterates the notion of that "ju-
risdiction." In the case of the mayor we set down the
use of this term, to the score of mere civility; presuming
that he is not deeply versed in Papal jurisprudence. But
the archbishop no doubt uses it considerately, and in his
mouth it is most pregnant with meaning.
We shall lay no particular stress on the arrogance of a
man's calling himself "archbishop of Baltimore " when
272 REVIEW OF THE CORRESPONDENCE BETWEEN THE
four-fifths of the people of the city — do not belong to
his heretical sect; though if we should call ourself
"Pastor of Baltimore" none would be more forward than
Papists, to cry out against the pretension as audacious.
Nor shall we stop to show that Baltimore is not a church
but a city; and therefore, if Mr. Eccleston would follow
S( ripture, common sense, or historical truth, he should
call himself "Archbishop of the Romans in Baltimore"
oruofthe Roman church in Baltimore" — instead oi"Jlrch-
bishop of Baltimore" Neither do we suppose it to be
needful in this connexion to show, that the practice of call-
ing men bishops of the place, instead of bishops of the
churches of God in such and such places— grewT up with,
and sprang out of the papal apostacy; and that it reveals
at once the secularity and the ambition of that antichristi-
an hierarchy. Nor finally, will we pause to showr, that
all these things are aggravated in their force and conse-
quence, by the fact, that this "archbishop of Baltimore"
—received that title, dignity, office, trust, and "jurisdic-
tion;" not from the free voice of any portion of his fel-
lowT-citizens, but from the grace and favour of a foreign
tyrant, called pope of Rome; and contrary to the spirit
of our laws, and of the constitution of the United States.
These things and many like them, we pretermit for the
present, and proceed to speak rather of the "jurisdiction"
itself, than of the name and quality in which it is exer-
cised.
Perhaps the most palpable argument against the papa-
cy, is that it is a purely temporal empire. The seat of
its dominion is the former capital of the wTorld— called
the holy and spiritual city. There is its senate, com-
posed of members to wThom at their creation it is express-
ly said, uyou constitute the senate of the city, you are the
equals of kings, the cardinals of the whole world." (Ce-
remoniarium, lib 3.) Over all presides an earthly mon-
arch, clothed in purple, lodged in palaces, surrounded by
guards, and followed by a troop of dignitaries and officers
of all names and grades. The empire of this monarch,
is parcelled out into provinces, which are again divid-
ed into smaller provinces, and these subdivided into
other districts called diocesses; and over all these terri-
torial divisions, which embrace and cover the whole earth,
kECHBIBHOP AND THE MAYOR of BALTIMORE. '2!'A
the sovereign pontiff appoints governors, whom ii<' calls
primates, metropolitans and bishops,— and who accord-
ing to his lawyers and judges the exp< bis laws
and constitutions, have a plenitude of power, far above
that of princes, states, and governments— given to them
by God himself, for the control of all human affairs. All
these governors take the most comprehensive oaths to
their sovereign, by which they bind themselves to him,
far more explicitly, than any subjects are bound to any
other prince; thus creating a body of sworn vassals to
the pope in the bosom of all foreign states. This tem-
poral empire called papism, has also its tribunals, civil
and ecclesiastical— before which crimes are investigated,
causes litigated, and judgments rendered. It has its
tributes, taxes and contributions, drawn under various
names, as of right, from every part of the earth. It has
established a code of civil law separate and distinct from
all others; and has a jurisprudence as peculiarly its own
as that of any empire that ever existed. And to com-
plete the list, it has its prisons, its punishments, its in-
quisitors and its executioners, in every part of its do-
minions. Thus fortified, it speaks as a mistress and a
sovereign; it orders, it commands, it forbids, it decrees,
it curses, it reigns!
Now then wTe comprehend what the "archbishop of
Baltimore" means, when he speaks of a "society" under
his '''jurisdiction. Jurisdiction says the monk Calepixi,
in his great Bictionarium Octolingue, is "juris dicendi
potestas"— -the power of decreeing justice; and after cor-
roborative definitions from five languages besides Latin
— he establishes that given by citations from Cicero,
Servius Sulpitius, and Suetonius. Yes; we perfectly
comprehend what the pope's governor for this infidel
province of North America means by his "jurisdiction "
And by the grace of God, we are determined to make
that jurisdiction regulate its pretensions, so as to accord
with the laws and liberties of a free people.
It is vain and absurd, as well as utterly beside the sub-
ject for the "archbishop of Baltimore" to claim the ex-
ercise of this "jurisdiction"— -as a matter of conscience;
for him to invoke "religious liberty" as the basis of his
274 R E V I E W 0 P T 1 1 E C ORB E S PO N DENC E BETWEEN THE
ifighl to occt prisons for women; for him to plead "tine
rights of conscience and tin' supremacy of the laws," as
the ground of a claim to recapture and Jock upas insane,
— a free woman, escaped from a nunnery. "Religious
liberty" is a simple thing; it means that ( Hevia Neal had a
right to (oil!'- out of the convent; and that Mr. Ec<
ton had no "jurisdiction" — to hinder her. •■/.'
conscience" me sacred, when used to regulate our own
faith and practice; they are violated, not preserved, when
the u archbishop of Baltimore97 presumes to regulate and
control otherwise than by means purely moral and scrip-
tural, the conscience of another. " The supremacy of the
laivs" — does not mean that the u archbishop of Balti-
more" by virtue of his warrant from the pope, shall erect
prisons for women; but it means that the lav: : forbidding
their existence shall be enforced against them. It does
not mean, that the pope's property in the nunnery in
Aisquith street shall be held, inviolable and sacred, while
Olevia Neal's personal rights are sacrificed and trodden
down in that convent; but it means, that the pope's pro-
perty shall be obliged by the officers of justice to be put
only to lawful uses, and that Olevia Neal's personal rights
shall be sacredly respected. It means that the nunnery
and the nuns, shall both be protected in what is right —
restrained in what is wrong; and both, without any sort
of regard to the pope's warrant, or the archbishop's 'ju-
risdiction."— Our mayor never said a more true or a more
pertinent thing, than in his letter to Mr. Eccleston, that
"the constitution and laws of our state entitle to protec-
tion from unlawful violence, persons of every description
without distinction as to sex, age, condition, religious
denomination, or political party." Let "the religious
society" over which the "archbishop of Baltimore" exer-
cises "jurisdiction" — remember this sacred truth. Let
the mayor and the public never cease to bear in mind,
that it is as illegal to imprison or to recapture a tree wo-
man, without warrant, as it is to pull down a convent;
and that priests and nuns, and their myrmidons in doing
the former act, are as much a mob, as any can be in doing
the latter: and that the mayor is as much bound in de-
fence of persona] rights, to call out the police and the
ARCHBISHOP AND THE MAYOB OJP BALTIMORE. 276
military, if n , and to fire upon an archbishop and
his mob; as in defence of rights in realtj to fire upon the
most avowed mobocrat and his mob The mayor lias
hit the nail upon the head. The constitution and laws}
do prated persons; and that withoiti th rd to
their condition or religious denomination. Our laws
know nothing about archbishops or popes, Bui they
know every thing about absolute freedom of person, to
every citizen of the commonwealth. They protect the
property of all; but they know nothing of a ''■jurisdiction"
— which provides private prisons for free women.
We do not consider it at all material to the case in de-
bate whether the nuns in Aisquith street, and all others,
be the purest or vilest of mankind. They "have chosen
to enter a religious community," says "their ecclesiasii-
cal organ." Very well. It may justly be questioned
whether their kind of "community" is not contra bonas
mores, and therefore illegal; and when the occasion arises
for the making of that question before a jury of free and
virtuous men of the nineteenth centur) in this happy and
enlightened land, it may be found that our opinion is not
peculiar on that point. But we have nothing to say in
that regard at present. The better the women are, and
the more honest their calling, the more perfect is their
claim to protection in the enjoyment of their natural and
civil rights. They "divide their time between the prac-
tices of prayer and self-denial, and the instruction of
youth;" it is added. Very well again. We have noth-
ing to say to that. We do not see that high walls, iron
bars and grates, dungeons and so forth — are needful in
either of those respects; still less, that the stated and se-
cret conferences of unmarried priests, with these unmar-
ried nuns are either safe, respectable, or prudent. All
this is as it may be. But what has it all, or any part of
it to do, with a question of right under our laws to con-
vert these nuns into convicts; to withdraw them out of
the reach of legal protection — to erect prisons for their
safe custody, and to recapture them when they escape? —
Let our grand juries inspect these along with all other
places of legal confinement — or let them be suppressed as
places of illegal confinement. Let the law assure itself,
276 REVIEW OF THE CORRESl'ONDKXCE BETWEEN THE
by its proper functionaries, that they are not prisons; or
i Ise let them be put on the looting of all other prisons.
Now the latter is manifestly impossible. Our laws will
never provide a prison for the pope of Rome to put his
refractory subjects in. Our laws will never recognize
any right in the pope of Rome or his governors, t6 exer-
cise "jurisdiction" OVeT the persons of our citizens. It
is impossible, and contrary to the whole spirit and nature
of all our institutions. Then the other alternative must
stand. If these be prisons, they are illegal, and ought to
be suppressed; if the archbishop exercises "jurisdiction"
by virtue of a foreign warrant, over the persons of free
Americans — he is a wrongdoer, and can be punished. —
And whether they be prisons or no, whether this wrong-
ful "jurisdiction'" be exercised or no, are pure questions
of fact; in regard to which, the proof is clear to a moral
intent, and concerning which, when the proper case is
made, the tribunals of the state will, no doubt, decide
justly. Meantime let the functionaries of the law take
notice—that they are responsible at their peril to know
what the law is.
There is a flourish in the letter of Mr. Eccleston, about
the contrast between the Protestant intolerance of the
present generation in our commonwealth, and the Papal
liberality of its reputed founders---which must not be
passed by. We repeat his words: "Scenes but little in
accordance with the spirit of the Catholic pilgrims who
first landed on our shores, and offered the open hand of
fellowship to the persecuted of every creed and clime. In
Baltimore especially I was not prepared to expect them,
where the very name of our city reminds us of the Ca-
tholic founder of Maryland, one of the earliest and truest
friends of civil and religious liberty."
George Calvert, Baron Baltimore, was like the pres-
ent " archbishop of Baltimore," an apostate from the re-
ligion of Christ to that of Rome. In the disordered state
of affairs in England during the early part of the seventeenth
century, he endeavored to found a Papist colony in New
Found land; in which attempt he failed. Charles I. king
of England, himself an apostate like Calvert and the arch-
bishop— was greatly pleased to find Ccecelius Calvert,
ARCHBISHOP AND THE MAYOR OF BALTIMORE. 277
the son of (« to execute his father's projects;
and . in the eighth year of his reign, the well
known Charter for Maryland. We will give some extracts
from it, and from other public and permanent arm to show
that Mr. Eccleston is a great civilian as well as a great
ecclesiastic.
In that charter granted to Ccecelius Calvert by Charles
I., the king states in the ii. Section of it, that the motive
actuating baron Baltimore, in desiring "to transport a nu-
merous colony, to a country hitherto uncultivated in the
parts of America," was ua laudable and pious zeal for
%ding the Chris! ; on, and also the territories
of our empire;" and in Sec. iii. Charles adds that the mo-
tive actuating him in granting the charter was his desire to
encourage, with royal favor, this "pious and noble purpose."
It is stated also in the ii. Sec. by kingly authority, that Cce-
celius Calvert was not only "son and heir of George
Calvert," but that he was "treacling in the steps of his
father." What all this means when spoken by Charles,
of the Calverts, is plain enough.
Sec. iv. vests in Calvert and his heirs and assigns "the
patronages and advowsons of all churches which shal
hereafter happen to be built" within the limits of their
charter: also the "license and faculty of erecting and
founding churches, chapels, &c; of causing them to be
dedicated, consecrated, &c; and also all and singular
such and as ample rights, jurisdictions, royalties, &c, as
the bishop of Durham had within his bishopric and county
palatine. "---"Advowson, (says Blackstone, Com. ii. 29,)
is the right of presentation to a church or ecclesiastical
benefice: * * and is synonimous with patronage, patro-
natus: and he who has the right of advowson, is called the
patron of the church." So again of the county palatine
of Durham, he says, Com. i. 113, "it is so called a
palatio; because the bishop thereof had in it, jura rega-
lia, as fully as the king had in his palace: regalem po-
testatem in omnibus, as Bracton expresses it."
Sec. xxii. provides that no interpretation of the char-
ter, or any word, clause, or sentence of it shall be made
"whereby God's holy and true Christian religion may in
anywise suffer by change, prejudice, or diminution."
24
278 REVIEW OI THE CORRESPONDENCE BETWEEN THE
The whole charter will be found in vol. I. p. 1 1 of
Maxy's edition of the laws "t Maryland, printed in 1811.
We aver that there is nol one word in this charter which
even squints towards a free toleration, much lc.->s religi-
ous liberty; that the scope of it in general, and many par-
ticular provisions are altogeth< r irreconcileable with the
liberties erven of the tolerated churches, and insuperable
barriers to the general spread of the gospel, except by
means of a national church, — which every part of the
charter contemplates; and finally, that considering the
times in which it was issued, the source from which it
emanated, the person to whom it was given, and the rea-
sons assigned for granting it — its religious aspect looks,
towards the establishment, if not the exclusive existence
of papism in Maryland. If any doubt the fairness of
this representation, we beg them to examine Bczmarts
History of Maryland, from its first settlement, till the
restoration in 1660; a work lately published by the au-
thority of the state: and there they will find, not one word
to justify, but numerous facts to disprove Mr. Eccleston's
assertions.
The intervening period, of rather more than a century,
from the restoration of Charles II., to the American rev-
olution, we pass by at present; because the very act which
made Maryland a free and independent state, proves in-
contestibly what principles still prevailed in regard to re-
ligious liberty. We come to the ' 'Declaration of Rights."
This instrument contains statements which "the arch-
bishop of Baltimore" would do well to examine, both as
they establish the absurdity of his principles, the illegali-
ty of his pretensions, and the erroneousness of his asser-
tions. We quote several. It is declared in article 33,
that protection of person and estate, in regard to religi-
ous faith, ceases in all cases where "under colour of reli-
gion, any man shall disturb the good order, peace, and
safety of the state, on shall infringe the laws of
MORALITY, OR INJURE OTHERS IN THEIR NATURAL, CIVIL,
or religious rights.'3 Again, "all persons professing
the Christian reUgion, are equally entitled to protection
in their religious liberty." Again*, "The legislature may,
in their discretion, lay a general and equal tax for the
ARCHBISHOP AND THE HA YOB OF BALTIMORE. 279
support of the Christian religion." Again, article 35, —
■ \ declaratioo of a belief ra Ihe Christian religion'1 is
instituted as a n->: of office, if there be lrus( or pi
connected with it. See Laws of Maryland, vol. 3, pp. 1 1.
E6. It is believed that all these provisions except that
relating to a tax for the support of religion are still iu full
force. This " Declaration of Rights" was adopted i i
1776.
We now pass over nearly fifty years more, and desire
Mr. Eccleston to turn to Chap. 205, of the ".Laws made
and passed by the General assembly of the State of Mary-
land" at the session of 1824. He will there find an act
entitled uAn Act for the relief of the Jews in Maryland"
— passed no longer ago than on the 25th of February,
1825. And if he will then ask the first Jew he meets (if
lie can s :■ overcome the astonishing and enduring ha-
tred of papists to Jews, as to hold converse with a son of
Abraham) — he will tell him, that for nearly two hundred
years after the granting of our state charter to that "ear-
liest and truest friend of civil and religious liberty,"
Coecelius Calvert; a Jew in Maryland could hold no office
either of profit or trust, unless he could do as Judge Wil-
liam Gaston of N. C. did. So that here are two pieces
of casuistry for the archbishop to explain together: name-
ly, the veracity of a papal judge, when he swears he be-
lieves and will support the Protestant religion; and that
of a learned prelate, who asserts the unqualified and gen-
erous reception of "the persecuted of every clime and
creed" — by the sect originally predominant in Maryland,
and which from their origin, and as long as they had the
power — acted on diametrically opposite principles.
The flourish about Baltimore is ridiculous. Mr. Ec-
cleston is a native of Maryland, and ought to know more
about the history of his own state. Baltimore was a Pro-
testant city from its origin, (see Griffith's work on
Baltimore;) and we venture to predict will continue so
to the end.
But how strange does it sound to hear a high dignita-
ry of the papal church, commend liberty either civil or
religious — and speak in praise of liberality to the op-
pressed, the persecuted and the unfortunate! For more
REVIEW OF THE CORRESPONDENCE, &1C.
than thirteen centuri \h \h has
witnessed the ci ad tyranny of this
tcniblc superstition. It has persecution to a
system; cruelty to an exact science. Its very faith is
based on universal intolerance, and its <
dominion of all other churches. It has more hu-
rl blood to be shed, than all other fak \i to-
ther; and has gone farther and done more, to s
liberty of conscience, of thought, of speech and of action,
than any other Organized succession that ever existed
amongst men. In what papal country, at the moil
we write, are any admitted to the same rights as pay
Is it in Mexico, — in the Catholic West India Islands, in
South America— in Spain— in Italy— -any where? In
Rome the holy seat, of this liberal Catholicism, \.! at i^
the nature of the liberty, civil or religious, enjoyed by
man?
And above all men, that a prelate who holds his office
by the mere grace and favour of a tyrant who has expli-
citly denounced every principle sacred to us as Ameri-
cans and as freemen; that such a man should prate to us
about our intolerance and illiberality, is surely most edi-
fying. This Gregory xvi., now reigning at Rome, has
publicly and officially, again and again, pronounced his
abhorrence of all the principles upon which our repubi
institutions rest, and for the purchase and security of
which the blood of our fathers was poured out like water.
He has over and over declared on his priestly and prince-
ly faith, that the universal church has responded in ac-
cents of cordial and unanimous applause of his atrocious
proclamations against the rights, the hopes, and the con-
solations of human nature. And now in the midst of all
this array of damning proof, this Gregory selects out of
all the tens of thousands of his followers in this wide re-
public, one Samuel Eccleston, as the person most lit in his
judgment, to represent his opinions, to advance his pre-
tensions, and to exercise "jurisdiction" in his behalf, in
free America: and this Samuel Eccleston does not blush
t o acknowled mark thus set upon him, and to do
the service expected at his hands! Samuel Eccleston by
the grace of God, freeman and citizen, has passed ai
THE TAX BOOK OF THE ROMAN CHANCERY.
and Samuel Eccleston by the favour of the apostolic See,
"archbishop of Baltimore" tak<
it liberty ' To wh it an abject and pitiable s
be reduced by his vanity and ambition!
Let no man suppose that we lay too much s1 i
these transactions; or that the cause is not adequate
the excitement it has produced. John Hampden refuse 1
to submit to a wrong which drew after it the violation of
the liberties of Englishmen- -though only a few shillings
were directly at stake; and the result was the fiercest
convulsions that ever England saw. Our ancestors re-
fused to submit to the most trifling taxes and impos
which the great bulk of them might never have paid, be-
cause the national freedom and independence were in-
volved in the same principles; and the end was, every
thing that has grown and shall grow out of the doings of
'76. The smallest and the greatest affairs are united in
the providence of God. And if the fate of a poor Car-
melite shall be the occasion of arousing this community
to a perception of the dangerous principles, the illegal
proceedings, and the intolerable pretensions of the follow-
ers and officers of the pope settled amongst us; it may
save us by a timely and firm application of the principles
of justice and liberty-— from future trials and calamities,
the end of which no man can foresee.
In the deep conviction of this truth are these dangerous
labors performed. And whether our country will hear or
will forbear-— we trust in God for support and reward.
NUMBER XXIX.
THE TAX BOOK OF THE ROMAN CHANCERY/
Mr. England who generally signs himself (f) Dagger,
John, Bishop, has taken upon himself the task of making
the world believe that the court of Rome never had a re-
24*
282 THE TAX BOOK OF THE ROMAN CttANCE&l .
gular and fixed tiiriff at which dispensations and abso-
lutions as well as indulgences were granted; and es-
pecially that the volume SO Well known to the learned for
several Centuries past, and so often reprinted in various
parts of Europe, as the Tax Book of the Roman Chan-
ren/, — is neither genuine nor authentic; hut is in great
part forged, and as a whole spurious.
The Rev, Richard Fuller of South Carolina, with
whom Dagger ', John, Bishop, has commenced this con-
troversy; has conducted it with such ability and force
that it would be useless and indelicate for us to meddle
in the direct issue. And the able editor of the Charles-
ton Observer has so clearly shown the direct probability
of the genuineness of the book (still leaving to Mr. Fuller
the positive proof)— from the general scope of popery;
that nothing need be said on that part of the argument.
On looking a little into the papers of Dagger , John,
Bishop, it struck us, that there was a crumb or two not
likely to be picked up, by our stronger brethren; and
which, although our limited reading in the papal contro-
very might make them seem unduly important in our
eyes — yet on the whole, might amuse if not instruct our
readers. We propose to set down a few of them — in the
way merely of indirect evidence in the case now (1839)
under public discussion in the south.
We find in the Index Librorum Prohibitorum; Roma^
1819, under the name Banck, on p. 24, this entry: "Taza
S. cancellarice Romance^ in lucem emissa, et notis illustra-
ta. Deer. 16, Jtmu 1654, et 13, Nov. 1662." The very
next entry still under the name of Banck, is as follows:
c< Tariffa delle Spedizioni della Dataria, Deer. 13, Norcmb.
1662." These entries settle, past the power of logic
to confute, the existence of these books at and before the
date of the entries. Now we ask, Dagger., John, Bishop
— to be so good as to show any attempt made by any
reputable man of any country or sect, before himself; to
prove the first of these prohibited books a forgery. The
rule of law and common sense is, that a fact proves it-
self, after a certain period of unquestioned existence.
But the rule now contended for by this learned prelate is,
that at the end of above three hundred years from the
YHE TAX BOOK OF THE ROMAN CHANCERY, 283
first printing of a certain book; and after it lias been in
the Index for a hundred and eighty-five years — during
all which time, all the learned in all countries have re-
ceived it as genuine; — the question shall still depend on
our ability to get the original manuscript — and a living
witness or two, to prove the fact of writing!
The fact of its being in the Index, retorts I). J. B.
proves that it was from the beginning rejected and ab-
horred, as false and spurious, by the papal church. li
that be a good rule — it shows that the Bible is rejected
and abhorred as false and spurious by the church of
Rome; for not only arc very many editions of the Old and
New Testaments, in the Index; but the iii. rule of the In-
dex is levelled in great part directly against the Scrip-
tures. The rinding a book in the Index, is proof only
that Rome does not wish it read; and the not putting the
Tax Book in it, till the light of the reformation had made it
too hideous to be allowed to walk openly abroad, is
strong indirect proof that the book w^as genuine. A
book of Rome circulates unquestioned for a hundred and
eighty five years; then it is prohibited, without any charge
however against its genuineness for 185 years more; then
it is called a forgery, in partibus inftdeliam. This is
good proof of the progress of light, but none at all
against the authenticity of the book.
This matter of the Index, is curious enough. The
Trent Index was compiled in 1564. Before that date,
twenty-seven known editions, of the Taxoz had been pub-
lished; as the reader will see by consulting in succession
Bayle, under the articles Banck, Pinet, and Tuppius;
then Prosper Marchand's Dictionaire Historique, un-
der the word Taxce; and then the Annates Typographic ce
of Panzer. And yet not the least notice was taken in
that Index of a single one of these editions! The first
notice we can find that was taken of any of them in
the Indexes, was in 1570, just a century after the publi-
cation of the first known edition; and then only in an ap-
pendix to the Roman Index, published by authority of
the king of Spain. The prohibition there is thus, Praxis
et Taxa officincB penitentiaries Papce (p. 76.) The next
Index published by Papal authority seems to have been
284 THE TAX BOOK OF THE ROMAN CHANCERY.
by I ni. Rome 1596; in which we have, added to
the foregoing prohibition, the pregnant words, — abfuere-
ticis depravata. In the edition of Pins VI., 178G the
prohibition is again significantly changed thus,-
kccr in the editioi
Pius VII. 1806; and in another of the sam£ pope pub-
lished in L819. These facts are surely irreconcileable
with the idea of any rery great zeal on the part of
pope to clear his skirts of this hook; or any vcrv recent
forgery of it, by his enemies.
On the 133 page of Pius VII. Index of 1819 is this
entry; " Gravamina centum nationis Germanicce. — hid.
IWrf." The entry immediately preceding is "Gratius
Orthunus, Fasciculus Re rum fyc. — Ind. Trid;" in which
book printed at Cologne 1535 and again at London 1690,
the aforesaid Centum Gravamina, are also found. In
the Ecclesiastical History of Du Pm, Doctor of Sorbonne
&c, London edition of 1703, Vol. on the XVI. century,
Book II. ch. XV.— pp. 78—82; there is an account of
the Diet of Nuremburg, and of these Centum Gravt
?m, compiled and published by it, in 1522. Du Pin, re-
duces the articles composing these Gravamina into heads;
and sets forth in substance many of them. Under the
first head, the Diet complained that there were such mul-
titudes of papal constitutions about things neither com-
manded nor forbidden by God; all which were dispem
with for money! The second head, complained that, for
money, all sorts of indulgences were granted; and thus a
door set open for all sorts of crimes! And so on, down
to the fifteenth head, in order. Du Pin was a good pa-
pist; and so were most of the members of the Diet of
Nuremburg, which sat only five years after Luther had
first broken ground, against the corruptions of Rome, by
publishing his Theses against Indulgences. But if "my
lord England" — wishes more indubitable papal authori-
ty, he will find it, by turningto Annates Ecclesiastici &c,
Tom. XX., Raynaldus'* continuation of Baronius\ Roma
1663; undei the year 1523, 2. 5. Num. 30 — 18; where he
will find these terrible Gravamina, digested into seventy
seven heads, by the authorised historian of his church. —
Now all that is wanting to make a multitude of these
i Hi: TAX BOOK OF THE ROMAN (HANCKRV. 2S5
hur vances ailed ged by the Diet of the German
empire before the establishment of the reformation) almost
literal citations from thai the prices are not
annexed.
But Mr. Dagger, John, Bishop, insinuates that nobody
in Europe uow-a-days pretends that the hook is genuine;
at least nobody who is either scholar-like, or Christian-
like, or gentleman-like. Let us see* At the end of the
edition of the Index, published in 1819, is an Appendix
containing eleven separate additions, made by successive
decrees to the list of prohibited books. The last of these
dec: -Oth September, 1827. Con-
tained in the first of these, and on p. 350 of the book — is
this entry, " Taxes des parties casuelles tie la Boutique du
Pape re! r Jean xxii. etpublies par Leon x. Vnh-
n de S. Jlcheut. Deer. 27, November
1820." — If Mr. D. J. B. wishes any additional confirma-
tion of the truth of his suggestion, he will find it, if he
will consult De Potter's work entitled L* Esprit de V Eg-
Use, torn vii. pp. 22 — 27, and tomix. pp. 151 — 154. De
Potter still lives; he was one of the leaders of the Belgian
revolution; and his work was printed in Paris in 1821. —
In the place last cited he has four pages of remarks on and
quotations from the General Tariffs for sin, in the papal
church. His first authority cited is Wolfgag, MuscuL
loc. commiin, Sacr. Theolog. pp. 215 — 225. He then cites
the "Time Cancellarice $fc." which he says "was first
printed at Rome in 1514, ( Panzer proves fourteen edi-
tions before this,) and afterwards at Cologne in 1515 and
1523, at Paris in 1520, — at Venice in the Oceanus Juris,
vol. 6. in 1523, and again in vol. 15, in 1584. Laurent
Banck consulted all these editions, and others besides, —
to publish that which he gave with notes at Franeker in
1651. I have followed a modern edition (Juxta exem-
plar Romce 1541; Sylvce Duels 1706) collated and certi-
fied to conform to the editions of Rome and Paris, by a
commission of the municipal officers of Bois-le-Duc." — ■
These are the words of a Philosopher of the xix. centu-
ry!— We suppose the whole congregation of the Lidexy
backed by a first rate modern philosopher — may be con-
sidered equal, in the assertion of a mere matter of fact
286 THE TAX BOOK OF THE ROMAN CHANCERY.
(viz: whether the Tax Book is or not, of late years, com-
monly allowed to be a forgery?) — to the denial of one
bishop in part 'thus. We confess we are not positive; for
the question has a squint of literature; and we know the
Bishop's rare attainments. Wehave heard him say fzic
for Isaac, and Izreel for Israel — and much of the same
kind;standing with dignity august before admiring crowds
— and hugging his abdomen with both his arms, to sup-
port his great attainments! Therefore we doubt
Now let us leave history, and try a little logic. If we
rightly comprehend the pleadings of Dagger , John,
Bishop — he does not say all the book is forged, out and
out; but only that in general, it is a forged book. Upon
this we may remark, that whenever he will condescend to
point out the forged parts, or any of them — we will take
upon ourselves the task of showing, that there is precise-
ly as much reason to believe the part declared a forgery to
be genuine — as any other part of the volume. General
charges amount to nothing. Let Mr. D. J. B. either say
that the whole is a forgery, out and out; or else let him
say specifically what parts of it are forged. To do the
former surpasses even his assurance; or if it does not —
the fact of the existence and publication of a Tax Book
of the Pope's Chancery, is as fully established, as any
fact about any profane book ever published. To do the
latter, subjects him to the ordeal, already stated. So that
his dealing in general charges, is strong indirect evidence
against both his cause and his candour.
But we remark still further, that if Mr. D. J. B. will
point out and deny any leading principle in any addition
of the Tux Book refered to by us, as genuine, in this or
any other article; then we will undertake to prove aliunde
— that is from other indubitable papal authorities, that
the principle of the Tax Book so controverted, is a good
papal principle! So that if the book be forged — the for-
gery can at the most amount to no more than a true and
faithful collection into one volume, of matter scattered
over hundreds. Every candid reader will see in this fact
— the strongest possible indirect evidence of the genuine-
ness of the book. If a book contains the most extraor-
dinary and revolting principles, and asserts on its fact
THE TAX BOOK OF THE ROAMN CIIANt'LRV. 287
that it comes from Koine; B hare denial, three hundred
years too late, by a Cork priest made mlo a bishop m par-
tlbus infideliwntiy thai there is a right useo ime
Rome — is just nothing, if Rome be in all the principles
ith.
To go from logic to law; if Dagger, John, Bishop will
turn to the great Dictionire Histarique of the priest
Moreri (mark that, the priest Moreri) Vol. hi. pp. 150
— 151, of the folio edition of 1740, under the article Droit
Cwxonique ; he will find an exposition of the origin and
composition of the Canon Law. Under the last period
of that law, ihc pritst Moreri records as expressly form-
ing part of the "Corps du Droit" uThe Rules of the
ilposiolic Chancery made since John xxii. which are in
number about 71." In Vol. ii. of his Dictionary, under
the title Banck, he says that he (Banck) published the
Taxa Cancellaria Romana, in 1651, and then adds: "This
book which had already been printed at Rome in 1514,
had afterwards been reprinted at several places, as at
Paris, Cologne, Boisleduc, Franeker and other places. —
One may there see what penalty they must pay for the most
enormous crimes and for the most infamous sins— as well
on the part of Ecclesiastics as laics." The Titles in the
Tax Book are 70; the number of Rules is stated by Mo-
reri, at uabout 71." We do not pretend that the Titles
of the Tax Book, and the Rules of the Chancery are the
same; but the odd fact lies here-— that there should be just
as many titles of provision for pardon by the Chancery,
as there are Rules in the Chancery— and yet the latter be
genuine and the former forged.
On examining the Canon Law, we find a great deal
about these Rules of the Roman Chancery. In Vol. III.
of the Corpus Juris Canonici, pages 36 — 7, and again
pages 74 — 90; and again page 200, making in all about
twenty folio pages, are occupied in treating of only a por-
tion of these rules. In this body of matter the student
will find much direct proof of a minute kind, of the
genuineness of the Tax Book, or rules for absolution un-
der the rules of the chancery itself. The truth is, the
very existence of these Rules of the Chancery, is strong
presumptive proof of the existence of a corresponding
28S Tin: tax book or the Roman chancery.
system of payment for absolution; since the pope claim?
; ude of power and the right to grant Indulgences —
a claim and I te council of Trent in the
xw . de Induh id since this
im (n\(>vs every other pari of the discipline of the
church, and practically lias been used I ivery
thing, aad to absolve from every thing, But
on examining the mi sely we find (Cot
Vol. iii. /). 74. Tractates de Beneficiis Ecct Ti-
ts viii. Observed ionis in Romance CancellaruB Regvlas)
that the division of the Canon Law touching the Rules
is exactly answerable to the divisions of the Tax Book
touching the subjects of dispensation; as any student will
immediately see, on comparing the two! So that the facts
compel us to believe that the whole are of the same
origin — and equally authentic: that is, that the Tax Book
is genuine if the Canon Law is; which is a pretty tough
conclusion for the cause of Dagger, John, Bishop.
It is perfectly notorious to all the world that Rome
claims a plenitude of power as residing in her temporal
head — who, as she says is the vicar of Christ. In par-
ticular, she claims to possess the power of absolving from
sin in general, or from any special sin; and to grant what
she calls Indulgences, upon terms stated by herself. What
an Indulgence actually is, is a recondite affair in the
church of Rome; and any person may safely deny
any statement that can be made about it, to be the true
doctrine; since there are abundance of contradictory true
doctrines on the subject. How variously this matter
was understood at the era of the reformation, by various
classes of Papists, is manifest from the ninety-live pro-
positions of Luther, published at Wittemberg in 1517)
while he was, as he afterwards confessed himself, not
only "a most blinded priest" but also ua most mad monk;"
as contrasted with the thesis of John Tezel^ in answer to
Luther, published the same year at Frankford. It is how-
ever undeniable thai as early as the year 1300 Boniface
VIII. in his Bull instituting the first jubilee, grants "not
only a full and abundant, but the fullest pardon of all
sins" — to certain classes of persons therein named; and
that Clement VI., only half a century later, sets forth in
THE TAX BOOK OF THE ROMAN CHANCERY.
precise terms the grounds on which the church obtained,
held and might use this infinite power of pardon and in-
dulgence. We make these statements on the authority
of the Corpus Juris Ckmojvici) Extravag* Commtm, lib.
v. tit i.v. cupp. 1 ct 2. Now suppose that the pardon was
valid only on the performance of the prescribed penance;
still it rests with the church to prescribe that penance;
and to apply it;£so we have the ancient penitential can-
ons; and all this came naturally under the power of the
keys, as claimed by Rome. Indulgence goes a step farther:
it comes to interfere with the penance, — to lessen it, — to
commute it, to suffer it vicariously, or to remit it wholly
or in part; and that all this was done by the church, is
perfectly clear from the same penitential canons. That
money was demanded and paid, and that at fixed rates,
as part of the consideration of the indulgence; nay as
part of the original penance, and also as part of the com-
mution of it by way of indulgence; and that from an
early period of the apostacy, is also certain enough. The
Pcenitentiale of Theodore, archbishop of Canterbury in
the seventh century; that of the venerable Bede his suc-
cessor, (denominated De Remediis. Peccatorum;) and
that of Ecgbert, archbishop of York in the eighth century,
are all extant ; and in all of them, as well as in the Pent-
tentiale Romanum, and even in the canons subjoined to the
Decretals of Gratian, rules are given for a pecuniary com-
pensation for declined penances. Now what is this, but
the very sum and substance, the very bone and marrow,
of the Taxce? If there be a mode and a power, to es-
cape penance by money, as the whole or a part of the
consideration; what is so natural, so inevitable, as that
the rules of this commutation, should be digested, ap-
proved and published. This is precisely the very thing
that has been done; and from 1471 'till 1822, not less
than fifty editions of this book of the pope's fees of office
— have been published. The force of the inference from
these facts, as to the genuineness or spuriousness of the
Taxes, we leave to the consideration of Dagger, John,
Bishop,
We have now shown that the facts, the logic and the
law of the case, are all clear against our bishop in par-
25
£00 THE TAX BOOS OF nil-: ROMAS CSAKCE&1
//7>//\. Lei us next try the chronology of it; still I
to our narrow ground of indirect proof. I). J. J!, i not
vci\ mealy-mouthed in his mode of talking about Pro-
testani witnesses; though by his rule pf testimony all
human proof is at an end — as no body but an interested
witness will serve his turn — and no I
mil such testimony. But wo will hold to th< int.
oi" t ' i ry of the Tax Book — and just now, to the
naked argument from chronology. Jintoine du J
the first groat forger of this puie book, dates his epistle
dedicatory to his famous edition of it, on the 26th of
March, 1564, at Lyons. — (Bayle, Article Pinet. note B.J
Here is one fixed point. All the editions before this
were published by good Catholics, and usually with pri-
vilege either of pope or king. Laurent Banck, the pub-
lisher of the other great forged edition of the Tax Booky
died Oct. 13, 1662: having published the book atFrane-
ker in 1651, ( Bayle 7 Article Banck, note B.J; nearlj
a century after Pinet. Now Thuanus, in his Uistoire
Universelle, torn. iii. p. 460 — 3, gives us a terrible sum-
mary of the state of the Papacy, cited from Claude
aVEspence, under the year 1663, a year before the issuing
of PineVs, and ninety-nine years before BanclJs edition
of the Taxce. He was the intimate companion of the
cardinal of Lorraine, and was with him both at the fa-
mous colloquy of Poissy, and at Trent. Pleading for
the reform of the church, the pope, he says, ushould
commence it by abolishing the disgraceful imposts which
are levied from benefices and suppress the sordid traffic of
the Datery and the Chancery, where every merchandize
is set to auction" <§rc. $*c. This same learned and candid
prelate in a formal list of the means and instruments, by
which Rome indulged her avarice, actually sols down the
very book, in dispute-— tc Taxcv Cancel!'
---denouncing it, as most infamous in itself, most exten-
sively circulated, and virtually by the authority of Rome.
(See Iiis Commentary on the Epistle to Titus, chapter i.
7, Digression 2, page (>?, Parisiis 1568.) Now we
crave of Dagger, John, Bishop, the solution of this
chronological phenomenon; upon the supposition that
Pinet put in the filth of the Tax Book, after Hspence
had thus spoken! And if he has any doubts as to the
THE TAX BOOK OF THK Un.MAN CHAHCERT.
reality of Espence's testimony or even its nature, Lei hiiu
consult tht' Index of Qwiroga his brother in^uisit
ral, for Spam. Mad. L634 foL 72,
But let us try another witness as to this
Nicholas Clemangis was elected rector of the Univ<
Paris, 1393; he was alterwarda secretary to pope Bi m -
dict XIII.; and lived till about i 1 10; say within our
hundred and twenty-fire years next before Pinet's, and
largely over two hundred years before Banck's edition of
the Tax Book. And yet tins prelate, in many passages
has quoted the facts and almost the words of the disputed
book. Speaking of exactions by dispensations in his
Tract de Prcesulibus, p. &6, he thus breaks forth: "The
• •hurch which Christ has taken for his spouse, without
wrinkle or blemish, disfigured by this horrible villany, is
now the shop of all pride, of all trading, of all filching
and stealing, where the sacraments are hung out for a
show, all the orders, even the priesthood itself; where
favours are sold for silver, dispensations for not preach-
ing, licenses for non-residence: where all offices and
benefices, yea, even sins are bought and sold: lastly, where
masses and the administration of the Lord's body are set
to sale," &c. &c. These samples present the argument;
and we can only pretend to that at present. If any of
our readers wish to look into this sort of testimony, they
will find a tolerable compend in the Review of the Coun-
cil of Trent, writen in French by an eminent advocate,
councellor to Henry IV., and translated into English by
Gerard Langbaine of Oxford, in 1638; especialfy lib. 2,
rap 4, which treats of the pope's taxes.
There is another aspect of this argument worth a mo-
ment's consideration. We find that the Tractatus Trac-
tatuum, seu Oceanus universe Juris, §y., which appeared
at Venice, was published by Papists and with papal ap-
probation throughout. The 15th vol., dated in 1584,
was published by order of pope Gregory XIIL But in
that 15th vol. p. 368 as well as in the 6th vol. issued
1523, behold this identical Taxes Cancellarice! Strange,
that infallible pontiffs should twice re-publish a gross for-
gery on their own church; once forty years before the
forgery existed, and again twenty years after Pinet had
completed it
292 THE TAX BOOK OF THE ROMAN CHANCER*'.
Again; on a minute examination of the titles of the
Contested editions, and those of indisputable genuine-
ness, we find the following (acts. The title of Pineth
forged edition of 1564, was, uTaxe dcs Parties Oisuelles
de la Boutique dm Pope" — (See Bayle, article Pinet.
Note B.) The title of the Paris edition of 1530, pub-
lished by ToUSSaint Denis, was, uTaX4B ('"/K tllar icr
Jlpostolicce, et Taxce Paenitentiaricc it'uli m ■ Ipostolica." —
(Bayle, as above.) The edition published in Rome in
1514, by order of Pope Leo X, has this title: u Taxce
Cancellaricc Jlpostolicce, et Taxce Sacrce Penitentiarici'
Apostolicce" — (Bayle, as above.) Now the fact is, that
the quotations and references, by the learned, before the
date of Pinet's edition, are all by express citation of titles,
or by indubitable references — to the indisputable papal
editions, as containing all the tremendous things which
D. J. B. says wTere forged by Protestants! And even
after the date of Pinetfs; and even Banckh edition which
was nearly a century later, most of the citations are still
from the Papal editions. The difference of the titles ren-
ders the mode of citation a perfectly clear argument on
the subject! Take Claude dJEspence as an example; who
in the passages quoted and referred to by us, cites the
Papal editions, by their exact title: and this before the
publication of Pinet's. Take, also, the case of l)\iu-
bigne, in his Confession de Sanci, printed in the Journal
of the Memorabilia of the reign of Henry 111., which
was published after PineVs edition; but in which he
quotes and cites the Tax Book by the Papal title, and
not by that given by Pinet. Now here is a small matter
of fact which we are curious to see solved-— in a plausi-
ble way by Dagger J. B.: and which, in default of some
solution puts the subject to rest.
In further collateral illustration and proof of the truth
for which we now contend, the reader is requested to con-
sult any history of the Council of Constance: and he will
find that the Reforming College as it was called, of that
famous council, agreed on certain important articles, and
presented corresponding resolutions to the council. In
Lerfant's History of that Council (London Ato edition of
1730) several pages of the vii. Book, are taken up with
THE TAX BOOK OF THfc! ROMAN CHANCERY. 2!>3
this subject and report; which the reader will find on pp.
345.-349 of Vol. ii. The reference in the Index of the
work is thus u Tax of the Chancery of Rom^"— and the
subject matter is specifically, the reforms proposed in the
Chancery. This was nearly a hundred years before the
issuing of the first edition of the printed Tax Book, cited
by De Potter, and above fifty years before the earliest
recension of any kind known to Panzer; and the com-
motion raised at Constance, most probably led to the
more orderly transaction of the business of the Chance-
ry—and the final publication of its regiilar charges. On
page 346 is a quotation from the Tableau de la Coin' de
Rome, of Aymon, by which it appears that in his time,
the duty of taxing the bulls sued out of the Pope's
Chancery, appertained to the "Abbreviators of the petty
bar, with the Apostolical Registers." In further illustra-
tion of the whole subject, reference is made to pp. 147
and 151 of Aymorts book. This seems to show most
conclusively, that there has been for ages, a Tariffs at
which dispensations might be had, at the Pope's Chan-
cery. But this is equivalent to the proof of the genuine-
ness of this Tariff ; for it is the chief one ever knowrn to
exist; the direct proof of its genuineness is clear and full;
and every separate principle of it can be established as
true papism, aliunde. But there is a most overwhelming:
fact, in regard to this matter which seems to put all cavil
at an end. There is in the British Museum, a MS. col1
lection of these Taxce. It is found in the Harleiam de-
partment, and is described in the catalogue of the MSS!
in it, in 4 vols, folio 1808, in vol. II. p. 262 &c. The
collection consists of two volumes small folio, Num.
1850™ 1. 2, written on vellum, and having every appear-
ance of genuineness and antiquity. These identical
volumes were withdrawn from the archives of the Ro-
man Chancery on the death of Innocent XII., by the
identical John Aymon, Apostolical Prothonofory, men-
tioned above; and were purchased of him,, in Holland, at
an immense price, by the earl of Oxford. They contain
copies of the Taxoe, both Cancillarice a nd Penitenfiarice
in various forms. A full account of, these remarkable
volumes is given in the catalogue itself, already refe .
25*
294 Till: TAX BOOK OF THE ROMAN CHANCERY.
to; which in this part, is understood to have been written
by the celebrated Mr. Wanley. What saith the ccloid
bishop of Charleston" — to this?
We feai Dagger, John, Bishop, is n <n to
reading sermons — especially Protesl here-
fore ask him to excuse us for referring to on piece
of information somewhat germain to the case in hand. —
In vol. i. of the Morning Exercises, page 606 — in the
xvii. sermon of the vol. are these words: "There is a
book lately published by Anthony Egans B. D. late con-
fessor general of the kingdom of Ireland, and now min-
ister of the gospel according to the reformed religion. —
The title of it is thus, " The Book of Rates now used in
the Sin- Custom- House of the Church and Court of Rome ,
containing the Bulls, Dispensations, and Pardons for all
manner of Villanies and Wickedness icith the several
sums of moneys given and to be paid for them." The au-
thor then proceeds to quote some of the rates. The ser-
mon we quote from, is against cc The popish doctrine ichich
forbideth to marry,'- &c. and the vol. it is in, was print-
ed in London in 1675. We should like to know of D. J.
B. what book that was to which reference is had; and
whether a confessor general for all Ireland, who lived
near two hundred years closer to the fountain head of the
present dispute — is not as good a witness, as a Cork
priest, bishop inpartibus — of the present day?
There is one kind of indirect evidence which is of
very great force, and which might be accumulated to the
extent of many volumes: we mean proofs of the condi-
tion of the court and clergy of Rome in those ages,
wrhich produced, and which raost unblushingly made pub-
lic the Tax Book of the Chancery: proofs which show
that just such a book was to be looked for in just such
times. We make a few citations and references. Jtttoa-
rus Pchfgius, quoted by Bellannin as r.n ardeir, defender
of John xxii. who perhaps first published the 7<..r<r, in
his work l)c Planet a Ecclesice, says of the prelates at
Rome, "They celebrate the mysteries for money; they sell
the body of JeMis Christ; the) consecrate and ordain for
money; they give the sacraments for money; they buy and
sell the sacraments," &c. Again he continues, UI have
THE TAX BOOK OF THE ROMAN ( llANCLUV. 295
been often in Ihe c hamber of our Lord's chamberlain, and
have always seen money changers and tables covered
with gold, — and ecclesiastiea who counted and weighed
the gold.'1 The whole detail of this business is given in
the Tableau de la Coin' de Rome, of Jean .lymon, already
cited. He was domestic prelate to pope innocent xi. —
His work is abridged and published at the end of the
edition of 1744 of the Taxe de la Chancellcrie Romaine.
And this state of things had been long continued; for
Mathar Paris (in Henry iii. year L225) reports a letter
of Pope Honorius iii., in which he avows in terms, "That
the desire of riches had been at all times the scandal and
opprobrium of the See of Rome; which clearly appeared
in this, that nothing could be done at Rome without a
great expenditure of money — and without making large
presents." — Eneas Silvias, afterwards Pope Pius, li.
says, (Opera p. 149, Epistle 56,) "There is nothing
which the court of Rome will not accord for money; it
sells imposition of hands and the gift of the Holy Ghost;
and with money you may obtain all sorts of pardons." —
Baptist Mantouan has a Latin couplet in his iii. Book De
Calamit Suorum Temp, to this effect, "Rome sells tem-
ples, altars, priesthood, sacrifice, incense, prayers, heaven,
and God himself." This man was prior general of the
order of Carmelites, at a period when the Tax Book of
the Roman Chancery was openly published in Rome; and
had in the book itself, proof enough of his statement. —
We will pass by for the present, Conrad of Usperg, —
St. Bernard, Ives of Chartres, Godfrey of Vendome,
Durandus, John Gerson, John de Hesse, Peter d'Aille,
Theoderic Vrie, Petrarch, A ntonine Archbishop of Flor-
ence, the Monk Langius, Rodeiic of Zamera, Mura-
tori, Ranaldus, Guichiardini, .Maimburg — and scores
besides; we pass them all, and all their indirect testimony
by; supposing that those cited, who saw with their eyes,
and had not a whit of interest to confess more than the
truth, are as likely to know the truth as a Cork priest
bishop in partibus, who flourishes near four hundred
years after the book first appeared, and who has all pos-
sible interest to deny the truth.
Amongst the indirect evidences against Dagger, John,
Bishop, a very strong one, is his disingenuous way of
29G THE TAX BOOK OF THE ROMAN CHANCERY.
making ({notations, extracts, and statements both of fact
and authority, Let us set down one, which seems to
settle one of his main defences. If we understand him,
he desires to have it considered that the True Texa Can*
cellarice, could he only one of two things, (1) mere :
to the pope's officers who prepare, and deliver the hulls,
briefs, &c; or (2) fines imposed for crimes already com-
mitted. If they be the former, the case is settled — -for
the pardon is admitted; and the fact of the pardon, more
than the price of it, is the question, — though he indeed
in that view, admits that a price is paid. But as to the
notion of fine, the argument of D.J. B. is flatly contrary
to his own Canon Law. In the Corpus Juris Canonici
Vol. iii. Be Judiciis, Pars ii. Titulus vi. Sectio viii. It
is expressly wTritten, UA pecuniary penalty ought not to be
inflicted for crimes!!"
Any one who will examine the contents of these Taxce
— will at once perceive, the most abundant reason why
the court and church of Rome should desire to conceal
them from Protestants, even if they were in full force and
constant use. And this fact, in the absence of all proof,
raises a strong suspicion against all interested efforts to
discredit them. It is plain enough that what may pass
very well at Rome — may not be marketable in the United
States; and therefore it is easy to see, why "my lord
England" — should earnestly desire to bring into doubt,
the authenticity of a book, not only immoral to the last
degree, but absolutely atrocious. Crimes unknown, as
one might have hoped, amongst civilized, not to say
amongst Christian men; crimes against truth, decency,
modesty, nature, religion, and virtue; crimes so horrible,
as not to bear repetition, in a work like the present, even
in the disguise of a dead tongue; are all set down in these
detestable Taxce as common and familiar things, in the
usual routine of the chancery of papal see.
We merely set out to give a sam] le o( the true state
of this question of fact, — as judged by indirect testimony.
The papal controversy is the most extensive of all that
ever existed; and oi' this controversy, amongst the most
extensive portions, are the testimonies to papal corrup-
tion— and especially to the licentiousness and rap eity of
the court of Rome.
297
NUMBER XXX.
SECRETA MONITA SOCIETATIS JESU.
I. It is certainly of the greatest importance, in deter-
mining the value of the Secreta Momta as evidence in
estimating the character of the Society of Jesus, to come
to some satisfactory conclusion as to the authenticity of
the work itself. If it can be shown to be really what it
purports to be, then indeed the most secret principles of
the most extraordinary and most universally ext crated
fraternity that ever appeared amongst men, are plainly
laid open to the public view; and all may see the proibund
source of all those active, extended and unceasing oper-
ations, by which these persons kept so large a part of the
world in ceaseless commotion for so many years. If in-
deed the work be not perfectly authentic, that is, if in-
stead of being the real Secret Counsels of the order ema-
nating from its very head, revealed by accident; it should
appear to be a revelation made by an expelled Jesuit, as
some of them say, or a mere suppositious composition as
others pretend, compiled from their various authors and
embodying what an enemy might suppose they would say,
if they officially propounded their real secret instructions;
the case would perhaps appear to be somewhat weaken-
ed. But even then, if an expelled member had written
it, it might all be true; and while the power to show it
was not, if indeed it was not, would be complete in the
society, its failure to do so, added to inherent evidence
of genuineness, in the work itself, might establish its re-
ality on as unquestionable grounds as if it had the im-
primatur of the general himself upon its face. Or if the
last supposition can be considered as possible, a compi-
lation of the most clear and well defined rules of action
drawn from unquestionable sources, and thrown together
into one volume, would seem, if possible, the very clear-
est mode of exhibiting the general and real spirit of the
body, to which all the writers belonged. There are
298 BECRETA M0N1TA SOCIETATIS JESU.
schools of morals, of politics, of crime, as well as of let-
ters and of all things else. It is a wide, terrible, and pe-
culiar school whose opinions and conduct are illustrated
in the Secrete Monita. And if it had been faithfully
done, by the laborious compilation and classification of
materials drawn from a thousand sources, a more impres-
sive and fair method cannot well be imagined.
II. It is certainly past all dispute thai this book has,
for a very long period, been in possession of the world. —
Here it is, handed down to us through several centuries
To sneer at it, and pass it by, is simply to establish its
unanswerable authority. To be unable to give any satis-
factory account of it, is to let it prove itself. It exists.
It could not have produced itself. Whence did it comer
But three solutions are possible.
1. It is an authentic wTork, containing the real facts it
pretends to contain; and being what it purports to be.
2. It is the work of some expelled Jesuit, and may be
more or less true, according to his knowledge of what he
tried to reveal, or his integrity in telling truly what he
knew.
3. It is the work of an enemy, who never was a Jesuit,
but who has pretended to put into the mouth of the chief
authorities of that order, what he believed they would
say, if they uttered their real sentiments on the points
here treated of.
III. Let us then briefly examine each of these suppo-
sitions in turn. And first, is this work authentic? I reply,
there is scarcely a particle of reason to doubt it.
1. In the British Museum there is a work printed at
Venice in 1596, with this title uHce Formula diversarum
Provisionum a Gaspare Passarcllo summo studio in unum
collectce et per ordinem in suis locis annotatte" At the
end of that (and where more likely?) the Secreta Mon-
ita, in Latin, is copied in manuscript, apparently by a
Jesuit, for his own private use; with solemn cautions at
the end, similar to those found in the printed preface to
the work itself, that the utmost care was to be taken that
few, and these most trusty, should know them; and that
if ever imputed to the society, they must be denied.
2. In the Lidex Librorum Proliibitorum. Pn VII. Romcc
1819, p. 210, is the following entry. "Monita Privata
SECRETA MONITA SOC1ETATIS JESU. 299
Societatia Jesu. Deer. 26, Martii 1621." This edition
is not generally known to the learned. Jt is older, count-
ing back onl) to the date of the Decree prohibiting it,
by nearly forty years — than. No. 3j the earliest English
translation of the work. It is also stated by the author
of LesJesuites Remis en cause, himself doubtless a Jesuit,
that the Secreta Monita was put into the hides in 1616;
but \ve have not been able to find the entry. Most probably
the work was published in 1616, and put into the Index
in 1621 — as above stated.
3. In the year 1658, there was a translation of the
work from Latin into English, published in England.
This edition is frequently to be met with. In the preface
to it, it is related that duke Christian of Brunswick,
took possession of the Jesuit college at Paderborn, in
Westphalia, when he entered that place, and gave the
library and manuscripts to the Capuchins, who found the
Secreta Monita amongst the archives of the Rector.
It is also asserted that other copies were found at Prague
and elsewhere.
4. In the year 1660, an edition was published in Italian,
with the title, UI Lupi smascheratinelle confutatione e tra-
duzione del libra intitolato Monita Secreta societatis
J esu, in virtu de'quali giunzero i Gesuita alV orrido ed
esegrabile assassinio di sua sagra reale maesta fedelissirna
Bon Giuseppe i. re di Portogallo; con un appendice di
documenti rari ed inediti."
5. Dr. Compton, the celebrated bishop of London,
published another English verson of the Secreta Monita
in the year 1669; having satisfied himself, after full ex-
amination, of the genuineness of the work.
6. In the year 1717, there wras published at Amster-
dam, a Latin edition of the Secreta Monita under the
title of "Machiavelli Mus Jesuiticus," inscribed to John
KrausiuSy a Jesuit. A copy of this edition is in the
British Museum.
7. There are also in the British Museum several Ger-
man editions of the Secreta Monita.
8. In the year 1722, another edition of this work was
published in London, dedicated to Sir Robert Walpoley
prime Minister of England.
300 SECRETA MONITA SOCIETATIS JESL.
1). Another edition, and which is supposed to have
befen the hist that appeared in England was published in
17-H). This, as well as the last preceding edition, has
the Latin, and English, on opposite pages; and are both
preserved in the British Museum.
10. In the year 1727, a French edition of the Secreta
Monita \v;is published at Cologne under the title Les
Mysteries Itt plus secret des Jesuites content < rses
Pieces originates.
11. In the year 1831, the first American edition of the
Secreta Monita was published atPrjncelon N. J. with
the original Latin on one page, and a very diffuse Eng-
lish translation on the other. This edition is said on the
title page to be printed verbatim from the English edition
of 1725; which is one not contained in the above list, and
will therefore be added, by the reader as an additional
testimony. In the advertisement to this edition a state-
ment is made, which I suppose relates to the edition,
numbered 3 in the above series. If howTever the state-
ment relates to a different edition, it forms an additional
support to the proof in the case. The story in substance
is that a bookseller in Amsterdam, by name John Schip-
per, bought a copy of the Secreta Monita at Antwerp,
and reprinted it. The Jesuits hearing that he had such
a work, demanded it of him, but he had sent it to Hol-
land. A Jesuit of Amsterdam, soon afterwards learned
from Van Eyk, a Catholic bookseller, that Schipper was
printing a book that concerned the Society; he replied that
if it was only the Rules of the Society he should not be
under any concern: but desired him to ascertain what it
was. When the bookseller discovered that it was the
Secreta Monita, the father greatly agitated said, it must
be denied that this piece comes from the Society. As
soon however as the book appeared, the wThole edition
nearly was bought up by the Jesuits. From one of the
fewr copies not suppressed, the book wras reprinted, with
this story prefixed, there said to be taken from two Ro-
man Catholics of credit.
Now here is 1st, the Venice edition or 159G, or there-
abouts; 2, the prohibited edition of 1(r21; 3, the English
edition of 1658, taken from the Paderbom and Prague
SECRETA MONITA SOCIETATIS JESU. 301
copies; 4. the Italiiin edition of 1560; B,j Dr. Compton's
edition of 1669, to which let us add the other English edi-
tions of 1122, 1725 and 1746, and the American editions
of IS'M ci in i 5, as all drawn from the >urce, though
this is entirely gratuitous; 6, the Amsterdam edition of
1717, to which '^^^ the other two Amsterdam editions,
mentioned in the first American edition, whi< h is also
gratuitous; 7, the several editions, (supposing them to
be reprints pf each other, which is gratuitous, J found in
German in the British Museum; 8, the French edition of
1727. At the least, we produce eight separate, and
wholly independent proofs, from eight different sources
that this is a perfectly genuine and authentic record. These
records are found in the Latin, Italian, German, French
and English Languages. They extend over a period ex-
ceeding two hundred years. They were found in five or
six sovereign states, the most of which professed the
Catholic faith, and one of them, Venice, under the very
eyes of the sovereign pontiff. And they all agree, in
every fact, stated by each. Now it would be the most
incredible event ever established by proof, if this various
and concurring evidence should be proven to have acci-
dentally conduced all to the very same result, and still all
be false. It would on the other hand be the most extra-
ordinary circumstance ever conceived of, that so many
persons, in so distant places, and so separated by ages,
should conspire, and succeed in practising such a fraud
as this, upon the minds of men. Indeed it is hard to im-
agine, how the genuineness and perfect authenticity of
any record, could be established on more irrefiagable
proofs.
IV. There are, however, those who deny that the Se-
creta Moxita is authentic: but make the allegation con-
tained in the second of the three suppositions made above.
This brings us to consider, whether as they say, this
book may not be the wTork of some expelled Jesuit, and
therefore false.
It may be observed, it would not by any means follow
that because the Jesuits had expelled a man, therefore all
his statements must necessarily be false. Perhaps the
contrary would be quite as fair a conclusion; unless in
26
3Q2 SECRETA MO-MTA SOCIETATiS JESL',
deed, all the allegations of history against this i
false, it would seem amongst the most probable events,
that an upright man who chanced to become |
of their real designs, would desire to leave them as fast as
he could; and would thus subject himself to expulsion, if
that was their way of treating the refract
But an expelled Jesuit is a rarer being, even than a
candid one The) know little of priests, littl< of Kane.
nothing of the spirit of the Society of Jesus, pro-
fanely call themselves; who can for one moment suppose,
that the high and trusty dignitaries of the order, (and
none else know their secrets,) ---would escape with ex-
pulsion, and the power to reveal them. The cord, the
bowl, the dagger, and the dungeon, are instruments not
perfectly unknown to this fraternity; and none ever knew
better, that the dead speak not. The light of history
must be put out, and the ferocious spirit that even in this
free land gnashes on us with its hideous teeth, must be
more warily concealed, before such stories about expelled
Jesuits can gain credence.
But if this were the work of expelled Jesuits, — the or-
der must have been peculiarly unhappy. For, from the
proofs adduced, there must have been many of them,
widely separated in country and distant by generations
from each other! This Venitian Jesuit about 1596; this
Jesuit who published the edition of 16 16-21; this Jesuit
of 1658; this Italian Jesuit of 1660; this Jesuit at Am-
sterdam in 1717; these Jesuits at Prague and Paderborn
about the middle of the seventeenth century, and those
French Jesuits at Cologne far into the eighteenth. How
could it be, that so many of them should have been ex-
pelled as it for the very purpose of miraculously writing
falsehoods, that were perfectly identical! Upon the
whole, this is a better story than that for which some are
silly enough to say they have the unanimous consent of
the fathers; about the miraculous translation of the Sep-
tuagint, by seventy men, in seventy cells who in an in-
credibly short time turned all the old Testament from
Hebrew into Greek, all using identically the same words!
The story set forth by Dallas the English defender of
the Jesuits, and now currently repeated and relied on by all
SECRETA MONITA SOCIETATIS JESU. 303
their friends; is that, one Jerome Zarowich, an expelled
Polish Jesuit, wrote the Secrete Monita, and publish-
ed it in Cracow in 1616. To confirm this story, Dallas
and the author of Les Jesuites rends en cause, quote Cor-
dcra, Histor. Societ Jesu; whom the former calls "an
elegant historian," — but who was in fact, if Mortri is to
be relied on, an obscure Jesuit schoolmaster, of the early
part of the XVI. century. Dallas goes on to confirm his
assertion, by quoting from the Jesuit Gretser, but the
Frenchman, being more wary, did not follow him. Du
Pin, in his Ecclesiastical History (English version 1725)
vol. on the XVII. century. Book v. p. 45, gives a very
minute and extended account, of "James Gretser, Jesu*
Uem" in which unluckily for the date (1616) fixed forthe
original composition of the Secreta Monita, this emi-
nent Pap " informs us, that the controversial works of
this Jesuit, in 2 vols, folio were published at Ingoldstadt in
1607, and in 1609. And yet says Dallas, Gretser proves
the Secreta Monita, to have been first published, by
the expelled Jesuit Zarowich, in 1616! Try again, gen-
tlemen; this will hardly pass. And remember, that to fail
in accounting for the origin of such a book, under exist-
ing circumstances; is to let the book prove itself.
But it is absurd to suppose that any one man could
have produced the whole copies of the work, under the
circumstances already stated. It is equally absurd to
call a man the author of a work in 1616, which was in
existence about 1596, as is showm above, in a distant
country It is above all absurd to say, that the Secre-
ta Monita, was put into the Index of prohibited books,
and its perusal condemned at Rome in 1616; and at the
same time to say, that it was at that very time in a pro-
cess of composition at Cracow7 in Poland, hundreds of
leagues from Rome! Or if we rectify this papal mistake
and insert 1621, for 1616, still the facts show the great
antiquity of the work; and its being put into the Prohibit-
ory Index, shows the great anxiety of the Jesuits to have
it suppressed; and confirms the story told in the first
American edition, about one of the Amsterdam editions.
The celebrated Thomas James, who died in May 1629
aged 58; wrote some of his ablest controversial tracts
304 SECRETA MONITA SOCIETATIS JESU.
against this Grctzcr. We have not access to his works
at present.
These person^ however call this work, a mere forgery:
not giving the expelled Jesuit, even a pretext lor his al-
leged libel on the society. This is as ridiculous, as it is
false.
In the first place, if any one man ever lived who was
capable of producing, from his mind, this system of subtle,
profound and all grasping crime, (which is hardly credi-
ble;) then it may be confidently maintained, that it he had
ever fallen into the hands of this society, he was just the
man that the world's wealth could not have purchased
from them.
Again, whoever will attentively read over these Secre-
ta Monita, will at once perceive that they exhibit a
system so peculiar in all respects, as could only have been
suggested and concocted under the most extraordinary
circumstances. It is such as must have been social in
its origin, founded on the common sagacity, experience,
forecast, and interests of several, if not many, utterly
unscrupulous minds. There is no possible account of
this system's origin that can be so incredible, as that
which pretends, that one man produced it by mere ex-
cogitation. If that were indeed so, it would be the great-
est intellectual wonder the world ever beheld.
But the truth is, the minute proofs which establish the
fact that this book is no forgery, are so remarkable, as to
force us to admit its genuineness, or to shut our eyes to
truth.
In the first place, the style of the Latin composition
is such that it must have been written by persons having
slight pretensions to classical learning. The expressions
are occasionally grossly ungrammatical; very often most
singularly vulgar. And yet the scope of the whole is
awful!
Again, the turn of the expression is such as to render
it ceitain, that the authors of the Latin did not think in
English. I dare not use the same confidence as to other
languages; but I believe no scholar will deny, that the
manner of writing shows that the authors could not have
thought either in French or German. It is probable that
SECRETA MONITA SOCIETATIS JESU. 305
one individual put this work originally into form, as we
find the expression "inniHim," — / fay, SfC.; and it is
nearly certain that that person was a Spaniard. For first,
the spelling of the Latin is sometimes peculiar, and re-
sembles the Spanish; and secondly, usually technical
words are drawn from that language. Such are syndi-
cationibus, (Chap. vii. 8.) from the Spanish Sindicado
(judicium,) the judgment or authoritative sentence, in-
stead of the French Syndicate which could not exp
the sense intended; and the German Syndicat which only
means the tribunal itself. So also Cilicia, (Chap. vii. 9,)
which passing by the Latin Cilium, from which the
word might have been formed, and the French Cilice,
uses almost the very letters of the Spanish Cilicio, a hair
shirt, —
Such peculiarities seem to draw down our minds al-
most irresistibly, to the very band of detestable, ignorant,
and yet shrewd conspirators, who originated, and for the
first fifty years controled this fearful and and diabolical cor-
poration. This very speech betrayeth them.
So again the whole turn of thought, in those numer-
ous and most infamous passages which relate to females,
and especially to widows; shows evidently that the pre-
vailing ideas were drawn from a state of society neither
English, French, nor German; but peculiarly Spanish.
Thus too, some of the most incredible things contain-
ed in the whole book, and which no audacity would think
of forging, and nothing but absolute truth could em-
bolden a man to assert, from the very unreasonableness
of the thing, and the certainty of exposure; have actual-
ly been remarkably exemplified in practice, years after
their publication. In chap. vi. 1, for example, it is cool-
ly laid down as a settled rule of conduct, that initiated
Jesuits are in certain cases to pledge their faith and stake
their souls, on the behalf of those they wish to gain over
to their object. This, I admit, seems wholly incredible.
And yet the duke of Brunswick, has solemnly declared
to mankind, that one of the most weighty reasons (being
the 50th of his series) which induced him to turn Catho-
lic was precisely this. He had asked many Protestants
if they would agree to be damned in his stead, if he re-
* 26*
306 SECRETA MONITA SOCILTATIS JESU.
mained a Protestant, and their religion should by chance
be false; and oot one would agree to it! But on the other
hand, many Catholics readily agreed to such terms, if lie
would become one of them. The little volume contain-
ing the Duke's reasons, (just Mich reasons as one would
expeci to see used to justify such an act,) has been
tively banded about by Papists, ;. . ;m instrument of prose-
lyting, in various parts of* America.
Still further, the most minute details of these terrible
chapters, have been fulfilled even in this community, at
the end of more than two centuries after the wonderful
book was put into the prohibitory Index at Rome. Of this
I make three signal citations.
1. In the preface to the book, they are directed as a
principle, to deny their own rules, acts and every thing,
no matter how true, certain, and estimable, provided
policy requires it; and to have uninformed or unscrupulous
members to confirm their denial by oath. Now in this
very city, I have known priests, and many others, deny
the very decrees and canons, of their most famous coun-
cils; and openly traduce as calumniators, those who quoted
their books, printed by Archiepiscopal authority in our
very midst, and sold daily every where!
2. In the first chapter, it is recommended as peculiar-
ly important, to have connections with hospitals, prisofis,
&c. In this city an order of female professed, holding
the nearest intercourse with the Jesuits, has long had pos-
session of some of our most important public institutions
for the sick. In two of these at least, mass altars were
put up, at the expense of the public; and the compensa-
tion given to these females, (of the order, two of whose
members were witnesses to the will forged by the late
rector of the cathedral) kept secret, while the public.
was made to believe that nothing was paid for their ser-
vices.
3. In chapter vii. the method is pointed out by which
the sons of widows may be induced to join this monstrous
fraternity. Now it so happens, that both Mr. Whitefield
the late archbishop, and Mr. Eccleston the present one.
Were widows' sous! And what is worse, of Protestant ex-
traction. And what is final and conclusive, if the best
proof in our reach is to be credited, both Jesuits!
SECRETA M0NITA SOCIETATIS JESU. 307
These are only specimens of the exact and minute ful-
filment, of lies forged two hundred years ago, as they
ild persuade us by an expelled Jesuit, in impotent
ami sheer malice! The least that can be said is, that our
priests and prelates, and their sisters, have I
most unfortunate in their accidental confirmations of those
falsehoods!
V. We now come to the last supposition, of which the
case seems to admit; namely, that the Secreta Monita,
is the work of some implacable enemy of the society,
who never was a member of it, but has here exhibited
the principles by which he believed, or at least wished
to persuade others, that its secret affairs were conducted.
In refutation of such an opinion, if any one ever held
an opinion so entirely absurd, it may in general be ob-
served; that the whole amount of proof for two centuries,
and the universal consent of all disinterested persons to
the sulficiency of that proof; cannot be set aside by the
suggestion even of probable conjectures, still less by such
as are highly improbable, indicating a different state of
case. Now all the learned, both Protestants and Catho-
lis, so mat they were not Jesuits, have constantly and
with one accord, received this book as authentic in the
fullest sense. Every person who has written expressly
on the subject of the Jesuits, not being one of their
creatures; all who have had occasion to touch incident-
ally on the subject; all compilers of current opinion, and
received truth in the present and past ages; unanimously
agree, that these Secreta Monita, are the mystery of
iniquity by which this association has produced so much
harm. Surely something above conjecture and assertion
is wanting, to rebut this unanimous consent.
It may also be observed, that he who will carefully ex-
amine this system, will see; that organized as human so-
ciety has been, and without pronouncing on the merit or
demerit of the system itself; it is in the highest degree
clear, that if the Jesuits had adopted such rules of con-
duct as these, they must have produced great and last-
ing effects. On the other hand, if we look back at what
the Jesuits have done and suffered, we see in these rules,
the clearest exposition of their greatness and their over-
308 SECRETA MONITA SOCIETATIS JESU.
throw. To my mind, no proofs of genuineness could be
more complete, than those which thus spring up from the
very nature of the case, and stamp themselves indelibly
upon it. — And this is most remarkably true, if we re-
member, that the production and publication of this work,
occurred within less than sixty years after the origin of
the order, — before the developement of its greatness, and
its general infamy for its crimes; and has come down
side by side with it through successive ages, crying to
the world at once, with the voice of prophecy and the
undeniable truth of history.
The difficulties which must have existed in the way of
any attempt to compile such a work as this, from the
most abundant sources even, are so very great, that it is
next to impossible any man could have done it, without
committing such and so many blunders as to render de-
tection certain. That an obscure and now forgotten
person should have accomplished such a work, is not ca-
pable of belief. That such a person should have com-
pleted and issued such a work, before the great mass of
the publications from which they say he pretended to
draw it, were written; is childish folly to assert. And
that these mighty and terrible Jesuits afterwards wrote
these works to confirm what the Secreta Monita had
before said, or to give a colour to the allegation that it was
so compiled; no one will be mad enough to pretend.
The new state of the world out of which this order
arose, made it different from all things that had existed
before. In compiling this work, the author must know
all their peculiarities, must understand their entire design,
must enter into their prejudices — must see through their
code of morals — must be perfect master of their grand
scheme, and all the means by which it was to be com-
passed. See their peculiarities, their contempt of all
other orders, their asserting contrary to all other orders,
that the Church was a monarchy (chap. ix. 16.) their de-
votion to the education of youth, their special intrigues
with the great their snares for widows and servants —
the singular privileges personal and social of the order,
the peculiar difficulties they had met with in different
places, and the especial hatreds they had already con-
SECRETA MONITA SOCIETATIS JESU. 309
ceived, tlieir whole plan, and their w bole profound, -
cious, corrupt, complicated, and secret machinery! Who
could know, who could gather out tered volumes
n if they existed, or by private industry and opportu-
nities, Buck a system as this! It is out of all the bounds
of belief, that such a system could be so lormed, and then
so fitted, as this has fitted.
But if any choose to think otherwise, then let them rest
satisfied that he who should gather up out of a thousand
sources the true principles and policy of any order of men,
from their own writings and actions; would thus give the
most complete and comprehensive view of it, that could
by possibility be produced. It would then stand forth,
a livino-, moving, acting creature; and not, as in the naked
principles, dogmatically laid down, a great, but inanimate
outline. Let them rest assured moreover, that he who
did this in the case in hand, with no very ample materi-
als, at the period the work was done, if ever; has accom-
plished a work, the like of which cannot be produced out
of all the annals of the world, for perfect accuracy and
immeasurable success. If such a man ever lived, we
may safely pronounce him the most remarkable of his
race, and mourn that he has left behind no trace of his
being, but this stupendous triumph.
VI. There is in this case one peculiar circumstance
which gives to the authenticity of the Secreta Monita,
the seal of absolute certainty; while it casts the darkest
shade over the society. Why have the Jesuits any secret
rules, or instructions, or principles of conduct, or objects
of effort? Why this secrecy? And how, at so early a
period of their history as the end of the sixteenth centu-
ry, was the author of this work, supposing him to have
been no Jesuit, to have known with such certainty, the
existence and the nature of such secrets?
For many years they did indeed deny that any such se-
cret rules existed; and doubtless, they will now deny,
that these are the real secret counsels by which their affairs
are conducted. But about the middle of the XVII. cen-
tury, when the society was suppressed in Portugal for
being accessory to the assassination of king Joseph I. and
suddenly expelled from Spain for their complicated crimes;
310 SECRETA MONITA BOCIETATI8 JESU.
their constitutions and secret records fell into the hands
of the public. And in the famous controversy before the
great Chamber at Paris, between the merchants of Lyons
and Marseilles and the Prencb Jesuits, in the year 1761,
about the immense losses in the Martinica trade; the court
demanded, and in a luckless hourthe Jesuits produced,
their secret constitutions; thus falsifying all their former
statements.
Bui it had been long certain, that what was now first
admitted was really true. In the year 1624 the Univer-
sity of Paris, charged this order with being "governed by
private laws, neither sanctioned by kings, nor registered by
parliaments; and which they were afraid to communicate,
having done all in their power to prevent their being seen
by any other than those of the society." (Hist, of the
Jesuits, p. 329 of vol. 1.) How perfectly does this accord
with their own maxims, in their preface to the present
work; let no one who knows our secrets, be allowed to join
any other order, except the Carthusians icho preserve
strict retirement and perfect silence; which the See ok
Rome has confirmed. So that the allegation of the
unknown libeller who the Jesuits would have us believe
forged the Secreta Monita; is confirmed by the direct de-
claration of the University of Paris, and placed past doubt
by the indirect confirmation of the pope himself!
But I will produce one more witness, — Palafox,
bishop of Angelopolis, in his famous letter to Pope In-
nocent X. dated Jan. 8, 1649, writing of this society,
demands "what other Religion has a secret constitution,
hidden privileges, and concealed laws of its own? And
what other order has all those things which relate to its gov-
ernment involved in so much mystery? There is suspicion
in mystery. The rules of all other orders arc open to all;
even the Rules and Canons of Popes, Cardinals, ]>i shops,
and the whole clergy; the privileges, instructions, and sta-
tutes, of other religious orders may be seen and consulted
in almost every library; and the lowest novice in the Fran-
ciscan order may read at one vieiv,2vhat /lis duty would be,
if he should ever become the general of his order. But
THE SUPERIORS OF THE JESUITS DO NOT GOVERN THEM
BY THE RULES OF THE CHURCH, WHICH ARE KNOWN TO
SECRETA M0NITA SOCIETATIS JESU. 311
ALL, BUT BY CERTAIN BECBET RULES. (Regie* Calk
WHICH ARE only KNOWN TO THOSE SI PERIORS." (See
I, of the edition printed at Cologne, in 1666.)
\ II. Such a system can of course be found nowhere
else; forsuch another order, never was established amor
men. Indeed the only real ground for hesitation is the
reluctance with which the heart allows itself to credit
things of this kind. If history weie less replete with
the crimes of this atrocious fraternity, if the irresistible
evidence of the past left us some room to question the
utter and horrible depravity of this order; there might be
some room left, to relapse into a grateful incredulity of
such amazing sin. But there is not "a single hook on
which to hang a doubt." If every thing that is imparti-
al in history, can be said to concur with irresistible light
and power upon one single point; it is that this society
has been the most perfectly diabolical that ever was con-
ceived. If there is in the wide compass of human
thought, one expression, that in every dialect used
amongst men, conjures up at once, all that is wicked,
fearful and degraded; the supreme union of sin, activity
and genius; the very essence of wThat is to be hated, fear-
ed, and shunned, that expression is, a Jesuit priest! —
Whence this universal execration? Whence this uun-
animous consent" of all countries and ages against them!
The Infidel, the Catholic, the Protestant, and the very
Father of the faithful: Hume, De Thou, Mosheim, and
Gangenelli, as specimens of all; Protestant England, Ca-
tholic Venice, Infidel France, Pagan China, as a com-
mittee of the universe; why have all, every where, de-
nounced, abhored Jesuitism^ as the sum of all evil! —
Reader, examine, ponder the Secreta Monita, and you
wTill see the solution of this problem: and in that solution
you cannot but find the fullest authority for asserting the
genuineness and authenticity of the book itself.
Upon the whole, there cannot be a doubt on the mind
of any candid man who will examine the subject, that
the Secreta Monita, is no forgery; that it is no ingeni-
ously deduced system; but that it is sustainable by proofs
the most conclusive, in its pretensions to be the real se-
cret counsels of the society of Jesus ^ profanely so called;
312 SECRETA MONITA SOCIETATIS JESU.
drawn up at a very early period of its existence; com-
bining all its experience; revealing its grand purpose; and
constantly followed by its leading spirits.
VIIL No reader of these pages will imagine, that this
subject has been introduced into them as a question of
mere curiosity or controversial learning. Jesuitism, le-
gally introduced into the church of Rome, by the bull of
Paul III., of 27 Sept. 1540, continued for two hand red and
thirty Hirer years, and was then suppressed bv the bull of
Clement XIV., of 2 1 July, 1773. It is stated on the face of
the bull of suppression, that twelve popes, before Clement
XIV. (and he carefully repeats their names,) had in their
day, been troubled with this society; and had anxiously
but fruitlessly, endeavored to make it tolerable; and that,
the reigning pontiff — satisfied that there could be no real
peace in the church, while this society existed, — and per-
suaded, pressed, by the most powerful motives, motives
even stronger than law, prudence, and good government
in the universal church afford — but ivhich he was resolved
to keep secret in the bottom of his heart; * * after the
most mature deliberation, acting with personal knowl-
edge, and by the plentitude of apostolical power, put
out and suppressed the society &c." Before this high
and deliberate act, performed by one of the wisest and
best popes of Rome; nearly the whole Christian world
had preceded the condemnation of the successor of St,
Peter, in its cordial, long continued, and general abhor-
rence of the society. De Pradt in his Jesuitisme ancient
et modern, pp. 254-5. has collected into one view, no
less than thirty six expulsions endured by the Jesuites,
before their suppression in 1773; ranging through a pe-
riod (from 1555} of two hundred and eighteen years; the
first expulsion being within fifteen years of the origin of
the society. This is a very strong proof, of the early reve-
lation of the Secreta Monita, or what is nearly the
same, of the horrible principles of the Jesuits.
After a suppression of forty-one years, these miserable
monks have reappeared, as it has been well said, with the
baggage pf every counter revolution, and as the ally of
every despotism amongst men. Pius VII., by his
bull of August 6, 1814, after having as he says uby fer-
SECUlliA MOMTA SO CI El 10. 31 3
lored the dn i r having
taken the a real numbei of his 1 1 ri( rabl<
there, the i ardinals of the hoh ; did
ect knowledge, by Mi-
ni" apostolic power, and for perpetuity," tl
Clement XIV., and all others agaij ,.uld
be held null and void; and that the I
Jesus, should be fully and absolutely restored. He had
i in a previous part of the bull, that '
worhl denu nded with unanimous voice th dish'
mentof the Company qf Jesus." Thus fort iarter
of a eenturv, these enemies of all truth and righteous-
Bess, let loose to harrass and ton hu-
man ra«
It is not pertinent to the present object, to -how the
total overthrow of all the pretensions of R< nity
of doctrine, of morals, of discipline, or even of policy or
opinion. The mere collation of these two bulls, utterly
subverts her. No two persons have ever differed more fun
damentallv, and that upon subjects involving every part
of religion than these two bulls prove these two popes to
have done: yea, and if they are worthy of credit — their
whole communion in their respective ages, differed as
much as they did themselves.
The people of America, have a more direct, and per-
haps a deeper interest, in knowing the Jesuits and keep-
ing them at bay, than those of most other states. From
the beginning 0f the papal hierarchy in the U. S. — the
most distinguished of their clergy, have been under the in-
fluence of the Jesuits: and there appears to be no doubt
that this has been the case with all their archbishops, in-
cluding the present. Again, their principles, morals and
aims, are most direfully in conflict with the whole state
of society in our republic; and any decided success on
their part, involves, not only the public purity, but the
public peace. If papism, is* at all worthy of the public
observation, — either by reason of its dangerous character,
or its hateful practices; then assuredly, Jesuitism, as the
concentrated and poisonous essence of papism, still more
urgently challenges our consideration. And at the first
21
314 SECRETA M0N1TA SOCIETATIS JESU.
step of our enquiries — this Secreta Monita, raee*
in the path.
IX. This article could not, perhaps, be concluded more
appropriately, than by giving to the reader a pre*
idea of this important volume.
It contains a preface, and XVII. chapters; occupying-
in all, if the Latin and English be both printed, about
88 pages, 18mo.
The preface, contains III. sections : and fills a page.
Having referred to its contents in the body of this article,
it is not necessary to be more particular here.
Chapter I. contains IX. sections ; and has this title: —
How the Society ought to conduct itself when it commen-
ces a settlement in a new place.
Chapter II. has XV. sections; title: — By what method
the Principal Persons of the Society may acquire and
preserve the familiarity of Princes, Noblemen, and per-
sons of great distinction.
Chapter III. has X. sections ; title: — hi what manner
the society must act with those who have great authority in
the state: and how others, although not rich, can neverthe-
less aid us in various ways.
Chapter IV. has VI. sections; title: — What things
ought to be recommended, to preachers and confessors to
the great.
Chapter V. has V. sections ; title: — How to act towards
religious orders, which perform the same functions in the
church, which we do.
Chapter VI. has XI. sections; title: — Hoio to concili-
ate rich widows to the society.
Chapter VII. has XVIII. sections ; title: — How wid-
ows are to be retained; and how to dispose of the goods
which they may leave.
Chapter VIII. has IV. sections ; title: — What must be
done that the sons and daughters of widows may become
professed or devotees.
Chapter JX. has XVI. sections ; title: — Of increasing
the revenues of our colleges.
Chapter X. has III. sections; title: — Of the secret
Strictness of this discipline in the society.
Chapter XI. has \ III. sections ; title: — What we should
all do against those dismissed from the society.
SECRETA MONITA SOCIETATIS JESU. 315
Chapter XII. has V. sections; title: — Who should be
cherished and favored in the soieety.
Chapter XIII. has XIII. sections; title: — Of the se-
lection of youths for admission into the society, and the
Way to retain them.
Chapter XIV. has VIII. sections ; title: — Of reserved
cases, and of cause of dismission from the society.
Chapter XV. has II. sections; title:— Concerning the
treatment of nuns and devotees.
Chapter XVI. has III sections ; title: — Of the outward
exhibition of a contempt of riches.
Chapter XVII. has IX. sections ; title: — Of the method
of advancing the interest of the society.
The edition here referred to, is the second American
edition, — with a new and more literal translation, by the
writer of Uie.be lines; Bait. Edward J. Coale 4* Co. 1835:
pp. 103. The preliminary discourse of that edition, con-
tains the original draft of a large part of this article. The
name of the editor is on the title page; and the follow-
ing dedication in front of the book. The edition has
been several years out of print. It is nearly needless to
say, no public notice has been taken of the dedication.
TO
The present ARCHBISHOP of BALTIMORE;
Who is said
By his friends, to be a person of talents and learning ;
And who is believed
By many to belong to the
ORDER OF JESUITS;
THIS VOLUME IS INSCRIBED:
Under the conviction, that his duty as a Gentleman,
A SCHOLAR, AND A CHRISTIAN,
Requires him
To refute the book if false;
or
To admit its genuineness, if it is true:
By his obedient servant,
THE EDITOR.
Baltimore, July 22, 1835.
316
NUMBER XXXI.
PAPISM BEFORE THE COURTS OF LAW \ OUB LEGAL PER-
SECUTION,
David, in the ninth Psalm (verses L5 and 16) has
given us this remarkable evidence, at once of the provi-
dence and the justice of God, — that wicked men are com-
monly the victims of their own atrocious machination-.
They dig a pit — and fall into it; they hide a net ana their
own feet are taken in it; they contrive a plot — and are
themselves snared! It is the judgment of the L< id, de-
clares the prophet; and then adds a double exclamation,
of his conviction and astonishment.
Is it even so, that papism, after a sleepless watch of
five years, springs upon us at last only to demonstrate
the depth and continuance of its hate, and to be covered
with confusion in a more public and signal overthrow?
What are we to the keeper of an alms house? Noth-
ing, absolutely nothing! And what is he to us? Noth-
ing, less than nothing! It is papism that attacks us; and
shunning investigation, answers by a prosecution, what
nothing but argument and proof can meet.
We never thought of Maguire; we did not even know
his name a week before the pretended libel on him was
penned; and till this hour (March, 1840) have never laid
our eyes upon him. The moment we heard that he had
taken offence — we spontaneously, first privately, and then
in the pages of the Magazine where the supposed injury
had been inflicted ; proffered every possible reparation
which justice, truth, or religion allowed — or which an
honourable mind could ask.
Having, however, inflicted no injury — we failed, of
course, to make any satisfactory atonement. Pretended
injuries are too fatal to be redressed. We are glad that
wre did make the effort, however; and are thereby set
right in the judgment of every candid man. Hence-
forth, the nature and true source of the prosecution
against us is obvious to all; and we shall not hesitate to
PAPISM B HE COURTS OF LAW, &C. 317
lj we do not doubt any jury before which the
question is ever brought, will stamp with their verdict,
namely, that noprival , but papism in general, and
the priests ol ular, an
of this prosecution.
We confess our responsibility to the laws. We an*
ready to meet it. We have asserted nothing thai is not
true; we hive insinuated nothing that is not warrai
We confidently rely that any tribunal before which the
case may be investigated in any aspect of it — will ad-
judge that we have spoken truth only — and that, in a
timely and becoming manner.
We have said three things in a short article published
about the alms house, in the November No. (1839) of
the Bilt. Lit. and Relig. Mag., and re-published in that
for January 1840. 1. We have said that a mass altar was
erected in the alms house, at the public expense. Now ob-
serve: we expect to prove it, whenever lawfully call-
ed to do so; ioe expect to prove more than we have said.
2. We have said that an aged German was imprisoned
in the alms house. Now take notice: we expect to
prove it; we expect to prove, whenever put to it, all
that we have said, and so much beyond, and all so indis-
putably, that the wonder will be, how any man ever
thought of seriously calling us to question about the as-
sertion!
3. We have said, that the man went to the alms house
under the procurement of the priests, — and that he toas
shut up as a madman: and that the procuring cause of his
being sent there, was his known desire to become a Chris-
tian. Now remember; we expect to prove it; unless
papal witnesses swear-falsely, we expect to prove it di-
rectly; and if they do, we expect to prove so many colla-
teral facts, that all men will admit they have sworn
falsely.
With the two first facts, the keeper of the alms house
may no doubt suppose, he has a right to concern himself.
Very well; we can only say we are assured and believe
they are true and will be proved. But with the third fact
we cannot see that he has any right to find any fault what-
ever; as not only no offence, but even no fault is imputed
27*
318 PAPISM BEFORE THE COURTS OF LAW!
to him; except that he believed a man to be mad, who
was said to be so, and on that account confined him;
without law it might be, but without alledged crime. —
The insinuation by us, if there was any, was altogether
in favour of the keeper; and if, when the case is gone
into, it shall turn out, that we did him more than justice
— he will be pleased to remember how* it was be got into
the difficulty, and forced us into a more careful examina-
tion of the facts bearing on this part of the case, than we
ever contemplated.
That the old German was really a Papist, was really
inclined to become a Christian — and was in this juncture
sent to the alms house, accompanied there by a violent
Papist, — there locked up in the cells — and kept in them
under circumstances altogether unusual and illegal, until
demanded and released by his friends; all this we ex-
pect to PROVE.
It is, moreover, to be considered, that we made these
statements, when first published, on the authority of per-
sons of the utmost respectability; that they relate to the
very matter of our profession in life, to wit, to the salva-
tion of the soul — of a poor sinner, who was seeking light
and pardon, and supposed to be violently interfered with
by others; that we uttered them in the due course of our
lawful and regular calling as editors of a journal, long
and expressly devoted to the very subjects which led to
the present matter; and that the violent and personal as-
saults upon us, by the priests themselves, (for example,
Mr. Gildea,) led to the establishment of the very jour-
nal itself. All this is notorious, and can of course be
fully proved.
If upon this case, a jury of our country will say we
have uttered what is false — and have done so uialicious-
ly; then indeed, it will be time for the centinels on the
wrateh-towers of truth, to tremble. If to give security to
the machinations of foreign priests, sent by a foreign ty-
rant as emissaries into this land, as yet free; the liberty of
the press is to be curtailed — the liberty of speech abridged
—the rights of conscience assailed — the freedom of re-
ligion attacked— the personal security of the citizen di-
minished-—the right of free enquiry denied; if papism is
OUR LEGAL PERSECUTION. 319
already strong enough, not only to terrify society, silem I
the political press, invade the ballot-box, and threaten
the pulpit, — but also to infect tin- administration of jus-
tice; then we have only to say— -papism could no where
have sought in this community, a more proper or a more
willing victim. We love our country, our race, our Mas-
ter—well enough to suffer for either of the three: how
much more, in the cause of all three united!
To show the malignity of the persecution now set on
foot against us, wre need only say, that not only has pri-
vate redress been sought, by a suit at law against us, for
pretended injuries; butybr the same offence, a public prose-
cution also, has been most industriously and eagerly urged
against us. As yet the grand juries have refused to pro-
ceed against us: but, who can tell how far the oaths and
accusations of bigotted prosecutors and interested witness-
es, in ex parte inquisitions, to which we have no access —
may finally carry even well-meaning, but deluded men? It
is the province of a virtuous and enlightened public senti-
ment, to frown down such base attempts, and to hold the
instigators of them, whether priestly ox political, to a just
accountability.
In vindicating our character, our conduct, and the
truth committed to us — our friends may rest assured, that
we shall never for a moment forget, that even this perse-
cution may by God^s blessing be the very best possible
means of establishing important facts in regard to the
odious character and pretensions of papism ; and of
riviting public attention on them. A priest on the wit-
ness stand, with the fear of punishment for perjury be-
fore his eyes, may be forced to confess what he would
deny every where else.
Nor can we forget that a new aspect is given to the
entire papal controversy, by these proceedings. Until
now, it was in this community a purely moral question.
Hereafter, it is a legal one also. We have not chosen to
take this step in advance; God's providence has forced us
to take it. If it ends in publishing the lewdness of some
of the pope's minions — the drunkenness of others, the op-
pressions of more; if it brings about the suppression of
convents by lawr; if it fixes attention on the mode of na-
turalizing the pope's subjects; if it leads to the deliver-
320 PAPISM BEFORE THE COURTS OF LAW.
ari( •{• of our city, from the political influence of papism;
— if priests find themselves punished for crimes, hereto-
fore overlooked; — if papism sees itself treated as a
public evil; — let as remember, when we behold the wicked
fairly entangle^ in their own toils, that, as David hath
foreshown, it is God's judgment that is manifest upon
them.
As to the personal results of these transactions, we
ought to value them at — not a rush. No being whose
opinion is more to us than the fine dust of the balance —
will be any more assured of our innocence ; after God
shall, as we humbly trust, confound our enemies ; than
he or she now is. Never, at any period of our lives, have
so many, so marked, and so affecting tokens of public
confidence and applause been conferred on the author
of the 'libel,' in the same brief space; as since it was
carefully made public, in his absence from the city, that the
Papists had arraigned him as a malicious slanderer. Who
believes them? Who will ever believe them?
The private action against us, was instituted in No-
vember (1839); yet up to the middle of February (1840)
the period at which wTe write, no declaration has been
filed. We have, by our counsel, again and again asked
for it; but, three months, it seems, are insufficient for
able Protestant (!!!) lawyers, to determine on the best
mode of torturing twelve lines of very plain English, so
as to do the most effectual damage to a Protestant Clergy-
man! We feel called on to say, that the most painful
and surprising aspect of the whole case is, that distin-
guished Protestant gentlemen — should, considering all the
circumstances, be found ready to lend themselves to it.
And such, we venture to say, will be the general judg-
ment of this Protestant country. Could no Papist lawyer
be found fo harrass us? Is nothing due to the bonds of
a mutual faith? Are the Christian and Protestant mem-
bers of the noble profession of the ProU slant Coke and
the Christian Skldkn, open to every application to
worrv down, alike, Protestants, Christians, and ministers
of God? A..d for what? And for whom? Alas! Alas!
We confidently appeal to our country for countenance
and support to the Magazine, with which wc arc connect-
OUR LEGAL PERSECUTION. 321
ed — under the present attempt to silence its free voice.
And we pledge ourselves, by the grace of God, to do our
best, in time to come, as in tim< for the support of
true freedom and religion. Utterly regardless of -legal
jh'im cution, as of threats of assassination; we will frank-
ly peril all we have and are, in a eause to which we I
been called by clear duty; and in which the violence and
unreasonableness of our enemies, is but additional evi-
dence oi' the efficacy of our labours, and of our divine
vocation to them.
Since the foregoing article was in type — information,
the accuracy of which we have no room to doubt — has
readied us, that the grand jury, have agreed to present
us; and before ;hese pages are issued, we shall be regu-
larly arraigned on a criminal prosecution.
The will of God accomplishes itself on us, and with
us, as well as in us. We shrink not, from aught to which
He calls.
If we have been rightly informed, two preceding grand
juries have refused to do, wrhat one has at last (Feby.
1840) been found to perform. We will make but twTo re-
flections. The first is, that we cannot comprehend how
any candid man could say, in view of the naked case in
the worst aspect which it could assume, that there was the
slightest evidence of malice in our article: but malice is
the very gist of the pretended offence! The second is,
that God in his providence having brought this very grand
jury, to hear, by the oaths of unimpeachable witnesses, that
our statements were true, — we cannot imagine how they
could say, they believed them to be false; but falsehood
and malice constitute libel!
We refer the reader to the article wThich follows, for the
next step? in this persecution for righteousness sake.
322
NUMBER XXXII.
LETTER OF ROBERT J. BRECKINRIDGE TO THE SECOND
PRESBYTERIAN CHURCH OF BALTIMORE, ON THE OC-
CASION OF HIS PRESENTMENT BY THE GRAM) J L KY :
WITH THE ACTION OF THE SESSION, AND THAT OF THE
CHURCH THEREON.
Let the following letter speak for itself. — It was read,
on the evening of its date, publickly, (by a friend) to those
to whom it is addressed; and a small edition of it print-
ed on an extra sheet for their use.
The junior editor (Revd. Mr. Cross) of the Maga-
zine^ it is right to say, is not in reach of the press, at the
present moment. It is, however, proper to add that he
is in no true or proper sense responsible for the original
'libel? and is mixed up with this particular question, in-
nocently and only technically. He did not write, print,
see, approve, or know of its existence, till it was publish-
ed. He would have done all that is right, if he had been
called to it. He would now do more than he ought, to
identify himself with this difficulty. And this explana-
tion is made without his knowledge.
The writer of these lines, is ready to share his honours,
his blessings, his enjoyments, with all his friends. His
dangers, his reproaches, his persecutions, he would not
willingly share with any but his glorious Redeemer.
My beloved brethren and friends.— The most of you
know that a civil suit was instituted against me, in my
absence three months ago, by a papist named Maguire,
for an alleged libel on him published in the Baltimore
Literary and Religious Magazine for November, 1839; in
regard to the confinement in the cells of the alms house,
of an aged German Catholic who desired to become a
Christian.
As long as the affair was only a manifestation of pri-
vate revenge against me, for defending personal liberty
and the rights of conscience; I did not think it worth
LETTER OF ROBERT J. BRECKINRIDGE, 323
while to trouble you about it; nor proper to allow it to
have any effect on the ordinary course of my dutit 3.
But after repeated attempts on the part of my enemies
and persecutors, to enlist the power of the Common-
wealth against me in a criminal prosecution, additional
to the private action; they have at length succeeded. —
The Grand Jury for the city of Baltimore, after an ex parte
investigation, at the instance and on the testimony of in-
terested parties, have made a presentment, and in the or-
dinary course of affairs may be expected soon to find a
hill against me for false and malicious libel; and a war-
rant as in the case of a common felon, has been issued
against me. — I do not complain either of the injustice or
the indignity; I barely recount them.
I hope it is superfluous for me to say to you, who have
known me so long and so well, that in this transaction I
have been actuated only by a sincere love of truth — an
earnest desire to promote justice— and a perfect willing-
ness to risk all, in the cause of Christ and of public lib-
erty. I appeal to the whole current of my life— -I appeal
to the consciences of all who know me— -I appeal to the
searcher of hearts: and I defy the malignity of all the ene-
mies who have so long, in this city, sought my ruin.
But something is due to public appearances; very much
to the character of the church I serve: most of all to the
sacred office I bear. These have demanded of me, aline
of conduct answerable to the new and difficult circum-
stances in which, by God's providence, I find myself
placed; and to which his grace only can make me equal.
It is hardly becoming that one, whom a grand jury —
no matter how prejudiced or deluded— publicly arraigns
for malicious falsehood; it is hardly proper that such a
person, while he underlays such a charge, should exercise
the functions of a minister of Christ. It is not proper
that you should, in any manner, be implicated by my
faults, or involved even in my misfortunes, except by
your own deliberate act.
I have, therefore, the profound affliction of announcing
to you, that from this moment, until a jury of my country
shall pronounce upon my conduct, or this monstrous pro-
ceeding be otherwise legally disposed of. I will lay aside,
324 TO THE SECOND PRES. CHURCH OF BALTIMORE;
absolutely and without reserve, every function of my min-
istry. I make no exception. My purpose is complete.
That mh;1i b necessity should exist, would, under all
possible circumstances, 61] my heart with profound an-
guish. But that it should occur in the present conjunc-
ture of our affairs— full of such deep and such tender in-
terest, on so many and such impressive accounts,— rend-
ers it one of the greatest trials of my life. nest
request is, thai all your efforts and exercises— (and es]
cially your proposed thankoffering to God, on next Sab-
bath day, in commemoration of the fiftieth anniversary of
the General Assembly of our church;* and the special
meetings of persons newly awakened to the importance of
divine things )— may proceed as if nothing had occurred.
When the under shepherd is removed, the Great Bishop
of our souls becomes only more immediately the shepherd
of the flock.
If I shall be acquitted, then your joy and mine will be
equal to the triumph of truth and justice; equal to the
confusion of our enemies. If the same terrible influence
which has thus far prevailed against me, shall still farther
be allowed by an inscrutable providence, to. compass a
conviction; then it will remain for you, by the calm and
* It cannot be without deep interest to the reader to learn, that that
thank-offering, made under such affecting circumstances, and by a
church not ranking in wealth, much, if at all, above the average of our
large churches — was the largest but two, reported out of our fifteen
hundred churches, on the occasion of our first jubilee; having amount-
ed to about $5500. Nor is it less worthy of record and remembrance;
that the idea of stereotyping the immortal Institutes of the great John
Calvin, and presenting them to the General Assembly of the Presby-
terian church in the United States of America, was first suggested on that
occasion, in this church; and the resolution taken, to apply as much as
might be necessary of the proposed thank-offering to this work. These
are precious reminiscences; they are most affecting proofs of the spirit
in which the pioneers in the war with Papism in the JMneteenth
Century in the United States, entered into it, and carried it on; they
are enduring monuments of what it was, that God so owned and so bless-
ed notwithstanding all its own weakness, all the derision and scorn of
the wicked, and all the blindness, cowardice, meanness, ignorance,
jealousy, desertion, yea and betrayal of some, who ought to have been
strong on the Lord's aide. Yea it is pleasant to recall how faithful
some were, and what spirit actuated them, and what monuments they
erected, and how God's smiles were with them; in times, the like of
which, few we trust, will ever see.
ON THE OCCASION OF HIS PRESENTMENT 325
free expression of your deliberate judgment and wishes,
to decide the ultimate question, which in th it case must
arise. I intend to act towards you with perfect simpli-
city; and will commit you to nothing to which you are
not willing to be committed.
In the event of this prosecution being delayed by those
who have instituted it; or if it should on any account not
be brought to an early conclusion; I shall feel warranted,
and if the way is open, called in providence, as a private
Christian and free citizen, to devote myself to the public,
constant, and thorough discussion of the horrible system
of papism; to which, amongst so many other and greater
evils with which it curses the earth, we are indebted for
our present affliction.
And now, my very dear friends and beloved brethren
in Christ Jesus our Lord, —let us meet this extraordinary
and afflicting stroke, with the faith, patience, humility,
and prayerfulness, which become our profession. And
let us expect the result, whatever it may be, with the tem-
per of heart appertaining to those, who '"know that all
things work together for good to them that love God, to
them icho are the called according to his purpose."
With tenderest love, I am your faithful friend,
and unworthy Pastor,
Ro. J. Breckinridge.
Baltimore, FeVy. 19, 1840.
The foregoing letter was read to the congregation, by
a friend, on Wednesday evening the 19th inst., when the
people were assembled in one of their stated services.
The expectation of the author of it was, that the people
of his charge would acquiesce in his decision,— and that
although the course he had thought it his duty to take
would probably lead to a general and thorough examina-
tion of the whole case— which indeed he sincerely de-
sired; yet that no decided or public action would be taken,
until the criminal prosecution was brought 1o a decision.
A different view of the subject was taken by the Ses-
sion of the church; and their spontaneous, prompt, and
decided action in regard to it; and the explicit, unanimous
and cordial approbation of their conduct, on the part of
2S
'326
BY THE GRAND JURY:
the entire congregation — are set forth in the two docu-
ments which follow.
ACTION OF THE CHURCH SESSION ON THE FOREGOING
LETTER.
At a special meeting of the elders of the Second Pres-
byterian church of Baltimore, held in the lecture room on
Friday the 2lst of February, 1840, for the purpose of
taking into consideration the present peculiar state of the
Congregation.
The following members were present, viz: —
Gen. W. McDonald, Messrs. James Beatty,
Arch'd George, Peter Fenby, George Carson,
John Wilson, John Franciscus.
In the absence of the pastor, Gen'l McDonald was
called to preside as moderator, and George Carson,
the stated clerk, appointed secretary.
The following preamble and resolutions were then
unanimously adopted:
Whereas the duty of supplying the pulpit, devolves
upon the Sesssion, and whereas a letter from the Rev'd.
Dr. Breckinridge, addressed to the congregation, was
read after the weekly lecture on Wednesday evening last,
the 19th inst., by the Rev'd Mr. Williams, who pre-
sided on the occasion, in which it was stated, that the
Grand Jury for the city of Baltimore, had made a pre-
sentment against him for a libel, in consequence of which,
he had come to the determination, uto lay aside absolute-
ly and without reserve, every function of his ministry,
until a Jury of his country shall have pronounced upon
his conduct," &c.
This communication could not fail to fill the mind of
every member of the congregation with the deepest af-
fliction.— Warmly attached as they are to their beloved
pastor, by the strongest and tenderest ties, they could not
contemplate the loss of his faithful services, under such
painful circumstances, but with feelings of heart-felt sor-
row and dee}) regret.
The session, participating in these feelings to their
fullest extent — while they duly appreciate the delicacy of
the motives which prompted the decision, cannot at the
WITH THE ACTION OF THE SESSION, 327
same time perceive any thing in the present aspect of af-
fairs, which requires such a sacrifice. Their confidence
in the piety, purity and ability of their pastor remains
undiminished and unshaken — they liave beep witnesses
to his arduous and successful labours, in this church, for
the last eight years, to promote the glory of God, in the
salvation of the souls of men — enforcing the doctrines
which he taught by the example of a holy life; — and they
feel pleasure in bearing their further testimony — that
whenever he considered it to be his duty to caution his
hearers against fatal errors, he at the same time uniform-
ly and constantly inculcated the Christian duty of exer-
cising love to the persons, and charity to the opinions
of those who differed from them in doctrine and in
practice — always deprecating the idea of this difference
interrupting the charities of social intercourse; and against
no errors has he been more pointed in his remarks, than
against those wThich had crept into the Presbyterian
church, and wThich ultimately led to its separation.
The session having met on the present emergency, and
entertaining these views, have, after mature deliberation,
and they trust in the fear of God, come to the conclusion,
that it is their duty in the first instance, to give the congre-
gation an opportunity of expressing their desires on the oc-
casion; and that in order to this, the proceedings of this
meeting be read in the church, after the service, on next
Sunday morning; and should their opinion coincide with
that of the session, of which not a doubt is entertained,
then, in the next place, that our pastor be respectfully re-
quested to reconsider his decision, and resume his usual
labours in the congregation.
The Session cannot but hope that such an expression
will enable him, not only to see his way clear, but that
he will also consider it to be his duty to return immediate-
ly to his charge.
Be it therefore Resolved, That the confidence in, and
respect for, their pastor, on the part of this session, re-
main undiminished, and that it would be highly gratify-
ing to them, if he would return forthwith to his ministe-
rial labours, which have been so greatly blest in this con-
gregation.
328 AND THAT OF THE CHURCH THEREON.
Resolved, That the moderator and clerk be requested
to sign these proceedings in behalf of this meeting.
Signed Wm. McDonald, Moderator.
George Carson, Clerk of Session.
action of the congregation on the same.
Sunday, Feb'y 23d, 1840— Rev'd Mr. Williams
officiated in the Second Presbyterian church, this forenoon,
and after the exercises of prayer, singing, and reading a
portion of Scripture; he read the Rev'd Dr. Breckin-
ridge's letter, addressed to the congregation, after which
he stated that the Session had a communication to make,
and requested the audience to keep their seats and hear it.
The elders then assembled, and stood up in front of the
pulpit — Gen'l McDonald acting as moderator, called
upon John Wilson to read the proceedings of the meet-
ing of Session of the 21st inst. — which he did.
After which the moderator briefly addressed the audi-
ence, and at the close of his remarks, he clearly and dis-
tinctly requested all those who approved of the proceed-
ings of the Session which had just been read, and who
were desirous that our pastor should forthwith resume his
ministerial labours in this church, would rise vp.
Instantly, the whole congregation, which was a very
large and crowded one, stood up — and remained en their
feet until the moderator requested them to be seated.
He then reversed the question, and requested all those
who disapproved of the measures of the Session, and
who were unwilling that Dr. Breckinridge should re-
turn to his ministerial labours should rise.
Not a single individual stood up.
The moderatorthen proclaimed with emotion — "Thank
God there is not one! The people, old and young, male
and female, are as unanimous as their Session, in desiring
their beloved pastor's return."
Mr. Kyle made a short address, approving of what had
been done by the Session, and also approving of the
course pursued by the pastor-
After which the meeting was closed with an appropri-
ate prayer by the Rev'd. Mr. Williams.
Attest, Wm. McDonald, Moderator.
John Wilson, Clerk of Congregation, pro tern.
LE TThK OF &OBEETJ. BAECKENRIOGE 329
We think it is proper t \ remade, that aal a single mem-
ber of the Session oi' the church was brought into office
since the connexion of the pastor with it; that all ofthem
were not only Ruling Elders, but for many years leading
members of this congregation, before their present pas-
tor was a minister of the gospel; and that most of them
have been principal supporters of this church, since its
foundation, in the year 1803. This is their position in
the house of God. What it is in the world — it would be
impertinent for us to state — if these lines were to be read
only in this city and commonwealth. 13ut the hundreds
who may read them in the remotest sections of the Union,
and even in other lands; may not know — that these are men
of the first influence and rank amongst us, in all that
makes either influence or rank, valuable to generous and
virtuous minds; that they are amongst the fathers of our
city; most of them remnants of a past and glorious age;
men who through a period longer than the life of him
over whose head they throw the shield of their spotless
names— have built up in the face of ten thousand vicis-
situdes, characters which defy malignity, and challenge
confidence and love. Oppression itself is sweet when
such tokens follow in its train.
And what shall we say to that other and most affect-
ing manifestation? Alas! alas! who is worthy of such
regards? Who is not overwhelmed by them? In the
midst of trials and persecution, here is the unanimous,
unsolicited, enthusiastic testimony, of a thousand hearts
and voices; not only bearing a testimony even more noble
in those who give, thai] honorable to any who might re-
ceive it; but so doing it, as by its very tenderness to
break our heart. These are the fathers and mothers of
our Zion, by the side of whose tottering steps we have
walked with filial reverence, not to give but to get instruc-
tion; these are the children of God brought from dark-
ness into his marvellous light, by his own blessing on our
poor labours ; these are our friends, and companions, and
fellow workmen, who for long years have seen our daily
walk, partaken of our daily trials, helped our daily weak-
nesses; these are the children whom we have baptized into
Christ's visible kingdom; these the families we have
28*
330 TO THE SECOND PRES. CHURCH OF BALTIMORE ,&C.
united in sacred wedlock; these the bereaved and broken-
hearted with whom we have sat us down to weep; these
the favoured of the Lord, in whose blessings we have re-
joiced!— Here be they all; and here their testimony! —
Precious token of the smiles of heaven! Sacred lesson
to the ministers of Christ!
It is hard to speak aright on such an occasion. Per-
haps we have already said too much. We have said it all
with our eyes full of tears. The spirit which God, (bless-
ed be his name,) has created incapable of apprehension
from any being but himself; is weak before the voice of
unmerited commendation. We dare not, like Paul,
glory in our infirmities; but we dare confess them, even
to our enemies. And we say to them all, without a par-
ticle of bitterness in our hearts— these things have repaid
us, ten thousand times over, for all their hatred and in-
justice; for all they have done, in times past— for all they
can do in time to come.
We are sensible, and we deem it proper to make the
remark here and under present circumstances— that our
humble but sincere efforts to be faithful in our lot, have se-
cured to us alike the persecution of our enemies, and the
affectionate commendation of our friends. We desire
both to remember this observation; if in the good provi-
dence of God peradventure some who now hate us may
yet love us for our work's sake; and some who now love
us, may unhappily be offended by that same fidelity. We
have not known any thing,— we do not intend to know
any thing in this city, but Jesus Christ and him crucified.
Where he leads us, we shall follow; what he bids us do,
we shall attempt; every man who is his friend, we will
love; every enemy of his we will resist. By his grace
we have taken him for our portion; and his grace en-
abling us, we shall profit by what we consider at once,
the proof and the recompence of our fidelity in our lot.
331
NUMBER XXXIII.
THE STATE OF MARYLAND Clgahist ROBERT. J. BRECKIN-
RIDGE.*
I. u How gloriously does the spirit of the age shine
forlh in this prosecution" said one of the most distin-
guished men now alive, in writing to us of the attrocious
proceedings against us; from which; by God's blessing,
*This prosecution commenced on Tuedsay, March 10, 1840, before
the Honorable Judges Nicholas Brice, Alexander Nisbet, and
W. D. G. Worthington. It was conducted by George R. Rich-
ardson, E3q'r, Deputy attorney general, for the State of Maryland;
assisted by Mr. Charles Pitts (hired, we presume, by Maguire,
the prosecutor). The defence was managed by Wm. Schley, Esq'r;
assisted by the Hon'ble J.J. Crittenden, of Ky ; with whom also
attended throughout the trial thcHoN'BLE Wm. C. Preston, of S. C,
as the personal friend of the traverser. The trial was continued from
day to day, (excepting one Sabbath, which intervened,) — till Saturday,
March 21. The case was given to the jury on the afternoon of Wednes-
day, March 18; ten of them being ready to acquit in the box. One
juryman, countenanced by the doubts of a second — hung the panel till
the afternoon of the J 9; when the Court, on its own motion discharged
the jury. The next day, the traverser came into court and by his coun-
sel declared himself ready for trial, and demanded to be tried again, or
dismissed of the indictment. The Attorney General took time, till next
day; and then on the 21st, entered a nolle prosequi; which terminated
the case. A full report of the trial, with the testimony, speeches of
counsel. &c. ; and also illustrated by a hundred notes, by the traverser;
occupies the May and June numbers, for 1840, of the Bait. Lit. and
Rel. Mag.; and covers 108 large, closely printed pages. Popery hat
seldom been more completely taken in her own toils, than by the progress
and result of this prosecution : a prosecution based on nothing but her
malignity and hate; set on foot by men far more deserving to be brought
to public justice themselves, than to be instruments of vindicating laws
which were never violated; countenanced by the grand jury, by a barely
sufficient number to present, — and that a grand jury of which all that was
most respectable on it was opposed to presentment, and all that was Pa-
pist, infidel, and heretic on it, hot for presentment; prosecuted by a man
of whom it is enough to say, there could not have been a more fit person
for the office he instinctively selected; received with execration by the
better portions of society, and reaping public exposure, and the settled
abhorrence of good men, as the just reward of its contrivers. This is the
real history and termination of the matter. It forms a signal era in the
papal controversy in America; and will extend its influence as far beyond
the expectations, as that influence will be contrary to the hopes, of the
enemies of God.
232 THE STATE OF MARYLAND
we are at length delivered. "It is no longer a gun-
powder plot; it is a legal one."
The same gracious hand that delivered our ancestors
— has effectually protected us; and that which was dearer
to us than life, our good name, — has passed the ordeal
of popish malice and persecution — unharmed, untouched.
More fortunate than the heroic McGavin, — more so even
than the intrepid Rice, we have thus far by God's mercy,
been enabled to escape even the appearance of condem-
nation.
After a prosecution unprecedented for duration, fierce-
ness, and ability, the result is, that our conduct finds no
tribunal, no authority that condemns it. Our church
unanimously and most cordially approves it; our sister
churches, manifest the most profound sympathy with us;
our wThole Protestant community cordially acquits us ;
our jury is ten to tivo for a triumphant verdict to be ren-
dered in the box; and the state itself, by its attorney
general, declines, after mature reflection, a farther pros-
ecution, as not being called for by public justice. The
case is ended---in our complete exculpation.
Then we are not libellers. Our friends, our brethren,
our fellow-citizens, our country, all declare it; we are not
libellers. We have not published a false and malicious
libel on James L. Maguire; but we have published that
which we had good reason to believe was true — which it
was proper and timely to publish, and which, under the
utmost possible disadvantages, the proof came so near
establishing to be true, that ten jurymen out of twelve,
were ready to render a verdict in the box!
It is our purpose to print the trial at large, in the next
Nos. [May and June, '40) of our Magazine; and to ac-
company it with such notes and annotations, as may seem
necessary. Meantime we throw together a few statements
of a general kind, which will probably interest our readers,
and give them a clear view of the subject.
II. The substance of the proof, for the Prosecution,
was that we had published the paragraph about the alms
house, the aged German, &c. (see it in our No. for No-
vember, 1839, and in that for January, 1840); that Ma-
guire wras overseer of the alms house then and now; that
AGAINST ROBERT J. BRECKENRIDGE. 333
he treated ministers of all sects of Christians, who came
to the alms house, with much courtesy— some of them,
especially the Methodists, with distinguished kindness;
that he carried out the arrangements in regard to the re-
ligious instruction of the place, pretty much as he found
them, when he came into office a year and a half before:
that persons were accasionally, and under extraordinary
circumstances, taken into the house and released from it,
in a manner contrary to law and to the established orders
of the trustees of the poor; that old Mathias Staser (the
man in question)— was brought there by a certain Tom
Collins, and after one refusal, was at length let in and
kept about two days, being supposed to be mad; that he
was permitted to depart when his friends came for him,
and paid his expenses; and that while there he made no
objection to being locked up.
For the Defence, the substance of the proof was; that
Mr. B. was distinctly informed by four different persons
all of them respectable men, that all he had published
was true; and then when the original author of the state-
ments to Mr. B.'s informants, was induced to contradict
on oath, what he had said to them; two additional wit-
nesses swore he had also told them what he now denied.
It was further proved that Mathias Staser was a Papist,
that he became anxious about his soul, and sought Pro-
testant instruction; that when the Rev. Daniel McJilton,
a Methodist preacher, went to his house to converse and
pray with him, he (Staser) expressed great fear least his
Papist neighbour and landlord, Tom Collins, should over-
hear them, and begged McJilton to nray low; that Staser
himself became so excited at prayer that he made much
noise; that McJilton went back by appointment, within
two days, to see Staser, and found him gone, his house
shut, and his family broken up; that he hunted for him in
vain, and amongst other places sought for him at the
house of a Papist, where his ( Staser'* s) children were,
and was rudely repulsed; and that some six weeks after-
wards he found that Staser was living six miles in the
country. It was then proved that the same day, or the
day following McJilton's first visit to Staser, Tom Col-
lins the Papist, took Staser to the alms house, which is out
334 THE STATE OF MARYLAND
of town; that Staser was, after some hesitation, received,
taken to a cell, locked up, and kept in it about two days;
that Tom Collins did not tell Staser's family what had
become of him, though they were his tenants and lived
next door to him; but his little daughter found it out from
others; that Staser's whole family consisting of his jour-
neyman, his housekeeper, and his two little daughters,
went in a body to the alms house, found the old man in a
cell, paid the money demanded, and took him out; and
that Staser was in the cells of the alms house, at the mo-
ment of McJiltons second visit to his house. It was also
proved that the laws of the state forbade the reception of
Staser in the alms house, if he was sane, without a writ-
ten order, which he never had; or if he was insane, with-
out the finding of a jury on the fact, which never was
had; that Staser was no pauper, and that his family and
business were broken up, in this general operation. It
was still further proved, that never, before Maguire was
appointed overseer — had there been any mass altar at the
alms house; that Maguire was a Papist; that he had, at
the request of Priest Butler who was at that time private
secretary of archbishop Eccleston, sometime before
November, 1839, made arrangements and fixed a room
at the alms house for saying mass; that this was done at
the public expense, and without authority from the trus-
tees of the poor; that since then, priest Butler, had re-
moved out of the jurisdiction of the court, viz., to Ohio;
but that, in point of fact, no mass had been said; our at-
tack upon these arrangements having appeared, it will
be remembered, in November. It was also proved, that
some member of the grand jury had privately told Ma-
guire that there would no bill be found against Messrs.
B. and C; whereupon Maguire went to another member
of that grand jury and threatened him and them; and
amongst other threats that he would publish them, if they
did not find said bill; and afterwards the bill was found.
We write from memory, and omit all that does not
seem to us material in the case; and it is possible some
things, in themselves important, may have escaped us, —
But the foregoing is the substance of the proof — except
only that the witnesses from whom we got our informa-
AGAINST ROBERT J. BRECKINRIDGE. 335
lion went to the full extent of all the statements of our
libel, embracing those points not bt-OUgbt out in the cause.
We Unheal the expression of any emotions which
blight naturally be supposed to arise in our minds, at the
fact that any grand jury should find a hill under this gen-
eral state of fact — which we have reason to know, was
before the one which did find the bill in question; above
all, that the bill was found, under threats, after being re-
jected on the proof; an outrage unprecedented in our cri-
minal jurisprudence. We will repress also any reflections,
on the extraordinary bitterness of the prosecution, on such
a state of proof; professing at the same time, our utter in-
ability to see how the temper of the prosecution, and the
final determination to prosecute no further, are to be re-
conciled with each other; not complaining, however, of
the latter, but of the former. And we say nothing of that
state of mind which could have induced the tenth and
eleventh jurymen to hold out obstinately for a conviction
in such a case, on such proof; hoping that all has been
fair, conscientious, and upright. But we do sincerely
think we are authorized on a full view7 of the whole case
to say, that it has been a most gross and outrageous pro-
ceeding, from beginning to end. And that ninety-nine
out of every hundred candid men who examine it, will
say so too — we feel perfectly assured.
There is still depending a private suit against us for
slander, for the same paragraph; and we are therefore not
free to make explanations and disclosures, which might
impair our defence in that case. But when all these mat-
ters are over, we may showT, that strong as our proof was,
it would have been far clearer and stronger, if the osten-
sible parties to the case, had been the only real parties.
We make no charges now against any one; but every
body knows that every real papist in Baltimore, even
those most distinguished by rank, fortune, station and
character, have considered this case, as essentially the
cause of papism; r.nd every body can imagine to what re-
sults such a feeling in such a case, wTould be likely to
lead.
III. The intention of this prosecution was to crush
us. We do not mean to say this was the intention of
336 THE STATE OF MARYLAND
the prosecuting attorney; we hope he was actuated by a
sense of public duty, naturally, perhaps, mingled with
'professional pride, under the circumstances; though we
confess we thought he dealt harshly and unfairly by us in
many respects, of which we may say something in com-
menting on the case. Nor do we mean to charge such
an intention on his assistant council, who whether a vol-
unteer or a hired prosecutor, was, we dare say, thinking
far more of getting himself into Congress, than of get-
ting us into jail; and who was, no doubt, taking counsel
rather of his vanity than of malice, when he boasted, that
on such a case he could convict us, even before any
Presbyterian jury in the city. But that such was the
intention of those who instigated, and those who urged,
and those who rejoiced in this prosecution; no one can
doubt.
The result has been as different, as could well be im-
agined. Hundreds are our firm friends to-day, who were
wholly indifferent to us before. Thousands are deeply
excited at the audacious encroachments of papism, who
were before entirely indifferent to the whole subject. Pro-
testants are united, wTho felt little in common ; ministers
are aroused, who wTere passive ; presses are open that
were shut, and some are shut that were open only to
papism ; and the long, heavy, dead spell is broken — to
return no more upon this community. We give a single
fact ; — a series of lectures on papism was commenced by
us, on the sabbath night after the commencement of our
prosecution, and continued weekly for three months; and
by the most moderate computation, above two thousand
persons have been present, crammed into the immense
church, as the average attendance on them ; listening
with patient, yea, intense interest for an hour and a half
or two hours each evening, to simple and unpretending
statements, reasonings, and expositions on this tremend-
ous subject; crowding into the church before sun-set;
and more going off unable to get into the house, than
those who were ordinarily stowed, rather than accommo-
dated, in it.
We have foreseen, we have predicted, a complete rev-
olution in public sentiment in this community. The first
AGAINST ROBERT J. BRECKINRIDGE. 337
strong manifestation of it, was the state of public feeling
exhibited last summer (1839) in the case of the poor
Carmelite, whose unhappy fate is well known to our
readers. We have now the second stage of the subject,
produced by a prosecution against us, for vindicating the
cause of a poor and unknown foreigner. Is it not very
odd that a city of a hundred thousand souls should be
moved to its foundations, by the misfortunes of two
insane persons ? A mud nun, and a mad German pauper,
— the causes of a tremendous moral revolution ! They
who reason thus are themselves mad. These are not
causes; they are occasions only. And it is well for the
peace of society that the immediate occasions are, in
themselves, comparatively of so small importance. For
if the force of the immediate impulse, were always equal
to the power of those gigantic sentiments which lavish
themselves upon society ; it could not endure the shock
of any strong emotion that might burst upon it.
And yet there is a grandeur, as well as an instinct of
truth in the very fact, that so small apparent interests can
move society so deeply. The cause of the poor and the
unfortunate, the stranger, the helpless, and the oppressed,
is essentially the cause of the human race; for these, as
man exists, constitute the bulk of the best ordered states;
and their cries and wrongs, are the ordinary voice which
enters into hearts attentive to the realities of earth. All
besides, is the exception and the accident : this is the
absolute reality of human existence. And, for our part,
whether it be as a man, a patriot, a philanthropist, or a
Christian, we take our stand by the side and for the cause
of the poor and the suffering ; and are ready to do and to
endure ten thousand times more, for the tears of those
who have none to help them, than for all they could give,
who have every thing to bestow. When the prayers of
the poor have gone up for us, and the thanksgiving of
the oppressed has reached our ears; then have our hearts
felt strong in the Lord, and our spirits been refreshed as
with the dews of heaven. And never, more than in the
scenes through which we have but now passed, have we
felt the power of these truths. One stream of reiterated
wrongs, of burning complaints, of ardent expressions of
29
338 THE STATE OF MARYLAND
hope and sympathy and praise, of unrequited injuries;
has followed our footsteps and been poured upon our
way, from the moment the nature of out offence and trial,
reached the mass of our population. And if the hun-
dredth part of what is told us be true — our only shame
is, of having said and done so little to deserve to be call-
ed libeller!
IV. If our voice could reach the ears of those who
have the control — whether direct or ultimate, — of the
public charities in our midst; we might make statements,
and urge considerations, which ought not to fall unheed-
ed to the ground. And our hope is, that the recent at-
tempt to silence all enquiry into the mode of using one of
these establishments — will turn public attention fixedly to
them all; and lead, perhaps, to various reforms which are
demanded alike by considerations of benevolence to in-
dividuals, and of a proper respect of the community for
itself.
It was urged with great vehemence against us, on our
trial, that we had been guilty of a libel on the overseer of
the alms house, because by saying that it had been con-
verted into a mass house, we must be understood to mean,
that it was a place where no other than the papal religion
was publicly celebrated; and that pr^of that other sects
were allowed to worship in the place, must be taken as
positive evidence that the place was not a mass house;
and that by consequence our statement was false,— and
if false, the law would imply malice. An argument so
preposterous, would, of course, never have been used; if
the proof had not been positive that a mass house was
prepared, and that at the public expense, and all without
authority, in the alms house. But supposing the argu-
ment to be good— we would respectfully remind the con-
stituted authorities of the city, that the exact state of the
case supposed, exists at the Baltimore Infirmary; and we
would in the same manner remind the constituted author-
ities of the state, that this identical state of fact exists in
the Maryland Hospital. In both these establishments,
we are informed on authority, which we presume is not
to be questioned, that mass houses are prepared, and that
no preparation of any sort is made for any form of Pro-
AGAINST ROBERT J. BRECKENIUDGE. 339
testant worship; and that in point of fact, mass is said in
both of them — and no other public worship is held in
either. And to put the whole subject to rest, "Most
Reverend Samuel Eeeleston, J). D., archbishop of Bulli-
more" — lias put down both these establishments as being
"Charitable Institutions" of the archdiocess of Baltimore,
ranked along-side of St. Mary's, St. John's, and St. Vin-
cent's Asylums, and other equally exclusive and absolute
papal charities. — (See Metropolitan Catholic Almanac,
for 1S40, pp. 72 and 73.)
Now are our people prepared for such outrages as
these, upon — we will not say the religion only, nor the
rights only of the whole community — but upon the self-
respect and personal dignity of every citizen? The pub-
lic pride is wantonly wounded; — and we have all justly
deserved the gross insults heaped upon us. We cannot
send our sick to be cared for in these public institutions
without danger of their faith being subverted — and their
hours of sickness made miserable by attempts at proselyt-
ing. We are taxed to support the papal religion, at least
indirectly, by law. And now, the very institutions of the
city and state, are publicly set down, by authority, as be-
longing to the papal church.*
As it regards the alms house, until Mr. Maguire came
there, things were managed from the beginning on a prin-
*It gives us unfeigned pleasure to record the fact, that the latter of these
two public charities has been evacuated* by the nuns and priests in a body,
and has passed back from being a charity of Mr. Eccleston to be again a
charity of the state of Maryland. The foregoing article was first pub-
lished in April, 1840; within a few months afterwards the difficulties in
the Maryland Hospital began; and before the end of that year its pur-
gation was complete. We personally worshipped the Lord most high,
one sweet Sabbath afternoon, during the autumn of 1840 — in company
with the poor inmates of this Hospital; in the ver\ room where priest
Gildea had sung mass, at the expense of the state of Maryland — for long
years. The reader will find an account of this most benign revolution in
the Bait. Lit. and Rel. Mag., for Jan'y, 1S41. — Such things should at
once greatly humble and mightily strengthen the hands of God's people.
A few lines put a stop to a mass house in the alms house : and a few
sentences are followed by the purgation of the Maryland hospital.
While we cannot value our own efforts too low; we cannot value God's
might too high. No lesson has been so often and so fully made clear
before our hearts in this whole controversy, as that written in Psl. lx,
12.
340
THE STATE OF MARYLAND
oiple of perfect religious equality; and all the inmates,
and all denominations out of the house, had equal right
to use a common place prepared for all — and to be used
by each in proper time and order, to worship God as all
thought proper. But now, a common church wont do;
and another and separate place, for an idolatrous wor-
ship, must be set up, at the public expense, without any
authority, for papal priests to sacrifice our Saviour in,
afresh. We say boldly the community ought not to tol-
erate— nor do we believe they will tolerate, these gross
and incessant incroachments upon the religious principles
and rights of the great mass of the people.
V. But there are other than religious difficulties. —
This alms house is crowded from year's end to year's end
with hundreds of miserable and unfriended creatures,
whose only hope is in the public benevolence. From the
nature of the case, an immense discretion must reside in
the trustees, and in the officers in the house; and there-
fore, men of the very highest character for benevolence,
experience, and trustworthiness, should alone be selected
for such situations. Instead of that, the offices are made
the rewTard of political partizanship; and the public senti-
ment has tolerated that boon companions of successful as-
pirants, should be invested in the way of reward for ser-
vices at ward meetings and poll houses, with almost ir-
responsible power over the sick poor, the lunatic poor,
the condemned poor, and the unfortunate poor! — Yea, so
invested with such authority, that a paragraph of
twelve lines, in a monthly religious journal, venturing to
repeat a credible rumour, and to suggest further enquiry
is scouted as an intolerable outrage — and a grand jury
threatened by the overseer for hesitating to find a bill for
libel!
Look at a few facts, at the knowledge of which we
have arrived in the course of our prosecution. The over-
seer swore that nine out of ten persons wTere received by
the man in the office — and that in the overseer's absence,
this man was left in charge of the house. But this man
is himself a pauper, unknown to the law, and holds his
power and station at the mere caprice of the overseer;
and yet by express law, the matron should be in charge
AGAINST ROBERT J. BRECKINRIDGE. 341
of the whole establishment id the keeper's absence! —
Again, here is an establishment where the most exact laws
and rules prescribe how, and on what conditions persons
shall be admitted and discharged; and the veiv defence
set up for taking in and sending away a man illegally —
is, that it is a common thing thus to violate the law! —
Again, here is a house filled with poor, from infancy to
old age, and here are two visiting physicians appointed
and paid by the public, and six resident students of me-
dicine besides; and yet, it seems proved that no rigid
method is established, and no certain rule exists, by
which any thing but good luck, would keep a man com-
ing in with any sort of contagious disorder, from giving
it to the whole establishment; unless the inmate, Hooper,
in the office, who receives nine persons in ten, should
judge that the case required medical aid; and even then
having as much authority, for aught that appears, to pre-
scribe in itch as in madness, as much skill in measles as
in insanity, he might, if he so pleased, take every case in
hand as lawfully as he did Staser's. — Again, as far as
appears, these cells are the common receptacles of va-
grants committed for crimes, of paupers confined in the
way of discipline, and of mad-men locked up for security;
confounding discipline, crime, and misery, and allowing^
(as Hooper admits nine cases in ten,) the judgment of a
pauper to decide, wThat fellowship the three classes of ca-
ses may have together. — Again, there is an express or-
der of the trustees that the overseer shall keep a book,
and therein record every punishment inflicted by him; an
order, which every one must say, is wise and humane, as
well as most just. Will the present board tell the pub-
lic how many times they have inspected this book? The
by-law says, it shall be submitted to them monthly;
but perhaps they have not had time to examine it quite
so often? Perhaps quarterly? Perhaps half-yearly? —
Will we be credited, when we say no such book is known
to be in existence? Complaints were made to us, by
persons who said they had suffered punishment which
we could not believe; and these statements became so
multiplied, that we at length went to the office of the
agent and secretary of the board of trustees, in north
29*
342 THE STATE OF MARYLAND
Frederick street; pointed to the by-law, and asked how
we could get a sight of the book. He assured us he had
never seen such a book; and was convinced none such
was ever laid before the board since he had been its se-
cretary!— Now, if this be so — what can the trustees know
of the detail of the discipline of the house? Or what
check is there on the passions of the overseer? Or what
protection is afforded to the inmates of the house?
These matters are not stated with any view to discuss
the particular merits of the present officers; but as sub-
jects of public and permanent interest to every good
citizen and every humane man. Mr. Maguire's appoint-
ment was entirely political — and being no party politi-
cian ourself we have nothing to say to that matter; ex-
cept that a very much more respectable man and meri-
torious officer, was dismissed to make way for him. But
it does seem to us, that enough has come to light about
the alms house, to create great anxiety in the public mind;
and to admonish those who have authority over the sub-
ject, that prosecutions for libel and suits for slander, are-
not exactly the thing to satisfy the community that mat-
ters are in the best possible state.
VI. We were never prosecuted before for any thing;
and hope never to be again. But if we ever should be,
we trust it may be for a matter, in regard to which our
conscience will be as much at ease, as in the present
case. And if such an event should befall us, we hope
we may be fortunate enough to be defended by men equal
in character, honour, ability, learning, eloquence, and
every noble and gentleman-like quality — to those whose
services we have enjoyed in the present case. We could
ask no more. And we rejoice in the conviction that the
race of true lawyers, full of the spirit of their great
and noble profession, is not yet, nor like to be, extinct
amongst us.
There is one aspect, in which this persecution of the
Papists has been singularly important to us; and in which,
the hand of Providence, manifest in every part of it, has
been remarkably apparent. It has been our happy lot,
since God has called us into the ministry of his wTord, to
have our way of duty set before us with perfect plain-
AGAINST ROBERT J. BRECKINRIDGE. 343
But about the end of the last summer and the be-
ginning of autumn (1839,) so urgent, so repeated and
so important calls were made on us, and such wide fields
of usefulness opened to us, elsewhere, and under such
imposing appearances of duty; that our way became un-
certain before us, and our mind for the first time, deeply
and painfully perplexed as to what God would have us do.
That matter is all resolved. We are given to see, that
our work here is not yet done; and now, with the light
of heaven upon our way, and with a heart fully set upon
our Master's work, — we put our hands with renewed
vigour to the plough. Our only business on earth is to
do and suffer the whole will of God; and for that, our
all-sufficient and ever-present support, is his own rich and
unmerited grace in Christ Jesus our Divine Redeemer, to
whom be glory forever.
DATE
: DUE
JP' ?■* i
,«*»»• ™",pn"T
Ppl
• 4
|
r fill
■
GAYLORD
PRINTED 'N - S .A
**ioo&
VlWB
'9SUO
T 'N
(NOI30Niad
'&
JBUIUI9
3HI 3.0
osqi
Aayaan
*&
ws
eBSBm
- '
bSHh
P ': •' :■*«»' *£
Hi